eee sees RoeAL UNIVERSITY OF VIRGIN AA X000498400 |LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF VIRGINIA GIFT OF RRs ores rs 8 ' € aid f oo i Nt » to{ ] |eet ee 4 f Coe T TEASTi { ths Vit Tapaiauiiaaiaa gael iite TITTLEWORKS OF THE REV. C. H. SPURGEON. SERMONS (Revised by the Author), 8 Vorumus, each - - $1.50 SPURGEON’S GEMS THE SAINT AND HIS SAVIOUR LIFE OF SPURGEON MITT ten tite aeonsSpe URGHON S SHR MOMS EIGHTH SERIES.(ST ERCRATESSER TIO TIII IITSERMONS REV. C He’ SPURGEON. PREACHED AT THE METROPOLITAN TABERNACLE, LONDON. EIGHTH SERIES. NEW YORK: SHELDON AND COMPANY, PUBLISHERS. BOSTON: GOULD AND LINCOLN. 1866.Ped _ TTCONTENTS. SERMON L PAGE BAPTISMAL REGENERATION . “ ° ° ° . ° a LL: SERMON IL. CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT eau SERMON “dll. “THOS SAITH THE LORD” . . ° ° ° ° ° ° - 55 SERMON IV. A HEARER IN DISGUISE . : ° . . ° e SP eo EXPIATIONCONTENTS. SERMON VI. THE BARLEY-FIELD ON FIRE . ° . ° ° ° ’ SERMON VIL x CHRIST IS GLORIOUS: LET US MAKE HIM KNOWN . SERMON VII. ENDURING TO THE END . ° e ° oie 2 ° SERMON IX. NOTHING BUT LEAVES . . . . is ° ° SERMON X. THE GREAT LIBERATOR . ° . ° ° ° ‘a %, 4 te SERMON XI. TEE CININSS BRIEND =... . . « % «. % SERMON XII. ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT TO SEEKING SOULS SERMON XIil. THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA UT ETAL EL TTT eee ena A PAGBR 112 131 150 168 187 206 222CONTENTS. SERMON XIV. A BUNDLE OF MYRRH SERMON XV. THE LAMB: THE LIGHT SERMON XYVI. GODS STRANGE CHOICE . =. . : SERMON XVI. WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. SERMON XVII. LABOR IN VAIN SERMON XIX. GOD IS WITH US. PAGH » 209 218 © eur - 316 . 339BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. ‘ TAT x . 7H TW S AND HE SAID UNTO THEM, GO YE INTO ALL THE WORLD, AND PREACH THB GOSPEL TO EVERY CREATURE. HE THAT BELIEVETH AND IS BAPTIZED SHALL BR SAVED; BUT HE THAT BELIEVETH NOT SHALL BE DAMNED.’ — Mark xyi. 15, 16. In the preceding verse our Lord Jesus Christ gives us some little insight into the natural character of the apostles whom he selected to be the first ministers of the Word. They were evi- dently men of like passions with us, and needed to be rebuked even as we do. On the occasion when our Lord sent forth the eleven to preach the gospel to every creature, he “appeared unto them as they sat at meat, and upbraided them with their unbelief and hardness of heart, because they believed not them which had seen him after he was risen;” from which we may surely gather, that, to preach the Word, the Lord was pleased to choose imperfect men; men, too, who of themselves were very weak in the grace of faith in which it was most important that they should excel. Faith is the conquering grace, and is of all things the main requisite in the preacher of the Word; and yet the honored men who were chosen to be the leaders of the divine crusade needed a rebuke concerning their unbelief. Why was this? Why, my brethren, because the Lord has ordained ever- more that we should have this treasure in earthen vessels, that the excellency of the power may be of God, and not of us. If you should find a perfect minister, then might the praise and honor of his usefulness accrue to man; but God is frequently pleased to select for eminent usefulness men evidently honestcree! 12 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. and sincere, but who have some manifest infirmity by which all the glory is cast off from them and laid upon himself, and upon himself alone. Let it never be supposed that we who are God’s ministers either excuse our faults or pretend to perfection. We labor to walk in holiness, but we cannot claim to be all that we wish to be. We do not base the claims of God’s truth upon the spotlessness of our characters, but upon the fact that it comes from him. You have believed in spite of our infirmities, and not because of our virtues. If, indeed, you had believed our word because of our supposed perfection, your faith would stand in the excellency of man and not in the power of God. We come unto you often with much trembling, sorrowing over our follies and weaknesses; but we deliver to you God’s Word as God’s Word, and we beseech you to receive it, not as coming from us, poor, sinful mortals, but as proceeding from the eternal and thrice- holy God; and if you so receive it, and by its own vital force are moved and stirred up towards God and his ways, then is the work of the Word sure work, which it could not and would not be if it rested in any way upon man. Our Lord having thus given us an insight into the character of the persons whom he has chosen to proclaim his truth, then goes on to deliver to the chosen champions their commission for the holy war. I pray you mark the words with solemn care. He sums up in a few words the whole of their work, and at the same time foretells the result of it, telling them that some would doubtless believe and so be saved, and some on the other hand would not believe and would most certainly, therefore, be damned ; that is, condemned forever to the penalties of God’s wrath. The lines containing the commission of our ascended Lord are certainly of the utmost importance, and demand devout attention and implicit obedience, not only from all who aspire to the work of the ministry, but also from all who hear the message of mercy. A clear understanding of these words is absolutely necessary to our success in the Master’s work ; for if we do not understand the commission, it is not at all likely that we shall discharge it aright. To alter these words were more than impertinence : it Ann ee USER G CEe eee yeaa ee ee Pea LLL RELI Tt eeeBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 18 would involve the crime of treason against the authority of Christ and the best interests of the souls of men. Oh for grace to be very jealous here! Wherever the apostles went they met with obstacles to the preaching of the gospel, and the more open and effectual was the door of utterance, the more numerous were the adversaries. These brave men so wielded the sword of the Spirit as to put to flight all their foes; and this they did not by craft and guile, but by making a direct cut at the error which impeded. them. Never did they dream for a moment of adapting the gospel to the unhallowed tastes or prejudices or the people, but at once directly and boldly they brought down with both their hands the mighty sword of the Spirit upon the crown of the opposing error. This morning, in the name of the Lord of Hosts, my helper and defence, I shall attempt to do the same; and if I should provoke some hostility —if I should through speaking what I believe to be the truth lose the friendship of some and stir up the enmity of more —I cannot help it. The burden of the Lord is upon me, and I must deliver my soul. I have been loath enough to un- dertake the work, but I am forced to it by an awful and over- whelming sense of solemn duty. As I am soon to appear before my Master’s bar, I will this day, if ever in my life, bear my tes- timony for truth, and run all risks. I am content to be cast out as evil if it must be so; but I cannot, I dare not, hold my peace. The Lord knoweth I have nothing in my heart but the purest love to the souls of those whom I feel imperatively called to rebuke sternly in the Lord’s name. Among my hearers and readers, a considerable number will censure if not condemn me ; put I cannot help it. If I forfeit your love for truth’s sake I am grieved for you; but I cannot, I dare not, do otherwise. It is as much as my soul is worth to hold my peace any longer ; and, whether you approve or not, I must speak out. Did I ever court your approbation? It is sweet to every one to be applauded ; but if for the sake of the comforts of respectability and the smiles of men any Christian minister shall keep back a part of his tes- timony, his Master at the last shall require it at bis hands. This 2ea gti He 14 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. “cigs i day, standing in the immediate presence ut ae I shall speak honestly what I feel, as the fncly: Spit § shall enable me; and I } 3) | 2 TY 7 shall oe the matter with o to judge concerning it, as you will answer for that judgment at the last, great day. I find that the great error which we have to contend with throughout England (and it is growing more and more), is one in direct opposition to my text, well known to you as the doctrine of baptismal regeneration. We will contront this dogma with the assertion that baptism without faith saves no one. ‘The text says, “He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved ;” but whether a man be baptized or no, it asserts that “he that believ- eth not shall be damned:” so that baptism does not save the unbeliever; nay, it does not in any degree exempt him from the common doom of all the ungodly. He may have baptism, or he may not have baptism; but if he believeth not, he shall be in any case most surely damned. Let him be baptized by immersion or sprinkling, in his infancy or in his adult age: if he be not led to put his trust in Jesus Christ —if he remaineth an unbeliever —then this terrible doom is pronounced upon him, “ He that believeth not shall be damned.” I am not aware that any Prot- estant church in England teaches the doctrine of baptismal re- generation, except one, and that happens to be the corporatior which with none too much humility calls itself the Church of England. This very powerful sect does not teach this doctrine merely through a section of its ministers, who might charitably be considered as evil branches of the vine, but it anne boldly, and plainly declares this doctrine in her own appointed standard, the Book of Common Prayer, and that in words so express, that, while language is the channel of conveying intelligible sense, no process short of violent wresting from their plain meaning can ever make them say anything else. Here are the words —we quote them from the Catechism which is intended for the instruction of youth, and is naturally very plain and simple, since it would be foolish to trouble the youth with metaphysical refinements. The child is asked its name, and then questioned, “ Who gave you this name?” “ My aT WHE UUBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. godfathers and godmothers in my baptism ; wherein Iwas made a member of Christ, the child of God, and an inkheritor of the king- dom of heaven.” Is not this definite and plain enough? I ; rize the words for their candor: they could not speak more plainly. Three times over the thing is put, lest there should be any doubt init. The word regeneration may, by some sort of juggling, be made to mean something else ; but here there can be no misun- derstanding. The child is not only made “a member of Christ,” — union to Jesus is no mean spiritual gift, — but he is made in baptism “the child of God” also; and, since the rule is, “ if children, then heirs,” he is also made “an inheritor of the king- dom of heaven.” . Nothing can be more plain. I venture to say, that, while honesty remains on earth the meaning of these words will not admit of dispute. It is clear as noonday that, as the Rubric hath it, “ Fathers, mothers, masters, and dames are to cause their children, servants, and apprentices,’ no matter how idle, giddy, or wicked they may be, to learn the Catechism, and to say that in baptism they were made members of Christ and children of God. The form for the administration of this baptism is scarcely less plain and outspoken, seeing that thanks are ex- pressly returned unto Almighty God because the person baptized is regenerated: “ Then shall the priest say, ° Seeing, now, dearly beloved brethren, that this child is regenerate and grafted into the body of Christ's church, let us give thanks unto Almighty God for these benefits ; and with one accord make our prayers unto him, that this child may lead the rest of his life according to this beginning.” Nor is this all; for, to leave no mistake, we have the words of the thanksgiving prescribed : “Then shall the priest say, ‘We yield thee hearty thanks, most merciful Lather, that it hath pleased thee to regenerate this infant with thy Holy Spirit, to re- ceive him for thine own child by adoption, and to incorporate him into thy holy church.” This, then, is the clear and unmistakable teaching of a church calling itself Protestant. JI am not now dealing at all with the question of infant baptism : I have nothing to do with that thi ths morning. I am now considering the question of baptismal reeae aa 16 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. generation, whether in adults or infants, or ascribed to sprinkling, pouring, or immersion. Here is a church which teaches every Lord’s Day in the Sunday-school, and should, according to the Rubric, teach openly in the church, all children that they were made members of Christ, children of God, and inheritors of the kingdom of heaven when they were baptized! Here is a pro- fessedly Protestant church, which, every time its minister goes to the font, declares that every person there receiving baptism is there and then “regenerated and grafted into the body of Christ’s church.” “ But,” I hear many good people exclaim, “there are many good clergymen in the church who do not believe in baptismal regeneration!” ‘To this my answer is prompt, — Why, then, do they belong to a church which teaches that doctrine, in the plainest terms? Jam told that many in the Church of England preach against her own teaching. I know they do, and herein I rejoice in their enlightenment, but I question, gravely question, their morality. To take oath that I sincerely assent and consent to a doctrine which I do not believe, would to my conscience appear little short of perjury, if not absolute, downright perjury ; but those who do so must be judged by their Lord. For me to take money for defending what I do not believe —for me to take the money of a church, and then to preach against what are most evidently its doctrines —I say for me to do this (I shall not judge the peculiar views of other men), for me or for any other simple, honest man to do so, were an atrocity so great that, if I had perpetrated the deed, I should consider myself out of the pale of truthfulness, honesty, and common morality. Sirs, when I accepted the office of minister of this congregation, I looked to see what were your articles of faith. If I had not be- lieved them I should not have accepted your call; and when I change my opinions, rest assured that, as an honest man, I shall resign the office ; for how could I profess one thing in your dec- Jaration of faith, and quite another thing in my own preaching ? Would I accept your pay, and then stand up every Sabbath-day and talk against the doctrines of your standards? For clergy Ta a ee PeCUPT Pigs e Sapo se spay cysteines TTT ee MattavdceuiiiiteeeaiviateBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. a men to swear or say that they give their solemn assent and con- sent to what they do not believe, is one of the grossest pieces of immorality perpetrated in England, and is most pestilential in its influence since it directly teaches men to lie whenever it seems necessary to do so in order to get a living or increase their sup- posed usefulness: it is in fact an open testimony from priestly lips that, at least in ecclesiastical matters, falsehood may express truth, and truth itself is a mere unimportant nonentity. I know of nothing more calculated to-debauch the public mind than a want of straightforwardness in ministers ; and when worldly men hear ministers denouncing the very things which their own Prayer-Book teaches, they imagine that words have no meaning among ecclesiastics, and that vital differences in religion are merely a matter of tweedle-dee and tweedle-dum, and that it does not much matter what a man does believe so long as he is charitable towards other people. If baptism does regenerate people, let the fact be preached with a trumpet tongue, and let no man be ashamed of his belief in it. If this be really their creed, by all means let them have full liberty for its propagation. My brethren, those are honest Churchmen in this matter who, subscribing to the Prayer-Book, believe in baptismal regenera- tion, and preach it plainly. God forbid that we should censure those who believe that baptism saves the soul, because they ad- here to a church which teaches the same doctrine. So far they are honest men; and in England, wherever else, let them never lack a full toleration. Let us oppose their teaching by all scriptural and intelligent means, but let us respect their courage in plainly giving us their views. I hate their doctrine, but I love their honesty ; and as they speak but what they believe to be true, let them speak it out, and the more clearly the better. Out with it, sirs, be it what it may, but do let us know what you mean. For my part, I love to stand foot to foot with an honest foeman. To open warfare, bold and true hearts raise no objections but the ground of quarrel ; it is covert enmity which we have most cause to fear and best reason to loathe. That crafty kindness which inveigles me to sacrifice principle, is the serpent in the Q*ee ATT ee 18 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. srass — deadly to the incautious wayfarer. Where union and friendship are not cemented by truth, they are an unhallowed onfederacy. It is time that there should be an end put to the irtations of honest men with those who believe one way and wear another. If men believe baptism works regeneration, let them say so; but if they do not so believe it in their hearts, and yet subscribe, and yet more, get their livings by subscribing to SE — pew li) | words asserting it, let them find congenial associates among men who can equivocate and shuffle, for honest men will neither ask nor accept their friendship. We ourselves are not dubious on this point: we protest that persons are not saved by being baptized. In such an audience as this, I am almost ashamed to go into the matter, because you surely know better than to be misled. Nevertheless, for the good of others we will drive at it. We hold that persons are not saved by baptism; for we think, first of all, that ¢¢ seems out of character with the spiritual religion which Christ came to teach, that he should make salvation depend upon mere cere- mony. Judaism might possibly absorb the ceremony by way of type into her ordinances essential to eternal life; for it was a religion of types and shadows. ‘The false religions of the hea- then might inculeate salvation by a physical process; but Jesus Christ claims for his faith that it is purely spiritual, and how could he connect regeneration with a peculiar application of aqueous fluid? I cannot see how it would be a spiritual gospel, but I can see how it would be mechanical, if I were sent forth to teach that the mere dropping of so many drops upon the brow, or even the plunging a person in water, could save the soul. This seems to me to be the most mechanical religion now existing, and to be on a par with the praying windmills of Thibet, or the climbing up and down of Pilate’s staircase to which Luther subjected himself in the days of his darkness. The operation of water baptism does not appear even to my faith to touch the point involved in the regeneration of the soul. What is the necessary connection be- tween water and the overcoming of sin? I cannot see any connec- tion which can exist between sprinkling, or immersion, and regen- PUTER eGBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 19 eration, so that the one shall necessarily be tied to the other in the absence of faith. Used by faith, had God commanded it, mira- cles might be wrought; but without faith or even consciousness, as in the case of babes, how can spiritual benefits be connected necessarily with the sprinkling of water? If this be your teach- ing, that regeneration goes with baptism, I say that it looks like the teaching of a spurious church, which has craftily invented a mechanical salvation to deceive ignorant, sensual, and grovelling minds, rather than the teaching of the most profoundly spiritual of all teachers, who rebuked Scribes and Pharisees for regarding outward rites as more important than inward grace. But it strikes me that a more forcible argument is, that the dogma is not supported by facts. Are all persons who are bap- tized children of God? Well, let us look at the divine family. Let us mark their resemblance to their glorious Parent! Am I intruthful if I say that thousands of those who were baptized in their infancy are now in our gaols? You can ascertain the fact, if you please, by application to prison authorities. Do you be- lieve that these men, many of whom have been living by plunder, felony, burglary, or forgery, are regenerate? If so, the Lord deliver us from such regeneration. Are these villains members of Christ? If so, Christ has sadly altered since the day when he was hoiy, harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners. Has he really taken baptized drunkards and harlots to be members of his body? Do you not revolt at the supposition? Itisa well-known fact that baptized persons have been hanged. Surely it can hardly be right to hang the inheritors of the kingdom of heayen! Our sheriffs have much. to answer for when they offi- ciate at the execution of the children of God, and suspend the members of Christ on the gallows! What a detestable farce is that which is transacted at the open grave, when “a dear brother” who has died drunk is buried in a “sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life,” and the prayer tha “ when we shall depart this life we may rest in Christ, as our hope is that this our brother doth.” He is a regenerate brother, who, having defiled the village by constant uncleanness and bes-TATE aT 20 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. tial drunkenness, died without a sign of repentance ; and yet the professed minister of God solemnly accords him funeral rites which are denied to unbaptized innocents, and puts the repro- bate into the earth in “sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life.” If old Rome in her worst days ever perpetrated a grosser piece of imposture than this, I do not read things aright; if it does not require a Luther to cry down this hypoc- risy as much as Popery ever did, then I do not even know that twice two make four. Do we find — we who baptize on profes- sion of faith, and baptize by immersion in a way which is con- fessed to be correct, though not allowed by some to be absolutely necessary to its validity —do we, who baptize in the name of the Sacred Trinity as others do, do we find that baptism regen- erates? Wedo not. Neither in the righteous nor the wicked do we find regeneration wrought by baptism. We have never met with one believer, however instructed in divine things, who could trace his regeneration to his baptism; and on the other hand, we confess it with sorrow, but still with no surprise, that we have seen those whom we have ourselves baptized, according to apostolie precedent, go back into the world and wander into the foulest sin, and their baptism has scarcely been so much as a restraint to them, because they have not believed in the Lord Jesus Christ. Facts all show that whatever good there may be in baptism, it certainly does not make a man “a member of Christ, the child of God, and an inheritor of the kingdom of heaven,” or else many thieves, whoremongers, drunkards, fornicators, and murderers are members of Christ, the children of God, and in- heritors of the kingdom of heaven. Facts, brethren, are dead against this popish doctrine ; and facts are stubborn things. Yet further, I am persuaded that the performance styled bap- tism by the Prayer-Book vs not at all likely to regenerate and save. How is the thing done? One is very curious to know when one hears of an operation which makes men members of Christ, children of God, and inheritors of the kingdom of heaven, how the thing is done. It must in itself be a holy thing, truthful in all its details, and edifying in every portion. Now, we will Wtiee HBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 21 Buppose we have a company gathered round the water, be it more or less, and the process of regeneration is about to be per- formed. We will suppose them all to be godly people. The clergyman officiating is a profound believer in the Lord Jesus, and the father and mother are exemplary Christians, and the godfathers and godmothers are all gracious persons. We will suppose this: it is a supposition fraught with charity, but it may be correct. What are these godly people supposed to say ? Let us look to the Prayer-Book. The clergyman is supposed to tell these people, “Ye have heard also that our Lord Jesus Christ hath promised in his gospel to grant all these things that ye have prayed for: which promise he, for his part, will most surely keep and perform. Wherefore, after this promise made by Christ, this infant must also faithfully, for his part, promise by you that are his sureties (until he come of age to take it wpon himself) that he will renounce the devil and all his works, and constantly believe Gods Holy Word, and obediently keep his commandments.” ‘This small child is to promise to do this; or, more truly, others are to be taken upon themselves to promise, and even vow that he shall do so. But we must not break the quotation, and therefore let us return to the Book: “I demand, therefore, dost thou, in the name of this child, renounce the devil and all his works, the vain pomp and glory of the world, with all covetous desires of the same, and the carnal desires of the flesh, so that thou wilt not follow, nor be led by them?” An- swer: “I renounce them all.” That is to say, on the name and behalf of this tender infant about to be baptized, these godly people, these enlightened Christian people, these who know better, who are not dupes, who know all the while that they are promising impossibilities, renounce on behalf of this child what they find it very hard to renounce for themselves,— “all covetous desires of the world and the carnal desires of the flesh, so that they will not follow nor be led by them.” How can they harden their faces to utter such a false promise, such a mockery of renunciation, before the presence of the Father Al- mighty ? Might not angels weep as they hear the awful prom-See ee UTI eae 29 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. ise uttered? Then in the presence of High Heaven they profess on behalf of this child that he steadfastly believes the creed, when they know, or might pretty shrewdly judge, that the little creature is not yet a steadfast believer in anything, much less in Chris#’s going down into hell. Mark, they do not say merely that the babe shall believe the creed, but they affirm that he does; for they answer in the child’s name, “ All this we stead- fastly believe.” Not we steadfastly believe, but f, the little baby there, unconscious of all their professions and confessions of faith. In answer to the question, “ Wilt thou be baptized in this faith ?” they reply for the infant, “That is my desire.” Surely the infant has no desire in the matter, or at the least no one has been authorized to declare any desires on his behalf But this is not all; for then these godly, intelligent people next promise on behalf of the infant that “he shall obediently keep all God’s iments, and walk in the same all the days holy will and comman< of his life.’ Now, I ask you, dear friends, you who know what true religion means, can you walk in all God’s holy commandments yourselves? Dare you make this day a vow on your own part, that you would renounce the devil and all his works, the pomps and vanities of this wicked world, and all the sinful lusts of the flesh? Dare you, before God, make such a promise as that? You desire such holiness; you earnestly strive after it; but you look for it from God’s promise, not from your own. -If you dare make such vows, I doubt your knowledge of your own hearts and of the spirituality of God’s law. But even if you could do this for yourself, would you venture to make such a promise for any other person? —for the best-born infant on earth? Come, brethren, what say you? Is not your reply ready and plain? There is not room for two opinions among men determined to observe truth in all their ways and words. I can understand a simple, ignorant rustic, who has never learned to read, doing al this at the command of a priest and under the eye of a squire. I can even understand persons doing this when the Reformation was in its dawn, and men had newly crept out of the darkness of Popery; but I cannot understand, gracious, godly people HE if TH PALL io PLU eeaBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. standing at the font to insult the All-gracious Father with vows and promises framed upon a fiction, and involving practical falsehood. How dare intelligent believers in Christ to utter words which they know in their conscience to be wickedly aside from truth? When I shall be able to understand the process by which gracious men so accommodate their consciences, even then I shall have a confirmed belief that the God of truth never did and never will confirm a spiritual blessing of the highest order in connection with the utterance of such false promises and un- truthful vows. My brethren, does it not strike you that declara- tions so fictitious are not likely to be connected with a new birth wrought by the Spirit of truth ? I have not done with this point: I must take another case, and suppose the sponsors and others to be ungodly ; and that is no hard supposition, for many cases we know that godfathers and parents have no more thought of religion than that idolatrous hallowed stone around which they gather. When these sinners have taken their places, what are they about to say? Why, they are about to make the solemn vows I have already recounted in your hearing? ‘Totally irreligious they are, but yet they promise for the baby what they never did, and never thought of doing, for themselves, — they promise on behalf of this child, “that he will renounce the devil and all his works, and constantly believe God’s Holy Word, and obediently keep his commandments.” My brethren, do not think I speak severely here. Really, I think there is something here to make mockery for devils. Let every honest man lament that ever God’s church should tolerate such a thing as this, and that there should be found gracious people who will feel grieved because I, in all kindness of heart, re- buked the atrocity. Unregenerate sinners promising for a poor babe that he shall keep all God’s holy commandments, which they themselves wantonly break every day! How ean anything but the longsuffering of God endure this? What! not speak against it? The very stones in the street might cry out against the infamy of wicked men and women promising that another should renounce st the devil and all his works, while they themselves serve the devil24 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. and do his works with greediness! As a climax to all this, I am asked to believe that God accepts that wicked promise, and, as the result of it, regenerates that child. You cannot believe in regeneration by this operation, whether saints or sinners are the performers. Take them to be godly, then they are wrong for doing what their conscience must condemn; view them as un- godly, and they are wrong for promising what they know they cannot perform ; and in neither case can God accept such worship, much less infallibly append regeneration to such a baptism as this. But you will say, “Why do you cry out against it?” I ery out against it because I believe that baptism does not save the soul, and that the preaching of tt has a wrong and evil influence upon men. We meet with persons who, when we tell them that they must be born again, assure us that they were born again when they were baptized. The number of these persons is in- creasing, fearfully increasing, until all grades of society are mis- led by this belief. How can any man stand up in his pulpit and say “Ye must be born again” to his congregation, when he has already assured them, by his own “ unfeigned assent and consent ” to it, that they are themselves, every one of them, born again in baptism. What has he to do with them? Why, my dear friends, the gospel then has no voice; they have rammed this ceremony down its throat, and it cannot speak to rebuke sin. The man who has been baptized or sprinkled, says, “I am saved; I ama member of Christ, a child of God, and an inheritor of the king- dom of heaven. Who are you, that you should rebuke me? Call me to repentance ?—call me to a new life? What better life can I have ? for lam amember of Christ —a part of Christ’s body. What! rebuke me? Iam achild of God. Cannot you ~ see it in my face? No matter what my walk and conversation is, 1am a child of God. Moreover, I am an inheritor of the kingdom of heaven. It is true I drink and swear, and all that, but you know I am an inheritor of the kingdom of heaven; for when I die, though I live in constant sin, you will put me in the grave, and tell everybody that I died “in sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life.” TH a TTT eeBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 25 ad Now, what can be the influence of such preaching as this upon our beloved England? — upon my dear and _ blessed country ? What but the worst of ills? If I loved her not, but loved my- self most, I might be silent here ; but, loving England, I cannot and dare not; and having soon to render an account before my God, whose servant I hope I am, I must free myself from this evil, as well as from every other, or else on my head may be the doom of souls. Here let me bring in another point. It is a most fearful fact, that, 7 no age since the Reformation, has Popery made such fear- Jul strides in England as during the last few years. I had com- fortably believed that Popery was only feeding itself upon foreign subscriptions, upon a few titled perverts, and imported monks and nuns. I dreamed that its progress was not real. In fact, I have often smiled at the alarm of many of my brethren at the osrogress of Popery. But, my dear friends, we have been mis- sly mistaken. If you will read a valuable paper in the magazine called “ Christian Work,” those of you who are acquainted with it will be perfectly startled at its. revelations. This great city is now covered with a network of monks and rf sisters of mercy, and the conversions made are not 2 priests and = by ones or twos, but by scores, till England is being regarded as the most hopeful spot for Romish missionary enterprise in the whole worid; and at the present moment there is not a mission which is succeeding to anything like the extent which the Eng- lish mission is. I covet not their money, I despise their soph- istries, but I marvel at the way in which they gain their fands for the erection of their ecclesiastical buildings. It really is an alarming matter to see so many of our countrymen going off to that superstition which as a nation we once rejected, and which it was supposed we should never again receive. Popery,is mak- ing advances suchas you would never believe, though a spectator to you. Close to your very doors, perhaps even in chould tell it 3 m hot ;, you may have evidence ere long of what a your own houses, you may have eviaence ere long oO hat ¢ ~ aa e 2 e ° a Se A ade OS ge Dray ee He : peers iD march Romanism is making. And to what is it to be ascribed: I say, with every ground of probability, that there is no marvel 2 o26 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. that Popery should increase when you have two things to make it grow: first of all, the alschood of those who profess a faith which they do not believe, which 1s quite contrary to the hon- esty of the Romanist, who does through evil report and good report hold his faith ; an d then you have, secondly, this form of error known as baptismal regeneration, and commonly called Puseyism, which is not only Puseyism,” but Church-of-Eng- landism, because it is in the Prayer-Book, as plainly as words can express it, — you have this baptismal regeneration, preparing stepping-stones to make it easy for men to go to Rome. I have but to open my eyes a little to foresee Romanism rampant every- where in the future, since its germs are spreading everywhere in the present. In one of our courts of legislature, but last Tues- day, the Lord Chief Justice showed his superstition, by speaking of “the risk of the calamity of children dying unbaptized !” Among Dissenters you see a veneration for structures, a modified belief in the sacredness of places, which is all idolatry; for to believe in the sacredness of anything but of God and of his own Word, is to idolize, whether it is to believe in the sacredness of the men, the priests, or in the sacredness of the bricks and mor- tar, or of the fine linen, or what not, which you may use in the worship of God. I see this coming up everywhere —a belief in ceremony, a resting in ceremony, a veneration for altars, fonts, and churches, — a veneration so profound that we must not ven- ture upon a remark, or straightway of sinners we are chief. Here is the essence and soul of Popery, peeping up under the garb of a decent respect for sacred things. It is impossible but that the Church of Rome must spread, when we who are the watchdogs of the fold are silent, and others are gently and smoothly turfing the road, and making it as soft and smooth as possible, that converts may travel down to the nethermost hell of Popery. We want John Knox back again. Do not talk to me of mild and gentle men, of soft manners and squeamish words : we want the fiery Knox; and even though his vehemence should “ding our pulpits into blads,” it were well if he did but rouse our hearts to action. We want Luther, to tell men the truth ULE neaBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. oF unmistakably, in homely phrase.» The velvet has got into our ministers’ mouths of late, but we must unrobe ourselves of soft raiment, and truth must be spoken, and nothing but truth; for of all lies which have dragged millions down to hell, I look upon this as’ being one of the most atrocious, — that in a Protestant church there should be found those who swear that baptism saves the soul. Call a mana Baptist, or a Presbyterian, or a Dissenter, or a Churchman, — that is nothing to me: if he says that baptism saves the soul, out upon him, out upon him: he states what God never taught, what the Bible never laid down, and what ought never to be maintained by men who profess that the Bible, and the whole Bible, is the religion of Protestants. I have spoken thus much, and there will be some who will say, spoken thus much bitterly. Very well; be itso. Physic is often bitter, but it shall work well, and the physician is not bitter because his medicine is so; or if, he be accounted so, it will not matter, so long as the patient is cured; at all events, it is no business of the patient whether the physician is bitter or not: his business is with his own soul’s health. There is the truth, and I have told it to you; and if there should be one among you, or if there should be one among the readers of this sermon when it is printed, whois resting on baptism, or resting upon ceremonies of any sort, I do beseech you, shake off this venomous faith into the fire as Paul did the viper which fastened on his kand. I pray you do not rest on baptism. “No outward forms can make you clean: The leprosy lies deep within.” I do beseech you to remember that you must have a new heart and a right spirit, and baptism cannot give you these. You must turn from your sins and follow after Christ ; you must have such a faith as shall make your life holy and your speech devout, or else you have not the faith of God’s elect, and into God’s kingdom you shall never come. I pray you never rest ipon this wretched and rotten foundation, thts deceitful invention of antichrist. Oh! may God save you from it, and bring you to seek the true rock of refuge for weary souls.1} 98 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. } I come with much brevity, and I hope with much earnestness, in the second place, to say that FAITH IS THE INDISPENSABLE | REQUISITE TO SALVATION. “THe that believeth and is baptized | shall be saved ; he that believeth not shall be damned.” Faith is the one indispensable requisite for salvation. This faith is the gift of God. It is the work of the Holy Spirit. Some men believe not on Jesus; they believe not, because they are not of ‘hrist’s sheep, as he himself said unto them; but his sheep hear | his voice: he knows them and they follow him; he gives to | them eternal life, and they shall never perish, neither shall any pluck them out of his hand. What is this believing? Believing consists in two things. First there is an accrediting of the testemony of God concerning his Son. God tells you that his Son came snto the world and was made flesh; that he lived on earth for men’s sake; that after having spent his life in holiness he was offered up a propitiation for sin; that upon the cross he there and then made expiation — so made expiation for the sins of the world that “whosoever believeth in him shall not perish, but have everlasting life.” If you would be saved, you must accredit this testimony which God gives concerning his own Son. Hav- ing received this testimony, the next thing is to confide in it. Indeed, here lies, I think, the essence of saving faith, to rest your- self for eternal salvation upon the atonement and the righteous- ness of Jesus Christ, to have done once for all with all reliance upon feelings or upon doings, and to trust in Jesus Christ and in what he did for your salvation. This is faith, receiving of the truth of Christ: first knowing it to be true, and then acting upon that belief. Such a faith as this — such real faith as this— makes the man henceforth hate sin. Tow can he love the thing which made the Saviour bleed? It makes him live in holiness. How can he but seek to honor that God who has loved him so muth as to give his Son to die for him ? i This faith is spiritual in its nature and effects; it operates upon the entire man; it changes his heart, enlightens his judgment, and subdues his will; it subjects him to God’s supremacy, and makes him receive God’s Word as a little child, willing to receive COREE] PETTERS TATA ER ATT tea: Wena Pag LEE RAE BRBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 29 the truth upon the ¢pse dixit of the Divine One; it sanctifies his intellect, and makes him willing to be taught God’s Word ; it cleanses within ; it makes clean the inside of the cup and platter, and it beautifies without ; it makes clean the exterior conduct and the inner motive, so that the man, if his faith be true and real, becomes henceforth another man to what he ever was before. Now that such a faith as this should save the soul, is, I believe, reasonable ; yea, more, it is certain, for we have seen men saved by it in this very house of prayer. We have seen the. harlot lifted out of the Stygian ditch of her sin, and made an honest woman; we have seen the thief reclaimed ; we have known the drunkard, in hundreds of instances, to be sobered ; we have ob- served faith to work such a change, that all the neighbors who have seen it have gazed and admired, even though they hated it ; we have seen faith deliver men in the hour of temptation, and help them to consecrate themselves and their substance to God ; we have seen, and hope still to see yet more widely, deeds of heroic consecration to God and displays of witness-bearing against the common current of the times, which have proved to us that faith does affect the man, does save the soul. My hearers, if you would be saved, you must believe in the Lord Jesus Christ. Let me urge you with all my heart to look nowhere but to Christ crucified for your salvation. Oh! if you rest upon any ceremony, though it be not baptism — dif you rest upon any other than Jesus Christ — you must perish, as surely as this bock is true. I pray you believe not every spirit, but though J, or an angel fro heaven, preach any other doctrine than this, let him be accursed ; for this, and this alone, is the soul-saving truth which shall re- generate the world —‘“ He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved.” Away from all the tag-rags, wax candles, and mil- linery of Puseyism ! away from all the gorgeous pomp of Popery ! away from the fonts of Church-of-Englandism ! We bid you turn your eyes to that naked cross, where hangs as a bleeding man the Son of God. ‘‘ None but Jesus, none but Jesus Can do helpless sinners gaed.” 3?nA: PETIT ee iri toes BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. There is life in a. look at the Crucified ; there is life at this mo- ment for you. Whoever among you can believe in the great love cf God towards man in Christ Jesus, you shall be saved. If you can believe that our great Father desireth us to come to him —that he panteth for us — that he calleth us every day with the loud voice of his Son’s wounds ; if you can believe now that in Christ there is pardon for transgressions past, and cleansing for years to come; if you can trust him to save you, you have already the marks of regeneration. The work of salvation is commenced in you, so far as the Spirit’s work is concerned; it is finished in you, so far as Christ’s work is concerned. Oh! I would plead with you, lay hold on Jesus Christ. This is the foundation: build on it. This is the rock of refuge: fly to ite pray you fly to it now. Life is short: time speeds with eagle’s wing. Swift as the dove pursued by the hawk, fly, fly, poor sin- ner, to God’s dear Son: now touch the hem of his garment ; now look into that dear face, once marred with sorrows for you; look into those eyes, once shedding tears for you. Trust him, and if you find him false, then you must perish; but false you never will find him while this word standeth true, “ He that be- lieveth and is baptized shall be saved; but he that believeth not shall be damned.” God give us this vital, essential faith, with- out which there is no salvation. Baptized, re-baptized, circum- cised, confirmed, fed upon sacraments, and buried in consecrated ground —ye shall all perish except ye believe in him. The Word is express and plain ; he that believeth not may plead his baptism, may plead anything he likes, “ But he that believeth not shall be damned;” for him there is nothing but the wrath of God, the flames of hell, eternal perdition. So Christ declares, and so must it be. But now to close, there are some who say, “Ah! but baptism is in the text; where do you put that?” That shall be another point, and then we have done. THE BAPTISM IN THE TEXT IS ONE EVIDENTLY CONNECTED witH rarra. “He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved.” It strikes me, there is no supposition here that anybody h a re I Aa APUUEAVURGTaaCGuivibeseaeepea:BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 31 would be baptized who did not believe; or if there be sucha supposition, it is very clearly laid down that his baptism will be of no use to him, for he will be damned, baptized or not, unless he believes. The baptism of the text seems to me, my brethren, —if you differ from me I am sorry for it, but I must hold my Opinion, and out with it, —it seems to me that baptism is con- nected with, nay, directly follows belief. I would not insist too much upon the order of the words; but, for other reasons, I think that baptism should follow believing. At any rate, it effectually avoids the error we have been combating. A man who knows that he is saved by believing in Christ does not, when he is bap- tized, lift his baptism into a saving ordinance. In fact, he is the very best protester against that mistake, because he holds that he has no right to be baptized until he is saved. He bearsa testimony against baptismal regeneration in his being baptized as professedly an already regenerate person. Brethren, the baptism here meant is a baptism connected with faith, and to this baptism I will admit there is very much ascribed in Scrip- ture. Into that question I am not going; but I do find some very remarkable passages in which baptism is spoken of very strongly. I find this: “ Arise, and be baptized, and wash away thy sins, calling on the name of the Lord.” I find as much as this elsewhere. I know that believer’s baptism itself does not wash away sin, yet it is so the outward sign and emblem of it to the believer, that the thing visible may be described as the thing signified. Just as our Saviour said, “This is my body,” when it was not his body, but bread; yet, inasmuch as it represented his body, it was fair and right according to the usage of language to say, “ Take, eat, this is my body.” And so, inasmuch as bap- tism to the believer representeth the washing of sin — it may be called the washing of sin; not that it is so, but that it is to saved souls the outward symbol and representation of what is done by the power of the Holy Spirit in the man who believes in Chrisé What connection has this baptism with faith? I think it has just this, baptism is the avowal of faith; the man was Christ’sUTHER eae 32 BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. soldier, but now in baptism he puts on his regimentals. The man believed in Christ, but his faith remained between God and his own soul. In baptism he says to the baptizer, “I believe in Jesus Christ;” he says to the church, “I unite with you asa believer in the common truths of Christianity ;” he saith to the onlooker, “ Whatever you may do, as for me, I will serve the Lord.” It is the avowal of his faith. Next, we think baptism is also to the believer a testimony of his faith; he does in baptism tell the world what he believes. gc Tam about,” saith he, “to be buried in water. I believe that the Son of God was metaphorically baptized in suffering; I be- lieve he was literally dead and buried.” To rise again out of the water sets forth to all men that he believes in the resurrec- tion of Christ. There is a showing forth in the Lord’s Supper of Christ’s death, and there is a showing forth in baptism of Christ’s burial and resurrection. It is a type, a sign, a symbol, a mirror to the world, —a looking-glass, in which religion is as it were reflected. We say to the onlooker, when he asks what is the meaning of this ordinance, “ We mean to set forth our faith that Christ was buried, and that he rose again from the dead ; and we avow this death and resurrection to be the ground of our trust.” Again, baptism is also Paith’s taking her proper place. It is, or should be, one of her first acts of obedience. Reason looks at baptism, and says, “ Perhaps there is nothing in it; it cannot do me any good.” “True,” says Faith, “and therefore I will observe it. If it did me some good, my selfishness would make me do it; but inasmuch as to my sense there is no good in it, since I am bidden by my Lord thus to fulfil all righteousness, it is my first public declaration that a’ thing which looks to be un- reasonable and seems to be unprofitable, being commanded by God, is law to me. If my Master had told me to pick up six stones and lay them in a row I would do it, without demanding of him, ‘ What good will it do?’ Cuz bono? is no fit question for soldiers of Jesus. The very simplicity and apparent use- Jessness of the ordinance should make the believer say, ‘There- a TALE TE En, eaes aBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 33 fore I do it because it becomes the better test to me of my obedience to my Master.’” When you tell your servant to do something, and he cannot comprehend it, if he turns round anc says, “ Please, sir, what for?” you are quite clear that he hardly understands the relation between master and servant. So when God tells me to do a thing, if I say, “ What for?” I cannot have taken the place which Faith ought to occupy, which is that of simple obedience to whatever the Lord hath said. Baptism is commanded, and Faith obeys because it is commanded, and thus takes her proper place. Once more, baptism is a refreshment to faith. While we are made up of body and soul as we are, we shall need some means by which the body shall sometimes be stirred up to co-work with the soul. In the Lord’s Supper my faith is assisted by the out- ward and visible sign. In the bread and in the wine I see no superstitious mystery: I see nothing but bread and wine; but in that bread and wine I do see to my faith an assistant. Through the sign my faith sees the thing signified. So in baptism there is no mysterious efficacy in the baptistry or in the water. We attach no reverence to the one or to the other; but we do see in the water and in the baptism such an assistance as brings home to our faith most manifestly our being buried with Christ, and our rising again in newness of life with him. Explain baptism thus, dear friends, and there is no fear of Popery rising out of it. Explain it thus, and we cannot suppose any soul will be led to trust to it; but it takes its proper place among the ordimances of God’s house. ‘To lift it up in the other way, and say men are saved by it — ah! my friends, how much of mischief that one false- hood has done and may do, eternity alone will disclose. Would to God another George Fox would spring up, in all his quaint simplicity and rude honesty, to rebuke the idol-worship of this age; to rail at their holy bricks and mortar, holy lecturns, holy altars, holy surplices, right reverend fathers, and I know not what, These things are not holy. God is holy; his truth is holy: holiness belongs not to the carnal and the material, but to the spiritual. Oh that a trumpet tongue would ery out against3b BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. the superstition of the age! I cannot, as George Fox did, give up baptism and the Lord’s Supper; but I would infinitely sooner do it, counting it the smaller mistake of the two,than perpetrate and assist in perpretrating the uplifting of baptism and the Lord’s Supper out of their proper place. O my beloved friends, the comrades of my struggles and witnessings, cling to the salvation of faith, and abhor the salvation of priests. If I am not mistaken, the day will come when we shall have to fight for a simple spirit- ual religion far more than wedo now. We have been cultivating friendship with those who are either unscriptural in creed or else dishonest; who either believe baptismal regeneration, or profess that they do, and swear before God that they do when they do not. The time is come when there shall be no more truce or parley between God’s servants and time-servers. ‘The time is come when those who follow God must follow God, and those who try to trim and dress themselves and find out a way which is pleasing to the flesh and gentle to carnal desires, must go their way. A great winnowing-time is coming to God’s saints, and we shall be clearer one of these days than we now are from union with those who are upholding Popery, under the pretence of teaching Protestantism. We shall be clear, I say, of those who teach salvation by baptism, instead of salvation by the blood of our blessed Master, Jesus Christ. Oh, may the Lord gird up your loins! Believe me, it is no trifle. It may be that on this eround Armageddon shall be fought. Here shall come the great battle between Christ and his saints on the one hand, and the world and forms and ceremonies on the other. If we are over- come here, there may be years of blood and persecution, and toss- ing to and fro between darkness and light; but if we are brave and bold, and flinch not here, but stand to God’s truth, the future of England may be bright and glorious. Oh for a truly reformed Church in England, and a godly race to maintain it! The world’s future depends on it under God; for in proportion as truth is marred at home, truth is maimed abroad. Out of any system which teaches salvation by baptism must spring infidelity, @n infidelity which the false church already seems willing te PUTT OTTER LT teen aBAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 35 nourish and foster beneath her wing. God save this favored land from the brood of her own established religion. Brethren, stand fast in the liberty wherewith Christ has made you free, and be not afraid of any sudden fear nor calamity when it cometh; for he who trusteth to the Lord, mercy shall compass him about, and he who is faithful to God and Christ shall hear it said at the last, “ Well done, good and faithful servant: enter thou into the joy of the Lord.” May the Lord bless this word, for Christ’s sake. Not. — Having been informed that the whole of the burial service is not usually read at executions, I have, for the sake of fairness, altered the pas- sage upon page 19, although it strikes me that I might justly have retained it, since the Rubric of the Church, and not the practice of some of its ministers, is that with which we must deal. The Rubric says, “ The office ensuing is not to be used for any that die unbaptized, or excommunicate, or have laid violent hands upon themselves.”? The victim of our capital punishment is not by this Rubric shut out from the privileges (7) of the Anglican burial service, unless his condemnation may be viewed as tantamount to excom- munication, which I can hardly think to be the case, sinee any condemned persons receive the sacrament.SERMON IL. CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. ‘AND THEY BROUGHT YOUNG CHILDREN UNTO HIM, THAT HE SHOULD TOUCH THEM: AND HIS DISCIPLES REBUKED THOSE THAT BROUGHT THEM. BUT WEEN JESUS SAW IT, HE WAS MUCH DISPLEASED, AND SAID UNTO THEM, SUFFER THE LITTLE CHILDREN TO COME UNTO ME, AND FORBID THEM NOT: FOR OF SUCH IS THE KINGDOM OF GOD. VERILY I SAY UNTO YOU, WHOSOEVER SHALL NOT RE- OKIVE THE KINGDOM OF GOD AS A LITTLE CHILD, HE SHALL NOT ENTER THEREIN. AND HE TOOK THEM UP IN HIS ARMS, PUT HIS HANDS UPON THEM, AND BLESSED THEM.’? — Mark x. 138-I6. My attention has been specially directed to this passage by the fact that it has been quoted against me by most of the authors of those sermons and letters which are, by a stretch of imagination, called “replies” to my sermon upon “ Baptismal Regeneration.” Replies they certainly are not, except to one another. I marvel that a Church so learned as the Anglican cannot produce something a little more worthy of the point in hand. The various authors may possibly have read my dis- course, but by reason of mental absorption in other meditations, or perhaps through the natural disturbance of mind caused by guilty consciences, they have talked with confusion of words, and have only been successful in refuting themselves and answering one another. They must have been aiming at something far removed from my sermon, or else I must give them credit for being the worst shots that ever practised with polemical artillery. They do not so much as touch the target in its extreme corners, much less in its centre. The whole question is, Do you believe UHL ELUTE ERA aT eaCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 37 that baptism regenerates? If so, prove that your belief is criptural! Do you believe that baptism does not regenerate ? Then justify your swearing that it does? Who will reply to this? He shall merit and bear the palm. The scripture before us is by several of the champions on the other side exhibited to the people as a rebuke to me. Their reasoning is rather ingenious than forcible: forsooth, because the disciples incurred the displeasure of Jesus Christ by keeping back the little children from coming to him, therefore Jesus Christ is greatly displeased with me, and with all others like me, for keeping children from the font, and the performance there en- acted; and specially displeased with me for exposing the Angli- can aiveaiine of baptismal regeneration! Observe the reasoning, — because Jesus was much displeased with the disciples for hindering parents from seeking a blessing upon their children, herefore he is much displeased with us who do not believe in godfathers and godmothers, or the signing of the cross on the infant brow. I must say at the outset that this is rather a leay of argument, and would not ordinarily be thought conclusive ; but this we may readily overlook, since we have long ceased to hope for reasonable arguments from those who support a cause based upon absurdity. My brethren, I concluded that there must be something forcible in such a text as this, or my opponents would not be so eager to secure it. I have therefore carefully looked at it, and, as I have viewed it, it has opened up to me with a sacred splendor of grace. In this incident the very heart of Chit 3 is published to poor sinners, and we may clearly perceive the freeness and the fulness of the mighty grace of the Redeemer of men, who is willing to receive the youngest child as well as the oldest man; and is greatly displeased with any who would keep back seeking souls from coming to him, or loving hearts from bringing others to receive his blessing. I. In handling this text, in what I believe to be its true light, I shallseommence, first of all, by observing that THIS TEXT HAS NOT THE SHADOW OF THE SHADE OF THE GHOST OF A CONNEC- 4eeeeeuuee 88 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. | TION WITH BAPTISM. ‘There is no line of connection so substan- | tial as a spider’s web between this incident and baptism, or at 4 least my imagination is not vivid enough to conceive one. ‘This I will prove to you, if you will follow me for a moment. It is very clear, dear friends, that these young children were | not brought to Jesus Onrist by their friends to be baptized. “They i srought young children to him, that he should touch them,” says Mark. Matthew describes the children as being brought, “ that he would put his hands on them and pray ;” but there is not a hint about their being baptized: no godfathers or godmothers had been provided, and no sign of the cross was requested. Surely the parents themselves knew tolerably well what it was they desired, and they would not have expressed themselves so dubiously as to ask him to touch them, when they meant that he should baptize them. The parents evidently had no thought of regeneration by baptism, and brought the children for quite another end. | In the next place, ¢f they brought the children to Jesus Christ to be baptized, they brought them to the wrong person; for the Evangelist John, in the fourth chapter and the second verse, expressly assures us that Jesus Christ baptized not, but his dis- ciples. This settles the question, once for all, and proves beyond all dispute that there is no connection between this incident and baptism. But you will say, “Perhaps they brought the children to be baptized by the disciples?” Brethren, the disciples were not in the habit of baptizing infants, and this is clear from the case in hand. If they had been in the habit of baptizing infants, would they have rebuked the parents for bringing them? If it had been a customary thing for parents to bring children with such an object, would the disciples, who had been in the constant habit of performing the ceremony, have rebuked them for attending to it? Would any Church clergyman rebuke parents for bringing their children to be baptized? If he did so, he would act ab- surdly contrary to his own views and practice; and we cannot therefore imagine that if infant baptism had been the accepted HUHNE ATCT TT eaeCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT’ TO THE FONT. 39 practice, the disciples could have acted so absurdly as to rebuke the parents for bringing their little ones. It is obvious that such could not have been the practice of the disciples who were rebuked. Moreover, and here is an argument which seems to me to have great force in it, when Jesus Christ rebuked his disciples, then was the time, if ever in his life, to have openly spoken con- cerning infant baptism, godfathers and godmothers, and the whole affair. If he wished to rebuke his disciples most effectually, how could he have done it better than by saying, “ Wherefore keep ye these children back? I have ordained that they shall be baptized; I have expressly commanded that they shall be regenerated and made members of my body in baptism: how dare you, then, in opposition to my will, keep them backr” But no, dear friends: our Saviour never said a word about “ the laver of regeneration,” or, “the quickening dew,” when he rebuked them — not a single sentence. Had he done so, the season would have been most appropriate if it had been his intention to teach the practice; in the whole of his life, there is no period in which a discourse upon infant regeneration in baptism could have been more appropriate than on this occasion; and yet not a single sentence about it comes from the Saviour’s lips. To close all, Jesus Christ did not baptize the children. Our evangelist does not inform us that he exclaimed, “ Where are the godfathers and godmothers?” it is not recorded that he called for a font, or a Prayer-Book?” No; but “ He took them up in his arms, put his hands upon them, and blessed them,” and dismissed them without a drop of the purifying element. Now, if this event had any connection with baptism whatever, it was the most appropriate occasion for infant baptism to have been practised. Why, it would have ended forever the controversy. There may be some men in the world who would have raised the question of engrafting infants into the body of Christ’s church by baptism after all this, but I am certain no honest man would have done so who reverently accepted Christ as his spir- itual leader. I, my brethren, would sooner be dumb than speak40 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. a single word against an ordinance which Christ himself institu- ted and practised; and if on this occasion he had but sprinkled one of these infants, given him a Christian name, signed him with a cross, accepted the vows of his godparents, and thanked God for his regeneration, then the question would have been settled forever, and some of us would have been saved a world of abuse, besides escaping no end of mistakes, for which we are condemned, in the judgment of many good people, for whom we have some affection, though for their judgment we have no re- spect. So you see the parents did not ask baptismal regeneration ; Christ did not personally baptize ; the disciples were not in the habit of baptizing infants, or else they would not have rebuked the parents; Christ did not speak about baptism on the occasion, and he did not baptize the little ones. I will puta case to you which may exhibit the weakness of my opponents’ position. Suppose a denomination should rise up which should teach that babes should be allowed to partake at the Lord’s Table. Such teaching could plead precedents of ereat antiquity, for you are aware that at one period infant com- munion was allowed, and logically too; for if an infant has a right to baptism, it has a right to come to the Lord’s Table. For years children were brought to the Lord’s Table, but rather in- convenient accidents occurred, and therefore the thing was dropped as being unseemly. But if some one should revive the error, and try to prove that infants are to come to the Lord’s Supper, he might prove it from this passage quite as clearly as our friends can prove infant baptism from it. Moreover,do not forget that even if infant baptism could be proved from this text, the cere- mony prescribed in the Prayer-Book is quite as far from being established. Whether the baptism of infants may or may not be proved from other Scriptures I cannot now stay to inquires but even if it can be, what are we to say for godfathers or god- mothers, or the assertion that in baptism children are made “members of Christ, children of God, and inheritors of the king- dom of heaven?” Truly I might as well prove vaccination from The PelePRELL CREP RPE? aaa as] HaeacaaiiaieeCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 41 the text before me, as the performance which the Prayer-Book calls “infant baptism.” I do not hesitate to say that I could prove any earthly thing, if I might but have such reasoning granted to me as that which proves infant baptism from this passage. There isno possible connection between the two. The teaching of the passage is very plain and very clear, and bap- tism has been imported into it, and not found in it. As a quaint writer has well said, “These doctrines are raised from the text as our collectors raise a tax upon indigent, nonsolvent people, by coming armed with the law and a constable to distrain for that which is not to be had. Certainly never was text so strained and distrained to pay what it never owed; never man so racked to confess what he never thought; never was a pumice-stone so squeezed for water which it never held.” Still hundreds will catch at this straw, and cry, “ Did not Jesus say, ‘ Suffer the little children to come unto me?’” ‘To these we give this one word, See that ye read the word as it is written, and you will find no water in it, but Jesus only. Are the water and Christ the same thing? Is bringing a child to afont bringing the child to Christ ? Nay, here is a wide difference, as wide as between Rome and Je- rusalem, as wide as between antichrist and Christ, between false doctrine and the gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. II. Now for our second, and much more pleasing task, WHY, THEN, WAS JESUS CHRIST DISPLEASED ? Read the passage, and at once the answer comes to you. He was displeased with his disciples for two reasons: first, because they discouraged those who would bring others to him ; and, secondly, because they discouraged those who themselves were anxious to come to him. They did not discourage those who were coming to a font, they discouraged those who were coming to Jesus. There is.a mighty distinction ever to be held between the font and Christ, between the sprinkling of the priest and living faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. First, his disciples discouraged those who would bring others to him. This isa great sin, and wherever it is committed Jesus 4%42 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT Christ is greatly displeased ; for a true desire to see others saved is wrought in the believer by God the Holy Spirit, who thus renders one of the chosen the means of bringing wandering sheep into the fold. In this case they discouraged those who would bring children to him to be blessed. How can we bring children to Jesus Christ to be blessed? We cannot do it ina corporeal sense, for Jesus is not here, “he is risen; ” but we can bring our children in a true, real, and spiritual sense. We take them up in the arms of our prayer. I hope many of us, so soon as our children saw the light, if not before, presented them to God with this anxious prayer, that they might sooner die than live to disgrace their father’s God. We only desired children that we might in them live over again another life of service to God; and when we looked into their young faces, we never asked wealth for them, nor fame, nor anything else, but that they might be dear unto God, and that their names might be written in the Lamb’s Book of Life. We did then bring our children to Christ, as far as we could do it, by presenting them before God, by earnest prayer on their behalf. And have we ceased to bring them to Christ? Nay, I hope we seldom bow the knee without praying for our children. Our daily ery is, “ Oh that they might live before thee!” God knows that nothing would give us more joy than to see evidence of their conversion; our souls would almost leap out of our bodies with Joy, if we should but know that they were the children of the living God. Nor has this privilege been denied to us, for there are some here who can re- Joice in a converted household. Truly we can say, with the Apostle Paul, “I have no greater Joy than this, that my children walk in the truth.” We continue, therefore, to bring them to Christ by daily, constant, earnest prayer on their behalf. So soon as they become of years capable of understanding the things of God, we endeavor to bring them to Christ by teaching them the truth. Hence our Sabbath-schools, hence the use of the Bible, and family prayer, and catechising at home. Any person who shall forbid us to pray for our children, will incur Christ’s high displeasure ; and any who shall say, “Do not teach yourCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 43 children ; they will be converted in God’s own time, if it be his purpose ; therefore leave them to run wild in the streets,” will certainly both “sin against the child” and the Lord Jesus. We might as well say, “If that piece of ground is to grow a harvest, it will do so if it be God’s good pleasure; therefore leave it, and let the weeds spring up and cover it: do not endeavor for a moment to kill the weeds, or sow the good seed.” Why, such reasoning as this would be not only cruel to our children, but grievously displeasing to Christ. Parents, I do hope you are all endeavoring to bring your children to Christ by teaching them the things of God. Let them not be strangers to the plan of salvation. Never let it be said that a child of yours reached years in which his conscience could act, and he could judge be- tween good and evil, without knowing the doctrine of the atone- ment, without understanding the great substitutionary work of Christ. Set before your child life and death, hell and heaven, judgment and mercy, his own sin, and Christ’s most precious blood; and as you set these before him, labor with him, persuade him, as the apostle did his congregation, with tears and weeping, to turn unto the Lord; and your prayers and supplications shall be heard, so that the Spirit of God shall bring them to Jesus. How much more like the Scripture will such labors be than if you were to sing the following very pretty verse which disfigures Roundell Palmer’s “ Book of Praise ! ”— “Though thy conception was in sin, A sacred bathing thou has had; And though thy birth unclean has been, A blameless babe thou now art made. Sweet baby, then forbear to weep; Be still, my dear, sweet baby, sleep.”’ I cannot tell you how much I owe to the solemn words of my good mother. It was the custom on Sunday evenings, while we were yet little children, for her to stay at home with us, and then we sat round the table and read verse by verse, and she explained the Scripture to us. After that was done, then came the time of pleading ; there was alittle piece of “ Alleyn’s Alarm,”44. CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. | or of “ Baxter’s Call tothe Unconverted,” and this was read with | | pointed observations made to each of us as we sat round the ih | table; and the question was asked how long it would be before i | we would think about our state, how long before we would seek | the Lord. Then came a mother’s prayer, and some of the | | words of a mother’s prayer we shall never forget, even when a our hair is gray. I remember on one occasion her praying thus: “Now, Lord, if my children go on in their sins, it will not be from ignorance that they perish, and my soul must bear a swift witness against them at the day of judgment, if they lay not hold of Christ.” That thought of a mother’s bearing swift witness against me, pierced my conscience and stirred my heart. This pleading with them for God and with God for them is the true way to bring children to Christ. Sunday-school teachers, you have a high and noble work; press forward init! In our schools you do not try to bring children to the baptistry for regeneration, you point them away from ceremonies ; if I know the teachers of this school aright, I know you are trying to bring your classes to Christ. Let Christ be the sum and substance of your teaching in the school. Young men and young women, in your classes lift up Christ, lift him up on high; and if any- body shall say to you, “Why do you talk thus to the children?” you can say, “ Because my soul yearns towards them, and I pant for their conversion ;” and if any should afterward object, you remember that Jesus is greatly displeased with them, and not you, for you only obey the injunction, “ Feed my lambs.” The case in our text is that of children ; but objectors rise up who disapprove of endexvors to bring any sort of people to Christ by faith and prayer. There are some who spend their nights in the streets seeking after the poor harlot, and I have heard many harsh observations made about their work; some will say it is ridiculous to expect that any of those who spend their days in debauchery should be really converted. We are told that the most of those who are taken into the refuges go back and be- come as depraved as ever; I believe that to be a very. sad and solemn truth ; but I believe, if I or any one else shall urge that or eae CATT TttT TOLER EEE PECHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 45 anything else as a reason why my brethren should not seek the harlot, that Jesus would be greatly displeased ; for any man who stands between a soul-seeker and the divine object of getting a blessing for the sinner’s soul, excites the wrath of Christ, Some have hopes of our convicts and criminals ; but every now and then there is an outcry against those who even believe it possible for a transport or a ticket-of-leave man to be converted. But Jesus is greatly displeased with any who shall say about the work, “It is too hard; it is impossible.” My brethren in Christ, labor for souls of all sorts; for your children, and for those who are past the threescore years and ten. Seek out the drunkard ; go after the thief; despise not the poor, down-trod- den slave; let every race, let every color, let every age, let every profession, let every nation, be the object of your soul’s prayers. You live in this world, I hope, to bring souls to Jesus; you are Christ’s magnets, with which, through his Holy Spirit, he will attract hearts of steel: you are his heralds ; you are to invite wanderers to come to the banquet: you are his messengers ; you are to compel them to come in that his house may be filled ; and if the devil tells you you will not succeed, and if the world tells you that you are too feeble and have not talent enough, never mind ; Jesus would be greatly displeased with you if you should take any heed to them; and meanwhile he is greatly displeased with your adversaries for endeavoring to stop you. Beloved, this is why Jesus Christ was greatly displeased. A second ground of displeasure must be noticed. These chil- dren, it strikes me, and I think there is good reason for the be- lief, themselves desired to come to Christ to obtain a blessing. They are called “little children,” which term does not necessarily involve their being infants of six months or a year ; indeed, it is clear, as I will show in a moment, that they were not such little children as to be unconscious babes. They were “infants,” ac- cording to our version of Luke; but then you know the English word “infant” includes a considerable range of age, for every person in his minority is legally considered to be an infant, though he may be able to talk to any amount. We do not, how-46 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. ever, desire to translate the text with so great a license. There is no necessity in the language used that these should have been anything but what they are said to be — “ little children.” It is evident they could walk, because in Luke it is said, “Jesus called them ;” the gender of the Greek pronoun used there refers it to the children, not to the persons, nor to the disciples. Jesus called them, he called the children, which he would hardly have done if they could not comprehend his call; and he said, “ Suffer the little children to come,” which implies that they could come, and doubtless they did come, with cheerful faces, expecting to get the blessing. These perhaps may have been some of those very children who, a short time after, pulled down branches from the trees, and strewed them in the way, and cried, “ Ho- sanna,” when the Saviour said, “ Out of the mouths of babes and sucklings hast thou ordained strength.” Now Christ was greatly displeased with his disciples for pushing back these boys and girls. They did as some old folks do now-a-days, who cry out — “Stand back, you boys and girls! we do not want you here ; we do not want children to fill up the place; we only want grown-up people.” They pushed them back; they thought that Christ would have too much to do if he attended to the juveniles. Here comes out this principle, that we must expect Christ’s dis- pleasure if we attempt to keep anybody back from coming to Christ, even though it be the youngest child. You ask how per- sons can come to Christ now? They cannot come corporeally, but they can come by simple prayer and humble faith. Faith is the way to Jesus, baptism is not. When Jesus says, ‘‘ Come unto me all ye that labor and are heavy laden,” he did not mean, “be baptized,” did he? No; and so when he said, “ Suffer the little children to come unto me,” he did not mean, “ Baptize them,’ did he? Coming to Jesus Christ is quite a different thing from coming to a font. Coming to Christ means laying hold upon Christ with the hand of faith; looking to him for my life, my pardon, my salvation, my everything. If there be a poor little child here who is saying in her little heart, or his little heart, “I would like to come to Christ; oh that I might be par- MIE THT ATTTTnT eeCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 47 doned while I am yet a little one!” — come, little lamb ; come, and welcome. Did I hear your cry? Was it this? “Gentle Jesus, meek and mild, Look upon a little child; Pity my simplicity, Suffer me to come to thee.” Dear little one, Jesus will not despise your lispings, nor will his servant keep you back. Jesus calls you; come and receive his blessing. If any of you say a word to keep the young heart back, Jesus will be displeased with you. Now I am afraid some do that ; those, for instance, who think that the gospel is not for little children. Many of my brethren, I am sorry to say, preach in such a way that there is no hope of children ever getting any good by their preaching. I cannot glory in learning or eloquence, but in this one thing I may rejoice, that there is always a num- ber of happy children here, who are quite as attentive as any of my audience. Ido love to think that the gospel is suitable to little children. “There are boys and girls in many of our Sab- badi-school classes down below stairs who are as truly converted ta Srod as any of us. Nay, and if you were to speak with them ak-out the things of God, though you should get to the knotty peints of election and predestination, you would find those boys and girls well taught in the things of the kingdom; they know free will from free grace, and you cannot puzzle them when you come to talk about the work of Jesus and the work of the Spirit, for they can discern between things which differ. But a minis- ter who preaches as though he never wanted to bring children to Christ, and shoots right over the little ones’ heads, I do think Jesus is displeased with him. Then there are others who doubt whether children ever will be converted. ‘They do not look upon it as a thing likely to happen; and whenever they hear of a believing child, they hold up their hands at the prodigy, and say, “What a wonder of grace!” It ought to be, and in those churches where the gospel is simply preached, it is as common a thing for children to be converted as for grown-up people to be brought to Christ. Oth-48 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST. NOT TO THE FONT. i | ers begin to doubt the truth of juvenile conversions. They say, i | “ They are very young — can they understand the gospel? Is it | not merely an infantile emotion, a mere profession? ” My | brethren, you have no more right to suspect the sincerity of the young than to mistrust the gray-headed ; you ought to receive them with the same open-breasted confidence with which you receive others when they profess to have found the Saviour. Do, I pray you, whenever you see the faintest desire in your children, go down on your knees, as your servant does, when the fire is almost out, and blow the spark with your own breath; seek by prayer to fan that spark to a flame. Do not despise any godly remark the child may make. Do not puff thy child up on account of the goodness of the remark, lest you make him vain and so injure him, but do encourage him; let his first little prayers be noticed by you; though you may not like to teach him a form of prayer, —I shall not care if you do not, — yet teach him what prayer is; tell him to express his desires in his own words, and when he does so, join ye in it.and plead with God on his behalf that your little one may speedily find true peace in a Saviour’s blood. You must not, unless you would displease my Master, keep back the smailest child that longs to come to Christ. Here let us observe that the principle is of general applications you must not hinder any awakened soul from seeking the Saviour. O my brethren and sisters, I hope we havé such a love for souls, such an instinct within us to desire to see the travail of Christ’s soul, that, instead of putting stumbling-blocks in the way, we would do the best we could to gather out the stones. On Sab- bath-days I have labored to clear up the doubts and fears which afflict coming sinners; I have entreated God the Holy Spirit to enable me so to speak, that those things which hindered you from coming to the Saviour might be removed; but how sad must be the case of those who delight themselves in putting stunibling-blocks in men’s way. ‘The doctrine of election, for in- stance, a great and glorious truth, full of comfort to God’s people — how often is that made to frighten sinners from Jesus! There is a way of preaching that doctrine, in which you make it put onCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 49 a black and ugly face, and stand with a drawn sword, and say, “You must not come unless you know you are one of God’s elect.” That is not the way to preach the doctrine. The true way of preaching it is, “ God hasa chosen people, and I hope you are one of them; come, lay hold on Jesus, put your trust.in him.” Then there be others who preach up frames and feelings as a preparation for Christ. They do in effect say, “Unless you ave felt so much depression of spirit, or experienced a certain quantity of brokenness of heart, you must not come to Christ,” instead of declaring that whosoever will is permitted to come, and that the true way of coming to Christ is not with a qualifica- tion of frames and feelings and mental depressions, but just as you are. Oh! it is my soul’s delight to preach a gospel which has ax open door to it, to preach a mercy-seat which has no veil before it; it is rent in twain, and now the biggest sinner out of hell, who desires to come, is welcome. You who are eighty years of age, and have hated Christ all the time, if now the Spirit of God makes you willing to come, Christ seems to say, “ Suffer the eray-headed to come unto me, and forbid them not:” while to you little children he stretches out his arms in the same eas “ Suffer the little children to come unto me.” O my beloved, se it that your heart lo: igs to come to Christ, and not to ceremonies * I stand here this day to cry, “Come ye to the cross, not to the font.” When I forg%t to lift up the Lord Jesus, and to cast down the forms of man’s devising, “let my right hand forget her cunning,” and “ let my tongue cleave to the roof of my mouth.” ** None but Jesus, none but Jesus, Can do helpless sinners good.” The font is a mockery and an imposition if it be put before Christ. If you have baptism after you have come to Christ, well and good ; but to point you to it either as being Christ, or as being inevi- tably connected with Christ, or as being the place to. find Christ, is nothing better than to go back to the begg carly elements of the old Romish harlot, instead of standing in the “ liberty w herewith Christ hath made us free,” and bidding the sinner to come as a sinner to Christ Jesus, and to Christ Jesus alone. aDOT HOEEE 50 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. Ill. In the third and last place, let us also gather from our text that WHEN WE DISCOURAGE ANY, WE ALWAS GO UPON WRONG GROUNDS. Here was the case of children. J suppose that the grounds upon which the apostles kept back the children would be one of these, — either that the children could not re- ceive a blessing, or else that they could not receive it worthily. Did they imagine that these little children could not receive the blessing? Perhaps so, for they thought them too young. Now, brethren, that was a wrong ground to go upon ; for these children could receive the blessing, and they did receive it, for Jesus took them in his arms and blessed them. If I keep back a child from coming to Christ on the ground that he is too young, I do it in the face of facts; because there have been children brought to Christ at an extremely early period. You who are acquainted with Janeway’s “Tokens for Children,” have noticed very many beautiful instances of early conversion. Our dear friend Mrs. Rogers, in that book of hers, “The Folded Lamb,” gave a sweet picture of a little son of hers, soon folded in the Saviour’s bosom above, who, as early as two or three years of age, rejoiced and knew the Saviour. I do not doubt at all, I cannot doubt it, because one has seen such cases, that children of two or three years of age may have a precocity of knowledge and of grace, a forwardness which in almost every case has be- tokened early death, but which has been perfectly marvellous to those who have talked with them. The fact is that we do not all at the same age arrive at that degree of mental stature which the things of God, Children have been reported as reading Latin, Greek, and other languages, is necessary for understanding at five or six years of age. I do not know that such early schol- arship is any great blessing: it is better not to reach that point so soon; but some children are all that their minds ever will be at three or four, and then they go home to heaven; and so long as the mind has been brought up to such a condition that it is capable of understanding, it is also capable of faith, if the Holy Spirit shall implant it. To suppose that he ever did give faith to an unconscious babe is ridiculous ; that there can be any PDiCMT Hee tTau erage ragqui tineCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 51 faith in a child that knows nothing whatever I must always take ground to doubt, for “ How shall they believe without a preacher ?” And yet they are brought up to make a profession in their long- clothes, when they have never heard a sermon in their lives But those dear children to whom I have before referred, have understood the preacher, have understood the truth, have re- joiced in the truth, and their first young lispings have been as full of grace as those glorious expressions of aged saints in their triumphant departures. Children are capable, then, of receiving the grace of God. Do mark, by the way, that all those cham- pions who have come out against me so valiantly have made a mistake ; they have said that we deny that little infants may be regenerated ; we do not deny that God can regenerate them if he pleases; we do not know anything about what may or may not happen to unconscious babes ; but we did say that little chil- dren were not regenerated by their godparents telling lies at a font: we did say that, and we say it again, that little children are not regenerated, nor made members of Christ, nor children of God, nor inheritors of the kingdom of heaven, by a solemn mockery, in which godfathers and godmothers promise to do for them what they cannot do for themselves, much less for their children. That is the point; and if they will please to meet it, we will answer them again; but till such time as that, we shall probably let them talk on till God gives them grace to know better. The other ground upon which the apostles put back the chil- dren would be, that although the children might receive the blessing, they might not be able to receive tt worthily. The Lord Jesus, in effect, assures them that so far from the way in which a little child enters into the kingdom of heaven being exceptional, it is the rule; and the very way in which a child enters the kingdom, is the way in which everybody must enter it. How does a child enter the kingdom of heavén? Why, its faith is very simple: it does not understand mysteries and controversies, but it believes what it is told, upon the authority of God’s Word, and it comes to God’s Word without previous prejudice. It has52 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. its natural sinfulness, but grace overcomes it, and the child re- ceives the Word as it finds it. You will notice in boyish and girlish conversions, a peculiar simplicity of belief: they believe just what Christ says, exactly what he says. If they pray, they believe Christ will hear them: if they talk about Jesus, it is as of a person near at hand. ‘They do not, as we do, get into the making of these things into mysteries and shadows; but little children have a realizing power. Then they have great rejoic- ing. The most cheerful Christians we have are young believers ; and the most cheerful old Christians are those who were con- verted when they were young. Why, see the joy of a child that finds a Saviour! “ Mother,” he says, “I have sought Jesus Christ, and I have trusted him, and I am saved.” He does not say, “I hope,” and “I trust,” but “ Iam;” and then he is ready to leap for joy because he is saved. Of the many boys and girls whom we have received into church-fellowship, I can say of them all, they have all gladdened my heart, and I have never received any with greater confidence than I have these: this I have noticed about them, they have greater joy and rejoicing than any others; and I take it, it is because they do not ask so many questions as others do, but take Jesus Christ’s word as they find it, and believe in it. Well, now, just the very way in which a child receives Christ, is the way in which you must receive Christ, if you would be saved. You who know so much that you know too much; you who have big brains ; you who are always thinking, and have a tendency to criticism, and per- haps to scepticism, you must come and receive the gospel as a little child. You will never get a hold of my Lord and Master while you are wearing that quizzing-cap; no, you must take it off, and by the power of the Holy Spirit you must come trusting Jesus, simply trusting him; for this is the right way to receive the kingdom. But here, let me say, the principle which holds good in little children holds good in all other cases as well. Take, for instance, the case of very great sinners, men who have been gross offend=-. ers against the laws of their country. Some would say they HTT eeCHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. 53 cannot be saved; they can be, for some of them have been. Others would say they never recéive the truth as it is in Jesus in a right-manner; ay, but they do. How do great sinners re- ceive Christ? There are some here who have been reclaimed from drunkenness, and I know not what. My brethren, how did you receive Christ?’ Why, in this way: You said, “ All unholy, all unclean, I am nothing else but sin; but if I saved, it will be grace, grace, grace.” Why, when you and I stood up, black and foul and filthy, and yet dared to believe in Christ, we said, “ If we are saved, we shall be prodigies of divine mercy, and we will sing of his love forever.” Well but, my dear friends, you must all receive Jesus Christ in that very way. That which would raise an objection to the salvation of the big sinner is thrown back upon you, for Christ might well say, “ Ex- cept ye receive these things as the chief of sinners, ye cannot enter the kingdom.” I will prove my point by the instance of the Apostle Paul. He has béen held by some to be an excep- tion to the rule ; but Paul did not think so, for he says that God in him showed forth-all longsuffering for a pattern to them that believe, and made him as it were a type of all conversions; so that instead of being an exception, his was to be the rule. You see what I am driving at. The case of the children looks ex- ceptional, but it is not; it has, on the contrary, all the features about it which must be found in every true conversion. It is of such that the kingdom of heaven is composed, and if we are not such we cannot enter it. Let this induce all of us who love the Lord to pray for the conversion both of children and of all sorts of men. Let our compassion expand, let us shut out none from the plea of our heart ; in prayer and in faith let us bring all who come under our range, hoping and believing that some of them will be found in the election of grace, that some of them will be washed in the Saviour’s blood, and that some of them will shine as stars in the firmament of God forever. Let us, on no ut eration, believe that the salvation ot: any man oF child is’ ey ortd the range of possibility, for the Bare gavel fh Wwhoin he2w ills. Tet no difficulties which seem to sur round the. case hinder our eons; ; 5* 3 Woo sit ts >? ke Fist Sie 5 > Feo ) 38 53, ee 22 oo > > )54 CHILDREN BROUGHT TO CHRIST, NOT TO THE FONT. let us, on the contrary, push with greater eagerness forward, believing that where there seems to be some special difficulty, there will be manifested, as in the children’s case, some special privilege. Oh, labor for souls, my dear friends! I beseech you, live to win souls. This is the best rampart against error, a ram- part built of living stones — converted men and women. This is the way to push back the advances of Popery, by imploring the Lord to work conversions. I do not think that mere con- troversial preaching will do much, though it must be used ; it is grace-work we want; it is bringing you to Christ, it is getting you to lay hold of him, — it is this which shall put the devil to a nonplus and expand the kingdom of Christ. Oh that my God would bring some of you to Jesus! If he is displeased with those who would keep you back, then see how willing he is to receive you. Is there in your soul any desire towards him? Come and welcome, sinner, come. Do you feel now that you must have Christ or die? Come and have him; he is to be had for the asking. Has the Lord.taught you your need of Jesus? Ye thirsty ones, come and drink; ye hungry ones, come and eat. Yea, this is the proclamation of the gospel to-day, “ The Spirit and the bride say, Come. And let him that heareth say, Come. And let him that is athirst come. And whosoever will, let him take the water of life freely.” Ido trust there may be encour- agement in this to some of you. I pray my Master make you feel it. Ifhe be angry with those who keep you back, then he must be willing to receive you, glad to receive you; and if you come to him he will in nowise cast you out. May the Lord add his blessing on these words for Jesus’ sake. Amen. Peeeb readilySERMON III. “THUS SAITH THE LORD;” OR, THE BOOK OF COMMON PRAYER WEIGHED IN THE BA.UANCES OF THE SANCTUARY. “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” — Ezek. xi. 6, THE wise man saith,“ Where-the word of a king is, there is power.” _What.power.mustthere be where there is the word of the _King.of- kings, who ruleth over all! We are not left to con- jecture as to the power of the divine word, for we know that “ By the word of the Lord were the heavens made; and all the host of them by the breath of his mouth.” Out of nothing- ness the glorious creation leaped at the bidding of the Most High, and when the earth was without form, and void, and darkness was upon the face of the deep, there was nothing wanted but that solemn voice, “ Light be,” and straightway light was. God’s word was sufficient in itself to build the temple of the universe, and to finish it from its foundations to its pinnacles. ‘That same word upholdeth by its power, and ruleth all things by its might. The pillars of heaven stand because the divine word hath fixed them upon their bases, nor shall they. be shaken until that same almighty word shall bid them remove; then as a mo- ment’s foam dissolves into the wave which bears it and is gone forever, so’shall the whole creation melt away. His word, which created, shall also destroy; but until that word be spoken every atom of this world is imperishable. Consider, my brethren, what power is concentrated in him who is clothed with a vesture56 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” dipped in blood, and whose name is “Tur Worp or Gop.” With what glorious power.our Lord Jesus Christ uplifted the burden of our sins, carried the load up to the tree, and cast it forever into the Red Sea of his own atoning blood! Ye know how he burst the bars of death, tore away the gates of the grave, overthrew all the hosts of hell, and dragged the mightiest princi- palities of darkness as captives at his chariot wheels. At this day the government is upon his shoulders, and his name is the Mighty God, the Everlasting Father. Heaven and earth salute him as the Omnipotent Word. He sustains the spiritual life of all his people by feeding them upon himself; and he shall in due time perfect his saints, and present them without spot before his Father’s throne. We ought, therefore, to bow with reverence to that which is truly the word of God, since it contains within itself the highest degree of power, and is ever the way in which divine omnipotence manifests itself. It is in the word that we must find wisdom and power: “be- cause the foolishness of God is wiser than men; and the weak- ness of God is stronger than men.” The faintest whisper of Je- hovah’s voice should fill us with a solemn awe, and command the deepest obedience of our souls. Brethren, how careful should we be that we do not set up in God’s temple anything in opposition to his word, that we do not permit the teachings of a creature to usurp the honor due to the Lord alone! “ Thus saith antiquity, ” “thus saith authority,” “thus saith learning,” “thus saith expe- rience,” — these be but idol-gods, which defile the temple of God : be it yours and mine, as bold iconoclasts, to dash them in pieces without mercy, seeing that they usurp the place of the word of God. “ Thus saith the Lord” — this is the motto of our standard, the war-cry of our spiritual conflict, — the sword with which we hope yet to smite through the loins of the mighty who rise up against God’s truth. Nothing shall stand before this weapon in the day ‘when God cometh out of his hiding-place ; for even at this hour, when “Thus saith the Lord” sounds from the trumpet of the Lord’s ministers, the hosts of Midian begin to tremble; for well they know the might of that terrible watchword in days of yore, GT Eeee CHAT initia tiataniis HEE“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” o7 This morning I shall first endeavor to show, briefly, the value of a“ Thus saith the Lord ;” and then, secondly, I shall, with as much calmness of spirit as I can command, request a “ Thus saith the Lord” for certain things which are received and prac- tised in the State Listablishment of our land, and close with a word of personal application, beseeching you to seek a “Thus saith the Lord” for any hopes which you may entertain of being par- takers of the inheritance of the saints in light. I. Ler us CONSIDER THE VALUE OF A “THUS SAITH THE Lorp.” 1. Our first observation is that it is the minister’s message. If he be God’s minister, he does not found his teaching upon his own authority, for then his message would be only that of him- self, and not to be esteemed; but he shows the authority of his Master, and none can gainsay him. He claims men’s attention on the ground that he utters a “ Thus saith the Lord.” Nomat- ter how aged he may be, he does not proclaim the truth as merely the result of his long investigations or his extraordinary experience, but he grounds it upon “ Thus saith the Lord.” So spake the hoary-headed Joshua when for many a year he had known the faithfulness of God, and was about to die. He was singing his swan-song, preaching his last sermon ; but he did not oO IF: 66 commence it, “ Thus saith my age,” “ Thus say I upon mine own authority,” but “Thus saith the Lord God of Israel.” A God- sent minister is the ambassador of the Most High, but he has no right to go beyond his commission; and when he does so, his office cannot yield him support. The prophets of God did not say, ‘“ Thus I speak as a prophet,” but, “Thus saith the Lord.” When the prophet came in Gideon’s days and spake to erring Israel, he opened his mouth with, “Thus saith the Lord God of Israel.” Turn to the pages of Isaiah, and mark how frequently he quotes the divine authority ; study the plaintive words of Jeremiah, and observe how solemnly his prophetic woes are pre- faced with, “ Thus saith the Lord;” and the soaring Ezekiel, to whom was given, as it were, six wings, that he might take more“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” lofty flights than the eagle knoweth — even he relied not upon the sublimity of his language or the glory of his imagery, but found the sinews of his strength in “ Thus saith the Lord God.” This is the trowel and this the hammer of God’s builders, — this the trumpet of his watchmen and the sword of his warriors. Woe to the man who comes in any other name! If we, or an angel from heaven, shall preach unto you anything but a “ Thus saith the Lord,” no matter what our character or standing, give no heed to us, but cleave unto the truth as it isin Jesus. To the law and to the testimony, if we speak not according to this word, it is because there is no light in us. That test which we demand to be exercised upon others we cheerfully consent to be exercised upon ourselves, praying that we may have grace to forsake our errors as we would have other men forsake theirs. 2. “Thus saith the Lord” 7s the only authority in Gods church. When the tabernacle was pitched in the wilderness, what was the authority for its length and breadth? Why was the altar of in- cense to be placed here, and the brazen laver there? Why so many lambs or bullocks to be offered on a certain day? Why must the passover be roasted whole and not sodden? Simply and only because God had shown all these things to Moses in the holy mount; and thus had Jehovah spoken, “ Look that thou make them after their pattern, which was showed thee in the mount.” It is even so in the church at the present day; true servants of God demand to see for all church ordinances and doctrines the express authority of the church’s only Teacher and Lord. ‘They remember that the Lord Jesus bade the apostles to teach believers to observe all things whatsoever he had com- manded them ; but he neither gave to them nor to any man power to alter his own commands. The Holy Ghost revealed much of precious truth and holy precept by the apostles, and to his teach- ing we would give earnest heed ; but when men cite the author- ity of fathers and councils and bishops, we give place for sub- jection” — no, not for an hour. They may quote Irenzus or Cyprian, Augustine or Chrysostom ; they may remind us of the dogmas of Luther or Calvin; they may find authority in Simeon, PAUTULA TeeeeR AD ATUT TUL PLTTTANORETCUSET TL TAA TALE HATAARA AREA] eee“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 59 or Wesley, or Gill— we will listen to the opinions of those great men with the respect which they deserve as men; but having so done, we deny that we have anything to do with these men‘as authorities in the church of God: ‘for there nothing has any au- thority but “Thus saith the Lord of Hosts.” Yea, if you shall bring us the concurrent consent of all tradition —if you shall quote precedents venerable with fifteen, sixteen, or seventeen centuries of antiquity — we burn the wholé as so much worthless lumber, unless you put your finger upon the passage of Holy Writ which warrants the matter to be of God. You may fur- ther plead, in addition to all this venerable authority, the beauty of the ceremony, and its usefulness to those who partake therein, but this is all foreign to the point; for to the true church of God the only question is this: Is there a “Thus saith the Lord” for it? And if divine authority be not forthcoming, faithful men thrust forth the intruder as the cunning craftiness of men. 3. “Thus saith the Lord” 2s the most fitting word of rebuke for erring saints. God’s people when they err, if they be. re- buked, even though it should be in the gentlest manner, are too apt to resent the rebuff; but when we can come to them with “Thus saith the Lord,” if there be a spark of spiritual life left, it is sure to catch at this flame. When the man of God came to Eli, how Eli’s heart trembled when he began, “Thus saith the Lord,” and described to him the doom of his house, because his sons had made themselves vile, and he had not restrained them. David the king might have been moved to anger against Na- than for that personal parable.and pungent application ; but his anger was stayed, nay, better still, his heart was broken, because the prophet could say, “Thus saith the Lord.” My dear breth- ren in Christ, you-and I have often risen in anger at the intru- sive proofs of ignorant men; but I hope we have far more often felt the melting power of a “Thus saith the Lord.” When the heart is right, the word of God sweetly melts us, as the breath of the south wind melts the frozen rivers. 4. “Thus saith the Lord” 7s the only solid ground of comfort to God’s people. Where can a child of God find true solace60 “THUS SAITH THE LORD” apart from that which cometh out of the mouth of the Most High? Truly, “Man doth not live by bread alone; but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God doth man live;” “Thy words were found, and I did eat them;” “ How sweet are thy words unto my taste! yea, sweeter than honey to my mouth ! ” When Nathan came to tell David of the covenant which the Lord would make with him and his house, David would scarcely have believed so great a mercy to be really his if the prophet had not began with “Thus saith the Lord.” It was not “ Thus saith Nathan,” or “Thus do the ancients say,” but “Thus saith the Lord ;” and David’s heart was full of holy joy when he saw the covenant to be ordered in all things and sure. When Heze- kiah lay sick unto death, he turned his face to the wall and prayed; but there was no comfort to the royal suppliant until the prophet came with “Thus saith the Lord ;” and when Sen- nacherib was about to besiege Jerusalem, and Lachish had fallen, Hezekiah prayed, and the people with him ; but ch! they couid not think it possible that there should be a hook put into the jaw of the mighty Assyrian, and that he should be turned back by the way in which he came, till the prophet reassured their hearts with 99 a “Thus saith the Lord.” Zion’s sons and daughters feast upon the sure word of their faithful God. Brethren, I need not en- large here, for I hope most of you know the preciousness of a divine promise. There is nothing wanted to stay your soul in your worst troubles but the Word of God applied with power. God may not send you a friend; he may not raise up a deliverer ; but if he shall only give you to believe his Word, that shall be enough for you. Martin Luther said: “I have covenanted with my Lord that he should not send me visions, or dreams, or even angels. Jam content with this one gift of the Scriptures, which abundantly teaches and supplies all that is necessary, both for this life and that which is to come.” O Lord, only feed me on thy Word, and I will not envy kings their delicacies, nor even the angels around thy throne the bread of heaven on which they live. do. Yet again: “Thus saith the Lord” is that with which we Rese ATTL LTTE RATER ALTAR ee“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 61 must confront the Lord’s enemies. When Moses went in before Pharaoh, the words which he used were not, “The elders of Israel have consulted, and thus have they bidden me say * NOt “Our Father Abraham once said, and his words have been handed to us by long tradition” — such talk would have been readily resisted; but he confronted the haughty monarch with “Thus saith the Lord, Let my people go;” and it was the power of this divine word which rained plagues upon the fields of Zoan, and brought forth the captives, with silver and gold. Pharaol- might boast, “ Who is the Lord, that I should obey his voice?” but ere long he knew that Jehovah’s word was mightier than all the horsemen and chariots of Mizraim, aad was not to be resisted without terrible defeat. To this day, if we would break sinners’ hearts; our hammer must be “ Thus saith the Lord;” and if we would woo them to obedience to King Jesus, our reasons must come from his own Word. TI have often noticed in conversion, that, though sometimes a particular passage of the sermon may be quoted by the converted verson as the means of enlighten- ment, yet in the majority of cases it is the text, or some passage of Seripture, quoted during the sermon, which is blessed to do the work. McCheyne says, “ Depend upon it, it is God’s Word, not our comment upon God’s Word, that saves souls ;” and so it is. Let us use much of Scripture, much of the pure silver of sacred revelation, and no human alloy. “ What is the chaff to the wheat, saith the Lord?” 6. To close this point: Such an authority has a “ Thus saith the Lord,” that zt 7s not to be despised without entailing upon the offender the severest penalty. Samuel came to Saul with “ Thus saith the Lord,” and bade him destroy the Amalekites. He was utterly to cut them off, and not to spare so much as one of them. But Saul saved the best of the cattle and the sheep, and brought home Agag; and what was the result? His kingdom was taken from him and given to a neighbor of his that was better than he; and because he exalted himself beyond measure to do otherwise than according to the letter of God’s command, he was put away forever from having dominion over Israel. And mark this word: 6“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” if any church in Christendom shall continue, after light is given and after plain rebuke is uttered, to walk contrary to the word of God, and to teach that which is inconsistent with Holy Scrip- ture, as Saul was put away from the kingdom, so shall that church be put away from before the Lord of Hosts; and if any man, be he who he may, after receiving light from on high, con- tinues wilfully to shut his eyes, he shall not, if an heir of heaven, be rejected from eternal salvation, but he shall be cast off from much of the usefulness and comfort which he might otherwise have enjoyed. He knew his Master’s will, and did it not: he shall be beaten with many stripes. He has been as the horse or the mule which have no understanding, and his mouth shail be held in with bit and bridle. Many sorrows shall be to those who dare to dash themselves against the thick bosses of Jehovah’s buckler by opposing his “'Thus saith the Lord.” Upon whom- soever this stone shall fall, it shall grind him to powder; and whosoever shall fall upon it shall be broken, to his own lasting damage. O my brethren! I would that we trembled and stood more in awe of God’s word. I fear me that many treat the things of God as though they were merely matters of opinion, but remember that opinion cannot govern in God’s house. God’s word, not man’s opinion, claims your allegiance. Remember that although our ignorant conscience may not accuse us of error, yet if we walk contrary to God’s word, our consciextiousness does not screen us from sin; for conscience is not the sovereign arbiter of right and wrong, but the plain word of God is the rule of equity. I do not sin so foully as if I sinned against my conscience, but I still sin, if, having an unenlightened conscience, J ignorantly transgress. But if I wilfully keep my conscience in darkness, and continue in errors which I might easily know to be such by a little thought and searching of God’s word, then my conscience can offer me no excuse, for I am guilty of blind- folding the guide which I have chosen, and then, knowing him to be blindfolded, I am guilty of the folly of letting him lead me into rebellion against God. O church of God! hear thou the voice of thy great Founder and Lord: “ Whosoever, therefore, MATE ee“THUS SAITH THE LORD” 63 shall break one of these least commandments, and shall teach men so, he shall be called the least in the kingdom of heaven.” “ He that hath my commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me: and he that loveth me shall be loved of my Father, and I will love him, and will manifest myself to -him.” Oh for a stern integrity, that will hold the word, and will never depart from it, come what may. This much concerning the value of a “ Thus saith the Lord.” II. Dear friends, the second part of our subject may be very displeasing to some who have strayed in here, but that I cannot help. I do not remember ever asking any one to come and hear me, and therefore, as you come of your own wills, when I have any truth to speak, I shall not conceal it because you choose to be present. At the present crisis, I feel that it is woe unto me if I do not lift up my voice like a trumpet, and urge with all my might the necessity of reformation in our State Church. I have, moreover, an excellent excuse for the inquiry I am about to make ; for as I am publicly charged with ignorance, it is at once my duty and my privilege to seek instruction of those who claim authority to teach. When one is known to be profoundly igno- rant, and there are certain fathers in the faith who have the power to instruct, the least thing that can be allowed us is to ask questions, and the smallest boon we can expect is to have them answered by men expressly ordained to instruct the igno- rant. The Rev. W. Goode, the Dean of Ripon, appears to be much better acquainted with the extent of my reading and mental ac- quirements than I am myself. He speaks with all the positive- ness of a personal acquaintance concerning my reputed ignorance, and for my own part I am not at all anxious to question so very reverend an authority. He writes: “ As to that young minister who is now raving against the Evangelical clergy on this point, it is to be regretted that so much notice has been taken of his railings. He is to be pitied, because his entire want of acquaint- ance with theological literature leaves him utterly unfit for the64 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” determination of such a question ; which is a question, not of mere doctrine, but of what may be ealled historical theology ; and his charges are just a parallel to those which the Romanists would bring against himself as well as others for the interpretation of the words, ‘This is my body.’ But were he a wiser man than he is, he would know better what his qualifications are for pass- ing judgment on such a point, and be willing to learn from such facts, among others, as the Gorham Judgment and the cases of Mr. Maskell and Mr. Mozley, what ground there is for his charges against the Evangelical clergy. Let him hold and enforee his own view of doctrine as he pleases; but when he undertakes to determine what is the exclusive meaning of the Book of Common Prayer, and brings a charge of dishonesty against those who take a different view of that meaning from what he does, he only shows the presumptuous self-confidence with which he is prepared to pronounce judgment upon matters of which he is profoundly ignorant. To hold a controversy with him upon the subject would be to as little purpose as to attempt to hold a logically-constructed argument with a child unacquainted with logical terms.” When this paragraph caught my eye, my heart leaped with joy, for I knew that the sinners in Zion were afraid; and I thought I heard a voice crying from the Word, “ Not many wise men after the flesh, not many mighty, not many noble, are called; but God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound the wise ; and God hath chosen the weak things of the world to confound the things which are mighty ; and base things of the world, and things which are despised, hath God chosen, yea, and things which are not, to pi:ng to naught things that are: that no flesh should glory in his presence.” My mind flew back to the valley of Elah, and I remembered the words of the old record: “ And when the Philistine looked about, and saw David, he disdained him; for he was but a youth, and ruddy, and of a fair countenance. And the Philistine said unto David, Am I a dog that thou-comest to me with staves? And the Phi- listine cursed David by his gods. And the Philistine said te LERERLL ELL“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 65 David, Come to me, and I will give thy flesh unto the fowls of the air, and to the beasts of the field.” My spirit kindled at these words of the boastful champion of yore, and at their modern reproduction by the vainglorious divine of Ripon, and the answer of David was in my heart as it is even now upon my tongue; “Thou comest to me with a sword and with a spear and with a shield ; but I come to thee in the name of the Lord of Hosts, the God of the armies of Israel, whom thou hast defied. This day will the Lord deliver thee into mine hand... .. that all the earth may know that there is a God in Israel. And all this assembly shall know that the Lord saveth not with sword and spear ; for the battle is the Lord’s, and he will give you into our hands.” Admitting the witness of the venerable dean to be cor- rect, and that “the young minister” is inexpert in logic, I am not therefore ashamed ; far otherwise, I will the rather glory in mine infirmities that the power of Christ may rest upon me; “for when I am weak, then am I strong.” Take, O ye great ones of the earth, every profit that can be made out of your belief in my utter total ignorance, and your own profound and extensive learning, and then go your ways, and learn what this meaneth: “Thy wisdom and thy knowledge, it hath perverted thee; and thou hast said in thine heart, I am, and none else beside me. Therefore shall evil come upon thee: thou shalt not know from whence it riseth.* And now at this hour, having been con- demned as intolerably ignorant, I feel I have the liberty to ask just a few explanations of those reverend divines who do know or ought to know the grounds of their faith and practice. 1. I open this little book, —the Prayer-Book, of whose occa- sional services the more I know the less I approve, —and I find in the Baptismal Service, that when little children are brought to be sprinkled, certain godfathers and godmothers promise for them that they shall renounce the devil and all his works, the vain pomp and glory of the world, with all covetous desires of the same, ete., and that they shall obediently keep all God’s holy will and commandments, and walk in the same all the days of their life. To me it seems that they might as well promise that G*PH “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” the infants should grow up with Roman noses, auburn hair, and blue eyes; for they are just as able to make them do the one as the other. I shall not however intrude my opinion further, but simply ask whether there is a “Thus saith the Lord ” for any man’s standing proxy for a babe, and making such promises in its name ? —in other words, I ask for apostolical, prophetic, or any other form of scriptural precept, or precedent, for the use of proxies in baptism. ‘True religion is a personal matter —is its first manifestation in regeneration to be connected with the impossible promises of others? Plain proof-texts are requested for godfathers and godmothers; and such important persons deserve to be defended by the clergy, if texts of Scripture can be discovered. As I cannot imagine where the texts will be found, I must pause till the learned shall produce them. Further, I find that these children enter into a covenant by proxy, of which we are assured that the promise our Lord Jesus will for hts part most surely keep and perform; but the children are bound to do their part — that part being something more than the gigantic task of keeping all the commandments of God. Now I ask for a “Thus saith the Lord” for such a covenant as this. I find two covenants in the Word of God: one is the covenant of works, “This do, and thou shalt:live ;” I find another, the covenant of grace, which runs only in this wise, “I will be their God, and they shall be my people.” I find it expressly declared that there cannot be a mixture of works and grace; for, says Paul, “If by grace, then it is no more of works: otherwise grace is no more grace; but if it be of works, then is it no more grace: otherwise work is no more work;” and I ask a “ Thus saith the Lord” for this baptismal covenant, which is nominally of grace, but really of works, or at best an unnatural conglomerate of grace and works. I ask those who have searched Scripture through, to find me the form or the command for any baptismal covenant whatever. It is idle to say that such a covenant was allowed among the early Christians; their witness is not early enough for us: we want a “Thus saith the Lord,” and nothing but this will justify this pretended covenant. iF Hite e Rated F“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 67 We then find that after this covenant has been made, and the water has been applied in a manner which we think needs also a “ Thus saith the Lord.” to justify it, it is publicly declared that the babe is regenerated, — “ Seeing now, dearly beloved brethren, that this child is regenerated and grafted into the body of Christ’s church, let us give thanks unto Almighty God for these benefits, and with one accord make our prayers unto him, that this child may lead the rest of his life according to this beginning.” And, again, “ We yield thee hearty thanks, most merciful Father, that it hath pleased thee to regenerate this infant with thy Holy Spirit, to receive him for thine own child by adoption, and. to incorporate him into thy holy church,” ete. We are told we do not understand the meaning of “regeneration” as it is used in the services of the Anglican Church. The meaning of this pas- sage is historical, hypothetical, ecclesiastical, and we know not what. The words “to be born again” did not formerly seem to us to be so very difficult to understand, nor do they appear so now as they stand in Scripture; for we find in them the one re- generation which has renewed us in the spirit of our mind, and we cannot consent to use those words in any other sense. Well, whether regeneration be or be not a very equivocal word, we simply ask, Is there a “Thus saith the Lord” for the assertion that a sprinkled infant is therefore regenerate in any sense in the world? Will any person find us a text of Scripture? — he shall have large rewards from clergymen with uneasy con- sciences! We put our inquiry again in plain terms, Will some one oblige us with a plain “Thus saith the Lord” proving that water baptism in any one instance makes an unconscious babe a member of Christ and a child of God, in any sense which any sane person chooses to attach to those words? Where is the passage — where? cho answers “where?” But this subject you have been considering for some time, and are well convinced that the process of regenerating babies by occult influences con- veyed by water is a pure — no, an impure — invention of priest- craft. There is therefore no necessity that I enlarge upon a point se well understood.68 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 9. Ihave a second question to ask. ‘There is prescribed im the Book of Common Prayer a peculiar ceremony called con- firmation. I do not remember to have read of that in Seripture. I would like to have a “ Thus saith the Lord” for thatrite. As I am ready to yield as far as possible, suppose we take it for at this ceremony is defensible from Holy Writ, I would like to know whether there is any “ Thus saith the Lord ” allow- ing a person called a bishop to give to the assembled youths an assurance of divine favor by laying his hands on their heads ? The bishop having laid his hands on every head presented to or graceless, talks thus in the Collect, granted th him, whether it be gracious “ Almighty and everliving God, who makest us both to will and to do those things that be good and acceptable unto thy divine majesty, we make our humble supplications unto thee for these thy servants upon whom (after the exanuple of thy holy apos- tles) we have now laid our hands, to certify them (by this sign) of thy favor and gracvous goodness towards them.” Does this mean that the bishop’s hand certifies the person touched thereby of special divine favor? So it seems to teach, as far as I can see. Ve want, then, a “Thus saith the Lord,” authorizing this indi- vidual in lawn to exercise the office of an apostle! We then desire scriptural warrant permitting him to certify these kneel- ing youths of the enjoyment or possession of any particular divine favor by putting his hands on their heads. If this means the common goodness of God, the bishop’s hands are not needed to certify them of that; but as he has already declared in prayer that they were regenerated by water and the Spirit, and had been forgiven all their sins, it is clear that special favor is in- tended ; we inquire, therefore, for his authority for giving these young people a further certificate of special divine favor by the imposition of his hands. Why fis hands? Who is he that he ean certify these persons of God’s favor more than any other man? Where is his scriptural warrant to confer by his hands a certificate of grace upon young people who in innumerable cases are thoughtless and unconverted, if not profane? We want a “Thus saith the Lord” for the whole thing, and then for each TAT“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 69 item in detail. Endless is the task thus proposed to the houest Churchman. 3. Another matter needs a little clearing up ; and, as this Book was set forth by learned divines and bishops, I would like a lucid explanation. The priest visits a sick man, sits down by his bed- side, reads certain prayers, bids the patient remember his baptism, questions him as to his ereed, gives him good advice about for- giving his enemies and making his will, moves him to make a special confession of his sin if he feels his conscience troubled with any weighty matter, after which confession the Rubric Says, “ the priest shall absolve him” (if he humbly and heartily desire it), after this sort. Here is the absolution, and I humbly and heartily desire a “ Thus saith the Lord” for it: “Our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath left power to his church to absolve ail sinners who truly repent and believe in him, of -his great mercy forgive thee thine offences; and by his authority committed to me, LT absolve thee from all thy sins, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.” Sir Priest, I want you to give me a plain warrant from God’s Word for your absolving my dying neighbor at this rate. Who are you that you should use uch words? The season is solemn: it is the hour of death, and the matter is weighty, for it concerns the eternal interests of the dying man, and may — nay, will, if you be found to be acting pre- sumptuously in this matter — involve your own soul in eternal ruin. Whence did you derive your right to forgive that sick man? Might he not raise his withered hands and return the compliment by absolving you? Aré you quite sure as to th committal of divine authority to you? Then show me the deed of git, and let it be clearly of divine origin. The apostles were empowered to do many things; but who are you? Do you claim to be their successors? Then work miracles similar to theirs ; take up serpents, and drink deadly things without being harmed thereby; prove to us that you have seen the Lord, or even that cloven tongues of fire have sat upon each of you. You evangelical clergy, dare you claim to be successors of the apostles, and to have power to forgive sins? Your Puseyite brethren go70 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” the whole length of superstitious pretension; but you have too much light to be so superstitious ; and yet you do what is quite as wicked, — you sclemnly subscribe that this absolution is not contrary to the Word of God when you knowit is? Gorham case, say you. I care nothing for your Gorham case: I want a “Thus saith the. Lord” warranting you to swear to what you know to be false and dangerous. Mr. Mozley and Mr. Maskell may give you all the comfort which they can afford; but one word of Peter or of Paul would be of more weight in this matter than a thousand words from either of them. You are aware, perhaps, that it is not every man who is per- mitted by the Established religion to pronounce this absolution. A person called a “ deacon ” is, T am informed, allowed to preach and do a great many things, but when he reads the Book of Common Prayer in the daily service he must not grant absolution ; there is a supernatural something which the man has not yet received, for he has only once felt the episcopal imposition of hands. We shall see, by-and-by, where absolving power comes from. The deacon has attained to one grade of priestcraft, but the full vigor of mystic influence rests not upon him. Another touch, another subscription, and the keys of St. Peter will swing at his girdle; but his time is not yet. I ask him, whether he calls himself a deacon or a priest, where he gets a “ Thus saith the Lord” for this absolution ? which, if it be not of God, isa piece of impertinence, superstition, blasphemy, and falsehood. 4, I turn on and find that when the sick dies he is buried in consecrated ground; and though he may have cut his throat while under delirium tremens, if the jury do not return a verdict of suicide, the priest shall say, as he casts earth upon the body, “ Forasmuch as it hath pleased Almighty God of his great mercy to take unto himself the soul of our dear brother here departed, we therefore commit his body to the ground, — earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust, —in sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life.” And again, ‘‘ We give thee hearty thanks for that it hath pleased thee to deliver this our brother out of the miseries of this sinful world.” And yet again, “We“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 71 meekly beseech thee, O Father, to raise us from the death of sin unto the life of righteousness; that when we shall depart this life, we may rest in him, as our hope is this our brother doth.” We beg a “Thus saith the Lord” for burying every baptized thief, harlot, rogue, drunkard, and liar who may die in the par- ish — “in sure and certain hope of the blessed resurrection.” “Qh! it is commanded by authority.” What authority? We challenge it, and permit none to pass muster but a “Thus saith the Lord.” Until clergymen will bring us scriptural warrant for uttering falsehoods over a grave, we dare not cease our testi- mony against them. How long will the many godly laymen in that Church remain quiet? Why do they not bestir themselves, and demand revision or disruption ? 0. Turning a little further on, into a part of the Prayer-Book not much frequented by ordinary readers, we come to the “ Or- dering of Priests,” or the way in which priests are made. Why priests? Is one believer more a priest than another, when all are styled a royal priesthood? Let that pass. Of course, breth- ren, the priests are made by the bishops, as the bishops are made by Lord Palmerston, or Lord Derby, or any other political leader who may be in office. The Prime Minister of England is the true fountain from whom all bishops flow, and the priests are minor emanations branching off from the mitre rather than the crown. Here is the way of ordering priests. Let heaven and earth hear this and be astonished: “When this prayer is done, the bishop with the priests present shall lay their hands severally upon the head of every one that receiveth the order of priesthood ; the receivers humbly kneeling upon their knees, and the bishop saying, ‘ Receive the Holy Ghost?” Listen to it, now! ‘Think you behold the scene: a man of God, a bishop ‘whom you have been in the habit of considering a most gracious, godly man, and such no doubt he may be, in a sort, —think you see him putting his hands upon the head of some evangelical man whom you will go and hear, or, if you like, upon some young rake fresh from Oxford, — and think you hear him say, “ Receive the Holy Ghost for the office and work of a priest in the churchG2 “ tHUS SAITH THE LORD.” of God, now committed unto thee by the imposition of our hands. Whose sins thou dost forgive, they are forgiven, and whose sins thou dost retain, they are retained.” We want a “ Thus saith the Lord” for that; for that is putting it rather strongly in the popish line, one would think. Is the way of ordering priests in the Church of Rome much worse than this? ‘That the apostles did confer the Holy Ghost, we never thought of denying; but that Oxford, Exeter, or any other occupants of the bench can give the Holy Spirit, needs some proof other than their silk aprons or lawn sleeves can afford us. We ask, moreover, for one in- stance in which an apostle conferred upon any minister the power to forgive sins, and where it can be found in Scripture that any man other than an apostle ever received authority to absolve sinners. Sirs, let us say the truth; however much yonder priest may pretend at his parishioner’s bedside to forgive sin, the man’s sins are not forgiven; and the troubled conscience of the sinner often bears witness to the fact, as the day of judgment and the fearful hell of sinners must also bear witness. And what think you, sirs, must be the curse that fills the mouth of damned souls, when in another world they meet the priest who absolved them with this sham absolution! With what reproaches will such de- ceived ones meet the priest who sent them down to perdition with a lie in their right hands! Will they not say to him, “Thou didst forgive me all my sins by an authority committed unto thee, and yet here am I cast into the pit of hell >” Oh! af D do not clear my soul upon this infamous business, and if the whole Christian church does not cleanse herself of it, what guilt will lay upon us! This is become a crying evil, and a sin that is not to be spoken of behind the door, nor to be handled in gentle lancuage. I have been severe, it is said, and spoken harshly. I do not believe it possible to be too severe in this matter; but, sirs, if I have been so, let that be set down as my sin if you will; but is there any comparison between my fault and that of men who know this to be contrary to the Word of God, and yet give it their unfeigned assent and consent? or the sin of those who can lie unto the Holy Ghost, by pretending to confer Him who LPAUSSRSHURAMORRSSASE TUT AOR RMO TAGS ERR Tag :“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” ho bloweth where he listeth upon men who as likely as not are as graceless as the very heathen? Fresh from the dissipations of college-life, the sinner bows before the man in lawn, and rises a full-blown. priest, fully able to remit or retain sins. After this, how can the priests of the Church of England denounce the Ro- man Catholics? It is so very easy to fume and bluster against Puseyites and Papists; but the moment our charity begins at home, and we give our Evangelical brethren the same benefit which they confer upon the open Romanists, they are incensed beyond measure. Yet will we tell them to their faces, that they, despite their fair speeches, are as guilty as those whom they de- nounce ; for there is as much Popery in this priest-making as in any passage in the mass-book. Protestant England! wilt thou long tolerate this blasphemy? Land of Wiclif, birthplace of the martyrs of Smithfield, is this long to be borne with? Iam clear of this matter before the Most High, or hope to be, ere I sleep in the grave ; and having once sounded the trumpet, it shall ring till my lips are dumb. Do you tell me it is no business of mine? Is it not the ational Church ? — does not its sin rest, therefore, upon every man and woman in the nation, Dissenter and Churchman, who does not shake himself from it by open dis- avowal? I am not meddling with anybody else’s church; but the church that claims me as a parishioner would compel me, if it could, to pay its church rates, and that does take from me my share of tithe every year. I ask the sturdy Protestants of England, and especially the laity of the Church of England, whether they intend forever to foster such abominations? Arise, Britannia ! nation of the free, and shake thy garments from the dust of this hoary superstition; and as for thee, O Church of England! may God bless thee with ministers who will sooner come forth to poverty and shame than pervert or assist in per- verting the Word of God. 6. I have not quite done: I have another question to ask. Look.at the thanksgiving which is offered on the twentieth day of June, on account of Her Majesty’s accession : in this thanksgiv- ing we very heartily join, although we decline to pray by book 774 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” on the twentieth of June or any other day; look at the close of that thanksgiving, and you see the name of Lord John Russell as a sort of official authority for the prayer! Ys Earl Russell also among the prophets? And on the other side of the page, ‘1 order that the Tories may edify the church as well as the . Whigs, I see the hand of S. H. Walpole. Is he also a governor in Christ’s church? Hath the Lord given these men power to legislate for his church, or sign mandates for her to obey? But what is it all about? “ Victoria Regina, our will and pleasure is that these four forms of prayer,’ etc. Do you see? here is royal supremacy! Furtuer on, in the next page: “ Wow, there- fore, our will and pleasure is,” etc. .See the Preface to the Ar- ticles,“ Being by God's Ordinance, according to our just Title, Defender of the Faith, and Supreme Governor of the Church, within these our Dominions ;” and again, “We are Supreme Gov- ernor of the Church of England.” This is the way in which your Church bows herself before the kingdoms of this world. I demand, earnestly demand, a “Thus saith the Lord” for this royal supremacy. If any king, or queen, or emperor shall say, in any Christian church, “ Our will and pleasure is,” we reply, “ We have another King, —one Jesus.” As to the Queen, hon- ored and beloved as she is, she is by her sex incapacitated for ruling in the church. Paul decides that point by his plain pre- cept, “I suffer not a woman to teach, nor to usurp authority over the man, but to be in silence ;” and if a king were in the case, we should say, “We render unto Cesar the things which are Cesar’s, and unto God the things which are God’s.” In civil matters, we cheerfully obey princes and magistrates ; but if any king, queen, emperor, or what not, usurps power in the church of God, we reply, “ One is our Master, even Christ, and all we are brethren. The crown-rights belong to King Jesus: he alone is King in Zion.” But I am met at once with the reply, “ Well, but Christ is the Head of the Established Church, as well as the Queen.” I remember reading about a three-headed dog which kept the gates of hell, but I never dreamed of a two- headed church till I heard of the Anglican Etsablishment. A r PTT RT 5 PRRSRR SESSA SLOARSURRMERT OTe Tag:“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” 79] two-headed church is a monster! The Queen the Head of the Church, and King Jesus the Head of the Church, too! Never. Where is a “Thus saith the Lord” for this? No man living who calls himself an Englishman has a’ word to say of Her Majesty except that which is full of honor and esteem and loyal affection ; but the moment we come to talk about the church of Christ, whoever shall say, or think, or believe, that there is any headship to the church of Christ except the person of Christ himself, he knoweth not what he saith nor whereof he affirm- eth. Our Lord Jesus Christ is the Head over all things to his church, which is his body: the fulness of him filleth all in all. Here stand the two letters “ V. R.” at the top of certain man- dates, and they mean just this: “Our royal authority commands that you shall not believe this, and you shall believe that; you shall not pray: this, and you shall pray that; and you shall pray on such a day,” and so on. The church which thus bows to authority commits fornication with the kings of the earth, and vir- tually renounces her allegiance to Christ to gain the filthy lucre of state endowments. He is the freeman whom the truth makes free, and who wears no gilded collar, with a chain hanging there- from held in a royal hand. Remember how the Chancellor laughed to scorn the whole bench of bishops, and rightly so ; for he who voluntarily makes himself a bondman deserves to feel the lash. May the little finger of our state grow heavier than the loins of James or Elizabeth, until all good men flee from the house of bondage. Servants of God, will ye be servants of man ? Ye who profess to follow King Jesus and see him crowned with the crown wherewith his mother crowned him in the day of his ' espousals, do you take off his diadem to put it upon the head of another? No, it shall never be. Scotland has repelled the royal intrusion right bravely by her sons of the Free Church, who have left all to follow King Jesus. Her bush burned in the olden times, but was not consumed; the covenant was stained with blood, but it was never slain. Let us revive that covenant, and, if need be, seal it with our blood. Let the Church of England have what king she pleases, or what prince she pleases for her76 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” head; but this I know, that there is no “Thus saith the Lord ” concerning the ecclesiastical supremacy of Victoria Regina, nor the authority of Lord John Russell, or 8. H. Walpole, or any of that company, honorable though they be. Now once more: one other question. I am profoundly ignorant, and have not the power to judge of these things (so am I informed), and therefore I would like to ask for a “ Thus saith the Lord” for a few of the canons ; —no, perhaps I had better not read them; they are too bad, — they are full of all malice and uncharitableness, and everything that cometh of the foul fiend. I will ask whether there can be found any “ Thus saith the Lord” for this: Canon 10. “ Maintainers of Schismat- ics in the Ohurch of England to be censured. Whoever shall hereafter ‘affirm that such ministers as refuse to subscribe to the form and manner of God’s worship in the Church of England, prescribed in the Communion-Book, and th ,eir adherents, may truly take unto them the name of another church not established by law, and dare presume to publish it, that this their pretended church hath of long time groaned under the burden of certain grievances imposed upon it, and upon the members thereof be- fore mentioned, by the Church of England, and the orders and constitutions therein by law established, let them be excommu- nicated, and not restored until they repent and publicly revoke such their wicked errors.” What Scripture warrants one church 93 to excommunicate another merely for being a church, and com- plaining of undoubted grievances ? Canon 11. “ Maintainers of Conventicles censured. Whoso- ever shall hereafter affirm or maintain that there are within this realm other meetings, assemblies, or congregations of the king’s born subjects, than such as by the laws of this land are held and allowed, which may rightly challenge to themselves the name of true and lawful churches, let him be excommunicated, and not restored but by the Archbishop, after his repentance and public revocation of such his wicked errors.” Where doth Holy Scrip- ture authorize the excommunication of every good man who is charitable enough to believe that there are other churches beside his own? Search ye out of the Book of the Lord, and read ! EPSSANUAAECCEATTST ATIVE TTI TOGA Tag ee“THUS SAITH THE LORD.” Tag For very much in this Book of Canons I beg to be informed of a “ Thus saith the Lord.” For matters which do not concern religion and have only to do with the mere arrangement of ser- vice, we neither ask nor expect a divine precept ; but upon vital points of doctrine, ceremony, or precept, we cannot do without it. Scarcely can any document be more inconsistent with Scripture than the Book of Canons, and hence it is ever kept in the back- ground, because those who know anything about it must be ashamed of it. And yet these are Canons of the Church of Eng- land, — canons which are inconsistent, many of them, with even the common rules of our own present enlightened law, let alone the Word of God. We ask a “ Thus saith the Lord” for them, and we wait until a “Thus saith the Lord” shall be found to defend them. Now some will say, why do I thus take this. matter up and look into it? I have already told you the reason, dear friends. There is an opportunity for pushing another Reformation given to us just now, of which if we do not avail ourselves we shall be very guilty.- Some have said, “Why not go on preaching the gospel to smners?” I do preach the gospel to sinners, as ear- nestly as ever I did in my life; and there are as many conver- sions to God as at any former period. This is God’s work : and beware lest any of you lift a finger against it. The hand of the Lord is in this thing, and he that lives shall see it. Let us have our prayers, that good may come of this controversy, even though you may deplore it. As for anything else that you can do, it shall not turn us a hair’s-breadth from this testimony to which we feel God has called us, though it bringeth upon us every evil that flesh would shrink from. The words of Dr. Guthrie are well worth quoting here: “The servant is no better than his master ; and I do believe, were we more true to God, more faith- ful and honest in opposing the world for its good, we should get less smoothly along the path of life, and have less reason to read with apprehension these words of Jesus : ‘ Woe unto you when all men shall speak well of you.’ Not less true than shrewd was the remark of a Scotch woman respecting one who, just settled in 7#78 “THUS SAITH THE LORD.” the ministry, had been borne to his pulpit amid the plaudits of all the people: ‘If he is a faithful servant of the Lord Jesus Christ, he will have all the blackguards in the parish on his head 999 before a month is gone. III. Now, to close, let me say to you, my hearers, have any of you a hope of heaven which will not stand the test of “Thus saith the Lord?” What are you resting upon? Are you resting upon something which you felt when excited at a prayer-meet- ing or under a sermon? Remember you will not have that excitement to bear you up in death, and the religion of excite- ment will not suffice in the day of judgment. Are you building upon your own works? Are you depending upon your own feelings? Do you rely upon sacraments? Are you placing your trust upon the word of man? If so, remember that when God shakes all things he will shake these false foundations ; but oh! build upon the Word of my Lord and Master; trust your soul with Jesus. Hating sin, and clinging to the great sin- bearer, you shall find in him a rock of refuge which can never, never fail you; but I do conjure you, as the Lord liveth, search and try yourselves by the Word of God. -No doubt there are many among us who are not built upon the Rock of Ages, and we may any of us be deceived by a mere name to live. Do, then, since the test-day must come, —since you must be weighed in the balances, — weigh yourselves now, my hearers ; and let none of us go down to the chambers of destruction believing ourselves to be heirs of heaven, being all the while enemies to the Most High God. May the Lord exalt his own Word, and give us a sure inheritance in the blessings which it brings. Amen. TORRE UTE ETESERMON IV. A HEARER IN DISGUISE. “AND IT WAS SO, WHEN AHIJAH HEARD THE SOUND OF HER FEET, AS JHE CAME IN AT THE DOOR, THAT HE SAID, COME IN, THOU WIFE OF JEROBCAM; WHY FEIGNEST THOU THYSELF TO BE ANOTHER? FOR I AM SENT TO THEE WITH HEAVY TIDINGS.” — 1 Kings xiv. 6. AutJaH the prophet was blind. Did I not tell you this morn- ing that God’s servants could be happy without the light of the sun? If God should be pleased to deprive their natural eyes of the pleasures of light, their souls would not be without Joy > for, as in the New Jerusalem, so in the renewed heart, “the glory of God doth lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.” Doubtless this was the case with that venerable prophet. He was not like Moses, whose eye did not wax dim, and whose nat- ural strength did not abate; but his eyes were set with age ; the organs of vision had so decayed through the multitude of his years, that he could not see so much as a ray of light. Yet doubtless when he could not look out of the windows, God looked in; and when there was no beam coming in from the sun, much light was darted in from heaven. What man of modern times saw more than blind Milton? It were well for us to feel the influence of that “drop serene,” and close our eyes forever, if we could but see such visions of God as Milton has penned in his Paradise Lost, and Paradise Regained. Here is a fine pic- ture for you. Behold the venerable prophet sitting alone in his humble cottage ; and yet not alone, because his God is with him. Blind, but yet in the highest sense a seer, looking into the invis-PAAVATANAISCRTSSSSATATORTTCRESST ATTA AT Aah Rate 80 A HEARER IN DISGUISE. ible, and by faith beholding things which we blind men who have our sight can never see; beholding what eye hath not seen, and hearing what ear hath never heard. This, then, may furnish a word of comfort at the outset to any who are suffering under infirmity: Jesus can recompense you. You are not the only persons who have been called so to suffer: full many of your humble guild——the company of the blind—have been gifted with spiritual sight. If you have lost hearing, or the use of any of the members of your body, remember that no strange thing has happened to you, but such as is common to man. ‘There is a way by which, in proportion as your tribulations abound, so your consolations may abound through Jesus Christ. Nay, these very privations which you feel so sadly, which so loudly demand our sympathy, may by God’s love be transmuted into mercies, by a holy alchemy which really turns iron into gold. He can turn your losses into gains, and your curses into blessings. Mark well this venerable prophet—a man so old as to have survived the senses which give life its charm: is it not time for him to die? Has he not outlived his usefulness when he is made entirely dependent upon his feliow-creatures, and a burden to himself? Why does not the prophet’s Master send a convoy of angels to take the good man home? There he sits, without any apparent perception of the scenes transpiring around him ; surely, surely itis time for the Master to call himaway! But no, he does not. Ahijah must not die; he has another message to deliver, nd he is immortal till his work is done. I have no doubt he sweetly slept after he had delivered his last message, but not till then. Brethren and sisters, you and I have no right to want to go to heaven till our work is done. There is a desire to be with Christ which is not only natural but spiritual; there is a sighing to behold his tace, which, if a man be without, I shall question if he be a Christian at, all; but to wish to be away from the battle before we win the victory, and to desire to leave the field before the day is over, were but lazy and listless ; therefore let us pray God to save us from it. Whitefield and a company of ministers were talking together and expressing their desire to go to heaven.A HEARER IN DISGUISE. 81 Good Mr. Tennant was the only man who differed from them. He said he did not wish to die ; and he thought thatif his brother Whitefield would but consider for a time, he would not wish to be gone either; for, he said, if you hire a man to doa day’s work, and he is saying all the day, “I wish it were evening ; I wish it were time to go home,” you would think, “ What a lazy fellow he is ;” and you would wish you had never engaged him. “So,” he said, “I am afraid it is nothing but our idleness that often prompts us to desire to be away from our work.” If there bea soul to win, let me stop until I have won it. Truly, some of us might summon up courage enough to say, “I would fain barter heaven for the glory of ,Christ, and not only wait twenty years out of heaven if I may have twenty years of glorifying him the better, but wait out altogether if I may outside heaven sing to him sweeter songs, and honor him more than I can inside its walls ; for outside heaven shall be heaven to me if it shall help me to glorify my Lord and Master the better.” You have heard, I dare say, that anecdote of good Mr. Whitefield, in his early ministry, lying down, as he thought, to die, in a high fever, and a poor negro woman sitting by his side and tending him. In his sad moments, Whitefield thought of dying; but the black woman said, “ No, Master Whitefield, you are not to die yet: there are thousands of souls to bring to Christ ; so keep up your spirits, for you must live, and not die; your Master has yet a work for you to do.” All this comes to my mind as I think of that ven- erable old prophet, sitting in his chair, waiting until he shall have spoken to Jeroboam’s wife ; and then after that ascending to his Father and his God — but not until his work was done. We have introduced to you Ahijah, the venerable prophet. We must now address you upon an incident connected with his closing ministry. In our text we have before us an occasional hearer ; secondly, we observe a useless disguise; and thirdly, we listen to heavy tidings. I. We have before us, first of all, raz OCCASIONAL HEARER.Peeeaaey 82 A HEARER IN DISGUISE. Jeroboam and his wife did not often go to hear Ahijah. They were not people who went to ‘worship Jehovah; they neither feared God nor regarded his prophet. There may be some such here to-night. You do not often come to a place of worship. I am glad you are hear now. It may be my Master has sent me with tidings for you. Give earnest heed, I pray you, that the tidings may be received and blessed. I am sometimes tired of preaching to those who hear me every Sunday, for I fear some of them never will be saved. They get hardened by the gospel ; all the blows of the hammer have only tended to weld their hearts to their sins, and make them harder, instead of melting them. May God grant, however, that my fears may be removed, and that some who have long resisted the wooings of the gospel may yet yield. I have more hope of you, occasional hearers; I know that when my Master has helped me to cast the net on the right side of the ship, I have taken some of you. There are amongst those numbered with us some of the best in the church, and the most useful men in our society, who were brought in by dropping into the place just as stray hearers — passing by, per- haps, or coming out of curiosity ; but God knew who they were, knew how to adapt the sermon to the case, and affect the heart with the Word. Now, here was an occasional hearer; and we make the observation that thzs occasional hearer was totally des- titute of all true piety. Most occasional hearers are. ‘Those who have true religion are not occasional hearers. You will find that truly gracious persons are diligent in the use of the means, In- stead of thinking it a toil to come up to the place of worship, I know there are some of you who wish there were two Sundays in the week; and the happiest times you ever have are when you are sitting in these seats and joining in our sacred songs. “Thine earthly Sabbaths, Lord, we love.” There is no verse which gives you a better idea of heaven as a place than that — ““Where congregations ne’er break up, And Sabbaths have ne end.”A HEARER IN DISGUISE. 83 Gracious souls love the place where God’s honor dwelleth, and the assembling of themselves together is always a blessed thing to them ; but occasional hearers are generally graceless persons. I know how you spend your Sunday. There is the morning : you are not up very early; it takes a long time to dress ona Sunday morning ; then follows the Sunday paper, with the news of the week, —that must be gone through. The wife has been toiling hard all the morning with the dinner ; what do you care ? Then there is the afternoon, when there is a little more lolling about. Then in the evening, there is the walk. But the day, after all, is not very happy and comfortable ; and sometimes you have wished there were no Sundays, except that they give your body a little rest. You do not fear God, nor do you care for his service. Nevertheless I am glad you have come here to-night ; for—who can tell? —my Lord, who found out Jeroboam’s wife, can find you out; and though it is many a day since you dark- ened the walls of God’s sanctuary, this shall be the beginning of many such days to you; and — who can tell ? — this may be your new birth night, when you shall turn over a new leaf; nay, not turn over a new leaf, but get a new book altogether, and find your name written in the Lamb’s Book of Life. | The second remark about these occasional hearers is, that when they do come, they very generally come because they are in trouble. When Jeroboam’s wife came and spoke to the prophet, it was because the dear child was ill at home. I know some occasional hearers who go to a place of worship as people £0 10 a chemist’s shop; that is, when they want something, because they do not feel quite right. Yes, your child is very sick. You have been watching all day, and you have thought, “I cannot stand it any longer: I will just walk out and go to a place of worship to-night ; I want something to cheer me.” ‘You have had such trials lately that your wife said to you, “ John, we must not keep on in this way any longer. It is clear all we do ends without any prosperity. We put our money into a bag which is full of holes. We spend it for that which is not bread. . We labor for that which doth not profit.” So you have come here84 A HWEARER IN DISGUISE. to see if the Lord may have a word of comfort thrcugh his ser= I can only say you are very welcome vant who speaks to you. We are as glad to see you to come in, thou wife of Jeroboam. as though you always came ; and we do hope that this sorrowful affliction may be overruled by God for your lasting good. ‘There are persons who profess to be atheists; but t very deep. Addison tells us of a man who, on board ship in a storm, knelt down to pray, and expressed his firm belief in a God. When he got ashore some one laughed at him for it, and heir atheism is not he challenged the man to a duel. They fought together, and the atheist fell wounded. When the blood was flowing he believed there was a God, and he began to ery to God with all his might to save him. The physician bound up the wound. ‘The man put the question to lim, “Is a ,mortale No,”. he says; “it is only a flesh wound.” Then said the man, “ There is no God; Iam a thorough atheist.” He believed in God when he thought he was going to die; the moment he felt himself better, he returned to his unbelief. A pretty,religion that to live in, and a pretty religion to die with! Your absence from God’s house will do very well when things go well with you ; you can go out with a young wife to dissipate in frivolity hours which should be sacred to worship ; but when sickness shall come, — when affliction shall fall heavily upon you, — when you have trial after trial, and you yourself begin to get gray with many cares, and feeble and helpless with many years ; and death comes near and casts his pale shadow across your cheek; and strange thoughts, oblivious of all around, come over you by day; and singular dreams, which throw you into the company of the long since dead, surprise you by night; and fears and frights, and signs and calls, and bodings of imagination, prove the wander- ings and weakness of your brain, — then, but possibly not till then, you think of going to the house of God. I am glad, there- fore, if this trouble has visited you early, or ever “the grinders cease because they are few, and those that look out of the win- dows be darkened ;” and I am very glad that you have come toA HEARER IN DISGUISE. 85 the house of God. Come in, thou wife of Jeroboam; for I bear thee tidings from the God of heaven to-night. There is a third point, — this woman would not have come but that her husband sent her, on the ground that he had heard Ahijah preach before. It was this prophet who took Jeroboam’s mantle and rent it in pieces, and told him he was to be king over the ten tribes. That message proved true; therefore Jeroboam had confidence in Ahijah. There are some of you who at times used to hear the gospel: you have not been of late; but there were seasons when you did come up to God’s house — ay, and times when you used to tremble under God’s Word. If I am not mistaken, there are men and women here to-night who once were conscience-stricken ; the Word of God used to come home to you with exceeding great power, and make you tremble. Did you not even profess faith in Christ? Why! some of you were very busy at revival meetings, trying to bring others to the Saviour. But your religion was like smoke out of the chimney : it has all blown away; like early mist it was soon scattered when the sun had risen. Yet the remembrance of these things sticks by you now: you cannot help it; you feel there must be something in religion. The old stings which were in your con- science have not been quite extracted; therefore at the present moment you: are quite willing to listen to the Word; perhaps even hoping that it may come with true power now, and that you may after all be saved. I wish I could wake the echoes of the slumbering consciences of some of you! Oh that I could recall the days of your youth, the times of your boyhood and girlhood, when you went up to the assembly of the saints to keep holy day! Those things you cannot quite forget. J pray that such remembrances may often turn your feet towards the place of worship. We have brought out three points of character, — they were persons of no prety ; in trouble they sought the prophet ; and they had confidence'in him because they had heard him preach before. But there is one more point,— they had one godly member of theur family, and that brought them to see the prophet. Their child was 8reas 86 A HEARER IN DISGUISE. sick and ill, and it was that which led them to inquire at the hands of the Lord. I hope there is no family here which has the misfortune to be without a believer in it. You, man, have no fear of God; but, strange to say, the Lord has taken one out of your family to be a witness for him. That daughter of yours, — you sometimes jeer at her, but you know you value her. You used to send her to the Sunday-school just to get rid of her; but the Lord met with her: and what a comfort she has been to you ! how glad she has made your heart, though you do not tell her so! Perhaps the godly one in the family is like this young Ahijah in the text: he is sick, and near to die. You can recollect, though you do not fear God, how the darling boy was sick ; how you sat by his little bed, and took his hand in yours, when it was scarcely anything but skin and bone; how he prayed for you at night that God would save father and mother, and take them to heaven ; and how, just as he died, he looked out on you with those bright eyes, so soon to be filmed in death, and said “ Father, will you not follow me?” Since that time you have often felt that something is beckoning you up yonder ; and though you have gone on forsaking God and despising holy things, yet still there is a little link between you and heaven which is not snapped yet, and you sometimes feel it tugging at your heart. I pray God it may tug so hard to-night that your heart may go up to God and lay hold of Jesus the Saviour of sinners. What Joy it causes me to think that God does call one out of a godless household! because where there is one there is sure to be another before long. It is like putting a light into the midst of stubble: there will soon be a blaze. I have hope of a family when one child is converted; for grace is like precious ointment: it spreads a perfume all around. When a box of fragrant spice is put into a room, the perfume soon fills the entire chamber, then creeps silently up the stairs into the upper rooms, and ceases not its work until it has filled the whole house. So when there is true grace in a house, the Holy Spirit blesses its hallowed power, till even the lodgers and family acquaintances begin to feel the ine fluence of it. Is it your one praying child that has brought youA HEARER IN DISGUISE. here to-night? May God grant that he may be the means of bringing you to heaven as well. But there is one sad reflection which should alarm the occas sional hearer. Though Jeroboam’s wife did come to the prophet that once, and heard tidings, yet she and her husband perished, after all. Oh! if there were a register kept of the many thousands who come inside the Tabernacle gates and listen to our voice, I am afraid, I am sadly afraid it would be found that there were many who did hear the tidings, and did tremble at them, too, who nevertheless contemned the counsels of the Most High, turned not at his rebuke, went on in their sin, and perished without hope. Shall it be so with any of you? Are you to be fagots in hell? Will you make your bed among the flames? My hearers, will you die without God and without hope? Will you leap into the black unknown, with no bright promise of the Saviour to cheer you in the thick darkness? May God prevent it! May he be pleased to bring you to Christ, the rock of your salvation, that you may depend upon him with your whole heart. While thus speaking about the occasional hearer, an idea haunts my mind that I have been drawing somebody’s portrait. I think there are some here who have had their character and conduct sketched out quite accurately enough for them to know who is meant. Do remember that if the description fits you, it is meant for you; and if you yourself have been described, do not look about among your neighbors, and say, “I think this is like somebody else.” If it is like you, take it home to yourself, and God send it into the centre of your conscience,.so that you cannot get rid of it. II. Our second consideration is the USELESS DISGUISE. Jeroboam’s wife thought to herself, “ If I go to see Ahijah, as he knows. me to be the wife of Jeroboam, he is sure to speak angrily, and give me very bad news.” Strange to tell, though the poor old gentleman was blind, she thought it necessary toe put on a disguise. So she doffed her best garment, and put onA HEARER IN DISGUISE. a country-woman’s russet gown, and away she went. She left the sceptre and crown behind, and tock a basket, as though she had just come from market. In this basket she did not put gold, jewels, and silver, but a present such as a farmer’s wife might bring; there were loaves and cracknels and a cruse of honey. And as she went along, she thought, “The old gentleman will not know me.” She travelled through her own dominions, and nobody knew her; she went into the neighboring dominions of Judah as far as Shiloh; and she pleased her imagination with the thought, “ How I shall deceive him! I will ask him a ques- tion, as if I were a ploughman’s wife. He will not know who I am; he will be pleased with my present, and prophesy soft things concerning my child.” How great was her surprise! No sconer did the blind prophet hear her footsteps than he said, “ Come in, thou wife of Jeroboam. Why feignest thou thyself to be an- other? for I am sent to thee with heavy tidings?” How she started back with astonishment! She had deceived hundreds who were blessed with eyes; but here was a man who could not be deceived, but found her out before she had opened her lips, and recognized her before she had time to test her sorry artifice, or tell her subtle tale — “ Come in, thou wife of Jeroboam.” I do not suppose there is anybody comes here disguised as to dress to-night, though such things may happen. ‘The working- man, who is afraid he shall be laughed at if he be known, may come here in disguise. Now and then a clergyman may come in, who would not be very comfortable in his conscience if it were known he did such a thing, and so he does not show him- self exactly in his wonted garb. Notwithstanding, whoever you may be, disguised or not, it is of no use where God’s gospel is preached. It is a quick discerner, and will find out the thoughts and intents of the heart. It will search you out and unmask your true character, disguise yourself as you may. Many who come to God’s house are not disguised in dress, but still disguised in manner and appearance. How good you all look! When we sing, and you take your books, how heavenly-minded! and when we pray, how reverent you are! Mow your heads are allA HEARER IN DISGUISE. bowed ! — your eyes covered with your hands! Ido not know what you all say in your hearts when you come in, and Ishould not like to know. Ido not know how much praying there is when you sit in a devout posture, though you assume the attitude and compose your countenance as those who draw near to supplicate the Lord. I am afraid there are many of you who do not pray a word or present a petition, though you assume the posture of suppliants. When the singing is going on, there are many who never sing a word with the spirit and the understanding. In the house of God I am afraid there are many who wear a mask: stand as God’s people stand, sit as they sit, pray as they pray, and sing as they sing, and all the while what are you doing ? Some of you have been attending to your children while we have been singing to-night. Some of you have been casting up your ledger, attending to your farms, scheming about your carpenter- ing and bricklaying ; yet all the while if we had looked into your faces we might have thought you were reverently worship- ping God. Oh! those solemn faces and those reverent looks — they do not deceive the Most High God. He knows who and what you are. As you are in his house, he sees you as clearly as men see through glass. As for hiding from the Almighty, how can you hide yourself from him? As well attempt to hide in a glass case; for all the world is a glass case before God. When you look into a glass beehive, you can see the bees, and everything they do: such is this world, a sort of glass beehive. in which God can see everything. The eyes of God are on you continually : no veil of hypocrisy can screen you from him. There may be some among you who occasionally sit here, some members of this church, who after all may feign to be other than they are. It is a melancholy and a most solemn reflection that there are many who profess to be Christians who are not Chris- tians. There was a Judas among the twelve; there was a Demas among the early diseiples ; and we must always expect to find chaff on God’s floor mingled with the wheat. I have tried, the Lord knows, to preach as plainly and as much home to the mark as I could, to sift and try you; but for all that the geeee 90 A HEARER IN DISGUISE. hypocrite will come in. After the most searching ministry, there are still some who will wrap themselves about with a mantle of deception. ‘Though we cry aloud and spare not, and bid you lay hold on eternal life, yet, alas! how many are content with a mere name to live, and are dead! Many come here, and even hold office in the church, yea, the minister himself may even preach the Word, and after all be hollow and empty. How many, who dress and look fair outside, are, as John Bunyan said, only fit to be tinder for the devil’s tinder-box! for they are all dry and sere within. God save us from a profession if it be not real. I pray that we may know the worst of our case. If I must be damned, I would sooner go to hell unholy than as a hypocrite; that back door to the pit is the thing I dread most of all. Oh! to sit at the Lord’s table, and to drink of the cup of devils! to be recognized among God’s own here, and then to find one’s own name left out when he reads the muster-roll of his servants !— oh! what a portion for eternity! I bid you tear off this mask; and if the grace of God is not in you, I pray you go into the world, where will be your fitting place, and abstain from joining the church, if you are not really a member of the body of Christ. You see why I urge this: because no dressing up, however neatly it may be done, can conceal us from God. Oh! how some who have been fair on earth have been startled when they thought they were going into heaven! They had their foot almost on the doorstep, but the angel came and said, “Get thee gone, thou wife of Jeroboam! I know thee whom thou art. ‘Thou couldst deceive the minister ; thou couldst deceive the deacons; thou couldst get baptized and join the church ; but thou canst not enter here. Get thee gone! thy portion is with the filthy in the pit of hell.” Oh, may he never say this to you and me ! but may we all be so real here that he may say, “ Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world.” “Thou, God, seest me!” Write that on the palm of thy hand, and look at it; wake up in the morning with it; sleep with it before you on your curtains, “Thou, God, seest me ! ”A HEARER IN DISGUISE. “Oh may this thought possess my breast, Where’er I rove, where’er I rest; Nor let my weaker passions dare Consent to sin, for God is there! ” III. Now we come to a close with a few words upon the HEAVY TIDINGS. The woman stood amazed as the prophet proceeded_to expose the iniquity of her husband’s house, the certain judgment which God would execute, and the terrible diserace with which the name of Jeroboam should be execrated, because they had re- volted from God and set up for themselves the calves of Baal. As for the child, respecting whom she had come to inquire, he Should die. That death was the quenching of a bright spark in the heart of the parents, but none the less a mercy for the youth. “ All Israel shall mourn for him and bury him; for he only of Jeroboam shall come to the grave, because in him there is found some good thing towards the Lord God of Israel in the house of Jeroboam.” Let me linger on this part of the narrative a moment. In that wicked house there was one bright gem upon which the Lord put a high value, —the lad was taken from the evil to come. ‘The kindness of the Lord appeared in his death, while all the judgments were reserved for his father’s family Do I not speak to some of you, ungodly persons, who have lost your little children, and while you wept bitter tears as you carried them to the grave, ‘you said, “ Well, he is better off;” or, “she sleeps in Jesus ”? Did you never think, that, as for you, ye are worse off? Ye have no hope, and are living without God in the world. Let us picture Jeroboam and his wife at the tent of their son Ahijah. There was everything to cheer the heart as to him who had departed; but everything to fill the soul with gloom concerning those who remained. The like has been the case at the funerals of your gracious little ones. We need shed no tears over the bier. Let us keep our lamentations for the mourners who attend the funeral. Ah! but ye may make the reflections all your own. You, too, have been without the gates of the city to carry your offspring to the spot in God’s acre92 A HEARER IN DISGUISE. where they now slumber. Did you think in that mournful hour that the first fruits of your household was holy unto the Lord? We never cease to wonder that the young should die. Yet it has ever been so; and well indeed can I believe that mercy of a sweet-smelling savor is to be found in those dispensations of God’s providence which so often darken the windows of our heart, and wither the fairest buds in our garden. ,Where of old did death strike its first dart? Did it pierce the heart of Adam the sinner, or smite down the relentless Cain? Nay, but right- eous Abel was the first of men who departed from earth, to be absent from the body and present with the Lord. Even so have ye, full many of you, committed your children to the dust, in an assured hope for them, according to the Word of the Lord, —~a hope which ye cannot cherish for yourselves. O sinners! be chary of your tears, your sighs, and your groans ; pour them not out with such profuseness as a libation at the graves of those who sleep in Jesus and are blest: ye will need them all for your own souls presently. Take ye up a lamentation for your own doom. Except ye repent, your funerals, O ungodly ones ! will call for shrill notes of endless despair. Let me pause. I have glad tidings to preach to’ some of you before I yet again deliver these heavy tidings to those who despise the Word. Is there one soul here that desires to be saved? Sinner, I have glad tidings for thee. Here are the words: “ Whosoever will, let him come and take of the water of life freely.” Though thou hast been a drunkard or a swearer, though thou hast been a whoremonger or a thief, yet there is salvation for any man who comes to Jesus Christ for it. And if the Spirit of God moves thee to come now — “Let not conscience make you linger; Nor of fitness fondly dream: All the fitness he requireth, Is to feel your need of him; This he gives you; ’Tis his Spirit’s rising beam.”A HEARER IN DISGUISE. 93 ‘Chou sayest, “ How can I go to Christ?” It is no ereat effort ; it is, in fact, the absence of all effert. Thou hast not to climb to heaven to reach him, nor to travel to the ends of the earth to find him; never doubt, if the Holy Spirit le with thee, thou mayst find him to-night. The way to be saved is simply to trust Christ. Jesus Christ took the guilt of his people, and carried it himself. if thou trustest him, thou shalt have peace, for Jesus took thy sin. An old servant was once carrying a large bough of a tree to have it cut into pieces to make a fire. eSeSLG TA Sap e eae aaa eae ayENDURING TO THE END. builder had constructed an edifice which he thought to be inde- structible, and expressed a wish that he might be in it in the worst storm which ever blew; and he was so, and neither himself nor his lighthouse were ever seen afterwards. Now you have to be exposed to multitudes of storms. You must be in your lighthouse in the worse storm which ever blew. Build firmly, then, on the Rock of Ages, and make sure work for eternity ; for if you do these things, ye shall never fall. For this church’s sake, I pray you do it; for nothing can dishonor and weaken a church so much as the falls of professors. A thousand rivers flow to the sea and make rich the meadows, but no man heareth the sound thereof; but if there be one cataract, its roaring will be heard for miles, and every traveller will mark the fall. A thousand Christians can scarcely do such honor to their Master as one hypocrite can do dishonor to him. If you have ever tasted that the Lord is gracious, pray that your foot slip not. It would be infinitely better to bury you in the earth than see you buried in sin. If I must be lost, God grant it may not be as an apostate. If I must, after all, perish, were it not better never to have known the way of righteousness, than, after hay- ing known the theory of it, and something of the enjoyment of it, turn again to the beggarly elements of the world? Let your prayer be not against death, but against sin. For your own sake, for the church’s sake, for the name of Christ’s sake, I pray you do this. But ye cannot persevere except by much watchfulness in the closet, much carefulness over every action, much dependence upon the strong hand of the Holy Spirit, who alone can make you stand. Walk and live as in the sight of God, knowing where your great strength lieth ; and depend upon it, you shall yet sing that sweet doxology in Jude, “ Now unto him that is able to keep you from falling, and to present you faultless before the presence of his glory with exceeding joy, to the only wise God our Saviour, be glory and majesty, do- minion and power, both now and ever. Amen.” A simple faith brings the soul to Christ. Christ keeps the faith alive. That faith enables the believer to persevere, and so he enters heaven. May that be your lot and mine, for Christ’s sake. Amen.SERMON IX. NOTHING BUT LEAVES. “HE FOUND NOTHING BUT LEAVES.”? — Mark xi. 13. Most of the miracles of Moses were grand displays of divine justice. What were the first ten wonders but ten plagues? The same may be said of the prophets, especially of Elijah and Elisha. Was it not significant both of the character and mission of Elias when he called fire from heaven upon the captains of fifties ? Nor was he upon whom his mantle descended less terrible when the she-bears avenged him upon the mockers. It remained for our incarnate Lord to reveal the heart of God. The only-begotten was full of grace and truth, and in his miracles pre-eminently God is set forth to us as Love. With the exception of the miracle before us, and, perhaps, a part of another, all the miracles of Jesus were entirely benevolent in their character ; indeed, this one is no exception in reality, but only in appearance. The raising of the dead, the feeding of the multitude, the stilling of the tempest, the healing of diseases — what were all these but displays of the loving-kindness of God? What was this to teach us but that Jesus Christ came forth from his Father on an errand of pure grace ? “Thine hands, dear Jesus, were not arm’d With an avenging rod, No hard commission to perform The vengeance of a God. “But all was mercy, all was mild, And wrath forsook the throne, When Christ on his kind errand came And brought salvation down.”NOTHING BUT LEAVES. 169 Let us rejoice that God commendeth his Jove towards us, because in “due time Christ died for the ungodly.” Yet, as if to show that Jesus the Saviour is also Jesus the Judge, one gleam of justice must dart forth. Where shall merey direct its fall? See, my brethren! it glances not upon a man, but lights upon an unconscious, unsuffering thing —a tree. The curse, if we may call it a curse at all, did not fall on man or beast, or even the smallest insect: its bolt falls harmlessly upon a fig tree by the wayside. It bore upon itself the sions of bar- renness, and perhaps was no one’s property. Little, therefore, was the loss which any man sustained by the withering of that verdant mockery, while instruction more precious than a thou- sand acres of fig trees has been left for the benefit of all ages. Lhe only other instance, at which I hinted just now, was the permission given to the devils to enter into the swine, and the whole herd ran violently down a steep place into the sea, and perished in the waters. In that case, again, what a mercy it was that the Saviour did not permit a band of men to become the victims of the evil one! It was infinitely better that the whole herd of swine should perish than that one poor man should be rendered a maniac through their influence. The creatures choked in the abyss were nothing but swine — swine which their Jewish owners had no right to keep; and even then they did not perish tl rough Jesus Christ’s agency, but through the malice of the devils, — for needs must even swine run when the devil drives. Observe, then, with attention, this solitary instance of stern Judgment wrought by the Saviour’s hand. Consider seriously thar, if only once in his whole life Christ works a miracle of pure Judement, the lesson so unique must be very full of meaning. If there be but one curse, where does it fall? What is its sym- bolic teaching ? I do not know that I ever felt more solemnly the need of true faithfulness before God than when I was look- ing over this miracle-parable — for such it may justly be called. The curse, you at once perceive, falls in its metaphorical and spiritual meaning upon those high professors who are destitute of true holiness ; upon those who manifest great show of leaves, 1d120 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. re sut who bring forth no fruit unto God. Only one thunderbolt, me and that for boasting pretenders; only one curse,-and that for hypocrites. O blessed Spirit! write this heart-searching truth upon our hearts. 1. We will commence our exposition with the remark that THERE WERE MANY TREES WITH LEAVES ONLY UPON THEM, AND YET NONE OF THESE WERE CURSED BY THE SAVIOUR, SAVE ONLY THIS FIG TREE. It is the nature of many trees to yield to man nothing but their shade. The hungering Saviour did not resort to the oak or to the elm to look for food, nor could the fir tree, nor the pine, nor the box offer him any hope of refreshment ; nor did he breathe one hard word concerning them, for he knew what was in them, and that they neither were, nor pretended to be, fruit-bearing trees. So, dear friends, there are many men whose lives bear leaves, but no fruit; and yet, thanks be unto God, almighty patience bears with them. ‘They are allowed to live out their time, and then, it is true, they are cut } down and cast into the fire; but while they are permitted to stand, no curse withers them: the long-suffering of God waiteth ‘ to be gracious to them. WHere are some of the characters who have leaves but no fruit. There are thousands who ignorantly follow the stgn, and know nothing of the substance. In England, we think ourselves far in advance of popish countries; but how much of the essence of Popery peeps out in the worship of very many! They go to church or chapel, and they think that the mere going into the place and sitting a certain time and coming out again is an‘ac- ceptable act to God; mere formality, you see, is mistaken for spiritual worship. They are careful to have their infants sprinkled, but what the ceremony means they know not; amd . without looking into the Bible to see whether the Lord com- mands any such an ordinance, they offer him their ignorant will- worship, either in obedience to custom, or in the superstition of ignorance. What the thing is, or why it is, they do not in- quire, but go through a performance as certain parrots say theirNOTHING BUT LEAVEs. 17] prayers. They know notling about the inward and spiritual grace : a me fae : e which the catechism talks about, if, indeed, inward spiritual grace could ever be connected with an unscriptural outward and visible sign. When these poor souls come to the Lord’s Supper, their thoughts go no further than the bread and wine, or the hands which break the one and pour out the other. They know nothing whatever of communion with Jesus, of eating his flesh and drink- ing his blood. Their souls have proceeded as far as the shell, but they have never broken into the kernel to taste the sw eetness thereof. They have a name to live, and are de ad; their religion is a mere show; a signboard without an inn ; a well-set table without meat; a pretty pageant where nothing is gold, but everything gilt, — nothing real, but all pasteboard, paint, plaster, and pretence. Nonconformists, your chapels swarm with such, and the houses of the Establishment are full of the same. Mul- titudes live and die satisfied with the outward trappings of reli- gion, and are utter strangers to internal vital godliness. Yet such persons are not cursed in this life. No: they are to be pitied, to be prayed for, to be sought after, with words of love and honest truth ; they are to be hoped for yet, for who knoweth but that God may call them to repentance, and they may yet receive the life of God into their souls ? Another very numerous class have opinion, but not faith ; creed, but not credence. We meet them everywhere. How zealous they are for Protestantism ! They would not only die for orthodoxy, but kill others as well. Perhaps it is the Calvin- istic doctrine which they have received ; and then the five points are as dear to them as their five senses. These men will con- tend, not to say earnestly, but savagely, for the faith. They very vehemently denounce all those who differ from them in the smallest degree, and deal damnation round the land with amazing liberality to all who are not full weight according to the balance of their little Zoar, Rehoboth, or Jireh ; while all the while the spirit of Christ, the love of the Spirit, bowels of compassion, and holiness of character are no more to be expected from them than grapes from thorns, or figs from thistles. Doctrine, my brethren,172 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. is to be prized above all price! Woe to the church of God when error shall be thought a trifle, for truth will be lightly esteemed ; and when truth is gone, what is left? But at the same time we grossly mistake if we think that orthodoxy of creed will save us. I am sick of those cries of “the truth,” “the truth,” “the truth,’ from men of rotten lives and unholy tempers. There is an ors thodox ag well as a heterodox road to hell, and the devil knows how to handle Calvinists quite as well as Arminians. No pale of any church can insure salvation ; no form of doctrine can guar- antee to us eternal life. “ Ye must be born again.” Ye must bring forth fruits meet for repentance. “ Every tree which bringeth not forth fruit, is hewn down and cast into the fire.” Stopping short of vital union to the Lord Jesus by real faith, we miss the great qualification for entering heaven. Yet the time is not come when these mere head-knowers are cursed. ‘These trees have leaves only, but no fatal curse has withered them hopelessly. No: they are to be sought after; they may yet know the Lord in their hearts, and the Holy Spirit may yet make them humble followers of the Lamb. Oh that it may be so! A third class have talk without feeling. Mr. ‘Talkative, in “ Pilorim’s Progress,” is the representative of a very numerous host. They speak very glibly concerning divine things. Whether the topic be doctrinal, experimental, or practical, they talk flu- ently upon everything. But, evidently, the whole thing comes from the throat and the lip: there is no welling up from the heart. If the thing came from the heart, it would be boiling; but now it bangs like an icicle from their lips. You know them -— you may learn something from them ; but all the while you are yourself aware that if they bless others by their words, they themselves remain unblessed. Ah! let us be very anxious lest this should be our own case. Let the preacher feel the anxiety of the Apostle Paul, lest, after having preached to others, he himself should be a castaway; and let my hearers feel the same concern, lest, after talking about the things of God, they should prove to be mere lip-servers, and not accepted children of the Most High.NOTHING BUT LEAVES. Lz Another tribe springs up just now before my eye, — those who have regrets without repentance. Many of you under a heart- searching sermon feel grieved on account of your sins, and yet never have the strength of mind to give them up. You say you are sorry, but yet go on in the same course. You do really feel, when death and judgment press upon you, a certain sort of re- gret that you could have been so foolish; but the next day the strength of temptation is such that you fall a prey to the very same infatuation. It is easy to bring a man to the river of regret, but you cannot make him drink the water of repentance. If Agag would be killed with words, no Amalekite would live. If men’s transient sorrows for sin were real repentance on ac- count of it, there is not a man living who would not, sometime or other, have been a true penitent. .Here, however, are leaves only, and no fruit. We have yet, again, another class of persons who have resolves without action. They will! Ah! that they will! but it is always in the future tense. They are hearers, and they are even feelers, but they are not doers of the Word; it never comes to that. They would be free, but they have not patience to file their fetters, nor grace to submit their manacles to the hammer. They see the right, but they permit the wrong to rule them. They are charmed with the beauties of holiness, and yet deluded with the wantonness of sin. They would run in the ways of God’s commandments, but the road is too rough, and running is weary work. They would fight for God, but victory is hardly won, and so they turn back almost as soon as they have set out ; they put their hand to the plough, and then prove utterly unwor- thy of the kingdom. The great majority of persons who have any sort of religion at all, bear leaves ; but they produce no fruit. I know there are some such here, and I solemnly warn you, though no curse falls upon you, though we do not think that the miracle now under consid- eration has any relation to you whatever, yet, remember there is nothing to be done with trees which bring forth only leaves, but in due time to use the axe upon them, and to cast them into the 15*174 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. fire; and thts must be your doom. As sure as you live under the sound of the gospel, and yet are not converted by it, so surely will you be cast into outer darkness. As certainly as Jesus Christ invites you and ye will not come, so certainly will he send his angels to gather the dead branches together, and you among them, to cast them into the fire. Beware! beware, thou fruit- less tree! thou shalt not stand forever! Mercy waters thee with her tears now ; God’s loving-kindness digs about thee still, — still the husbandman comes, seeking fruit upon thee, year after year. Beware! The edge of the axe is sharp, and the arm which wields it is nothing less than almighty. Beware! lest thou fall into the fire ! II. Secondly, rHERE WERE OTHER TREES WITH NEITHER LEAVES NOR FRUIT, AND NONE OF THESE WERE CURSED. The time of figs was not yet come. Now, as the fig tree either brings forth the fig before the leaf, or else produces figs and leaves at the same time, the major part of the trees, perhaps all of them, without exception of this one, were entirely without fiss and without leaves ; and yet Jesus did not curse any one of them, for the time of figs was not yet come. What multitudes are destitute of anything like religion ! They make no profession of it; they not only have no fruits of godli- ness, but they have no leaves even of outward respect to it; they do not frequent the court. of the Lord’s house; they use no form of prayer; they never attend upon ordinances. ‘The great out- lying mass of this huge city — how does religion affect it? It is a very sad thing to think that there are people living in total darkness next door to the light; that you may find in the very street where the gospel is preached, persons who have never heard a sermon. Are there not, throughout this city, tens and hundreds of thousands who know not their right hand from their left, in matters of godliness? Their children go to Sabbath- schools, but they themselves spend the whole Sabbath-day in anything except the worship of God. In our country parishes, very often neither the religion of the Establishment nor of Dis«NOTHING BUT LEAVES. FD sent at all affects the population. Take, for instance, that village which will be disgracefull 1y remembered as long as Ess the village of Hedingham. wizard, must have been as igno 4D ex endures, There are in that place not only parish churches, but dissenting meeting-houses ; and yet the per- sons who foully murdered the va wretch supposed to be a ‘ant and indifferent to common sense, let alone religion, as even Coe or Kaffirs, to whom the light of religion has never come. tact with godiiness will bear witness that ek out those society, so that multitudes at all ? L Why was this ? because there is not enough of missionary tian people to s Is it not 7 spirit among Chris- who are in the lowest strata of yet there are thousands of husbands, who are neces at the time of the missionary’s visi rebuke, or exhortation, or sounding in their ears at all, from the day of their death ; and they m a) well have been born in the centre of ie as in Ss escape without.ever coming into con- In London, the city missionaries while they can sometimes get at the we sarily away t, who have not a word of invitation, or encouragement ever alee of their birth to the ight, for all practical purposes, as e the city or London ; for they are without God without ho IC, — aliens fr om 2 ’ the commonwealth of Israel ; far on, not by wicked works only 2 : 3 but b y dense ignorance oL God. These persons we may divide into two classes, upon neither of whom does the withering curse fall in this life. look upon with hope. I Book of Life, and were ther Their names are in the The first we Although we see neither leaves nor fruit, we know that “the time of jigs ts not yet.” elect, but they are not called. They are God’s mM ha Lamb’s e from before the foundations of the world. Though they be dead in trespasses, or divine love; they are the objects nd they must, in due time, be ee by re ble grace, and turned from darkness to light. The Lord hat much people in this city,” and this should be the Se ae of every one of you to try to do good, that God has among the vilest of the vile, drunken, an elect people who must be saved. the most reprobate, the most debauched and When you take the Word to them, you do so because God has ordained you te176 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. be the messenger of life to their souls; and they must receive it, for so the decree of predestination runs: they must be called in the fulness of time to be the brethren of Christ and children of the Most High. They are redeemed, beloved friends, but not regenerated; as much redeemed with precious blood as the saints before the eternal throne. They are Christ’s property ; and yet, perhaps, they are waiting around the ale-house at this very moment, until the door shall open ; — bought with Jesus’ precious blood, and yet spending their nights in a brothel, and their days in sin. But if Jesus Christ purchased them he will have them. If he counted down the precious drops, God is not unfaithful to forget the price which his Son has paid. He will not suffer his substitution to be in any case an ineffectual, dead thing. Tens of thousands of redeemed ones are not regenerated yet, but regenerated they must be; and this is your comfort and mine, when we go out with the quickening Word of God. Nay, more; these ungodly ones are prayed for by Christ before the throne. “ Neither pray I for these alone,” saith the great Inter- cessor, “ but for them also which shall believe on me through their word.” They do not pray for themselves. Poor ignorant souls, they do not know anything about prayer; but Jesus prays for them. ‘Their names are on his breast, and ere long they must bow their stubborn knee, breathing the penitential sigh before the throne of grace. “'The time of figs 7s not yet.” The pre- destinated moment has not struck ; but, when it comes, they shall, for God will have his own; they must, for the Spirit is not to be withstood when he cometh forth with power; they must become the willmg servants of the living God. “My people shall be willing in the day of my power.” “He shall justify many.” “He shall see of the travail of his soul.” “He shall divide a portion with the great, and he shall divide the spoil with the strong.” No curse falls upon these; they deserve it, but eternal love prevents it. Their sins write it, but the finished sacrifice blots it out. They may well perish because they seek not mercy, but Christ intercedes for them, and live they shall. bistabiiceieeet =NOTHING BUT LEA /ES. las! however, among those who have neither leaves nor fruit, there is another class which never bring forth either the one or the other ; they live in sin, and die in ignorance,— per- ishing without hope. As these leave the world, can they upbraid us for neglecting them? Are we clear of their blood? May not the blood of many of them cry from the ground against us? As they are condemned on account of sins, may they not accuse us because we did not take the gospel to them, but left them where they were? Dread thought! But let it not be shaken off ; there are tens of thousands every day who pass into the world of spirits unsaved, and inherit the righteous wrath of God. Yet in this life, you see, no special curse falls upon them; and this miracle has no special bearing upon them : it bears upon a totally different class of people, of whom we will now speak. III]. We HAVE BEFORE US A SPECIAL CASE. J have already said that, in a fig tree, the fruit takes the pre- cedence of the leaves, or the leaves and the fruit come at the same time ; so that it is laid down as a general rule that if there be leaves upon a fig tree you may rightly expect to find frui upon it. To begin, then, with the explanation of this special case, — in a fig tree fruit comes before leaves. So in a true Christian, fruit always takes the precedence of profession. Find a man any- where who is a true servant of God, and before he united him- self with the church, or attempted to engage in public prayer, or to identify himself with the people of God, he searched to see whether he had real repentance on account of sin; he de- sired to know whether he had a sincere and genuine faith in the Lord Jesus Christ; and he perhaps tarried some little time to try himself, to see whether there were the fruits of holiness in his daily life. Indeed, I may say that there are some who wait too long; they are so afraid lest they should make a profession before they have grace in possession, that they will wait year after year —too long; become unwise, and make what was a virtue become a vice. Still this is the rule with Christians;NOTHING BUT LEAVES. they first give themselves to the Lord and afterwards to the Lord’s people, according to his will. You who are the servants of God — do you not scorn to vaunt yourselves beyond your line and measure? Would you not think it disgraceful on your part to profess anything which you have not felt? Do you not feel a holy jealousy when you are teaching others, lest you should teach more than God has taught you? and are you not afraid, even in your prayers, lest you should use expressions which are beyond your own depth of meaning? Iam sure the true Christian is always afraid of anything like having the leaves before he has the fruit. Another remark follows, from this — where we see the leaves we have aright to expect the fruit. When I see a mana church mem- ber, when I hear him engage in prayer, I expect to see in him ho- liness, — the character and the image of Christ. I havea right to expect it, because the man has solemnly avowed that he is the partaker of divine grace. You cannot join a church without taking upon yourselves very solemn responsibilities. What do you declare when you come to see us, and ask to be admitted into fellowship? You tell us that you have passed from death unto life; that you have been born again; that there has been a change in you, the like of which you never knew before; one which only God could have wrought. You tell us you are in the habit of private prayer; that you have a desire for the con- version of others. If you did not so profess, we dare not re- ceive you. Well, now, having made these professions, it would be insincere on our part if we did not expect to see your char- acters holy, and your conversation correct ; we have a right to expect it from your own professions. We have a right to expect it from the work of the Spirit, which you claim to have received. Shall the Holy Spirit work in man’s heart to’ produce a trifle ? Do you think that the Spirit of God would have written us this Book, and that Jesus Christ would have shed his precious blood to produce a hypocrite? Is an inconsistent Christian the high- est work of God? I suppose God’s plan of salvation to be that which has more exercised his thoughts and wisdom than theNOTHING BUT LEAVES. 179 making of all worlds and the sustenance of all prcevidence; and shall this best, this highest, this darling work of God produce no more than that poor, mean, talking, unacting, fruitless de- ceiver? Ye have no love for souls, no care for the spread of the Redeemer’s kinedom, and yet think that the Spirit has made you what you aie No zeal, no melting bowels of compassion, no cries of earnest entreaty, no wrestling with God, no holiness, no self-denial ; and yet say that you are a vessel made by the Master and fitted for his use! How can this be? No; if you profess to be a Christian, from the necessity of the Spirit's work we have a right to expect fruit from you. Besides, in genuine professors we do get the fruit; we see a faithful attachment to the Redeemer’s cause, an endurance to the end, in poverty, in sickness, in shame, in persecution. We see other professors holding fast to the truth ; they are not led aside by temptation ; neither do they disgrace the cause they have espoused: and, if you profess to be one of the same order, we have a right to look for the same blessed fruits of the Spirit in you; and if we see them not, you have belied us. Observe, further, that our Lord hungers for fruit. A hangry person seeks for something which may satisfy him, — for fruit, not leaves. Jesus hungers for your holiness. A strong expression, you will say ; but I doubt not of its accuracy. For what were we elected? We were predestinated to be conformed unto the image of God’s.Son; we were chosen to good works, “ which God hath before ordained that we should walk in them.” What is the end of our redemption? Why did Jesus Christ: die? “Tle gave himself for us that he might redeem us from all in- iquity, and purify unto himself a peculiar people, zealous of 4 Why have we been called but that we should be 29 good works. called to be saints? To what end are any of the great opera- tions of the covenant of grace? Do they not all point at our holiness? If you will think of any privilege which the Lord confers upon his people through Christ, you will perceive that they all aim at the sanctification of the chrsen people —the making of them to bring forth fruit, that God the Father may180 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. be glorified in them. O Christian! for this the tears of the Sae viour; for this the agony and bloody sweat; for this the itive death-wounds ; for this the burial and the resurrection, that he makes you holy, even perfectly holy, like unto himself! And can it be, when he hungers after fruit, you think nothing of fruit-bearing? O professor! how base art thou, to call thyself a blood-bought child of God, and yet to live unto thyself! How darest thou, O barren tree! professing to be watered by the bloody sweat, and digged by the griefs and woes of the wounded Saviour — how darest thou bring forth leaves and no fruit? Oh sacrilegious mockery of a hungry Saviour! oh blasphe- nous tantalizing of a hungry Lord! that thou shouldst profess to have cost him all this, and yet yield him nothing! When I think that Jesus hungers after fruit in me, it stirs me up to do more for him. Does it not have the same effect on you? He hungers for your good works; he hungers to see you useful. Jesus, the King of kings, hungers after your prayers — hungers after your anxieties for the souls of others; and “nothing ever will. satisfy him for the travail of his soul but seeing you wholly devoted to his cause. fhis brings us into the very midst and meaning of the mira- cle. There are some, then, who make unusual profession, and yet disappoint the Saviour in his just expectations. The Jews did this.” When Jesus Christ came it was not the time of figs. The time for great holiness was after the coming of Christ and the pouring out of the Spirit. All the other nations were with- out leaves. Greece, Rome, all these showed no signs of prog- ress; but there was the Jewish nation covered with leaves. They professed already to have obtained the blessings which he came to bring. There stood the Pharisee, with his long prayers; there were the lawyers and the Scribes, with their deep knowl- edge of the things of the kingdom. They said they had the light. The time of figs was not come, but yet they had the leaves, though not a single fruit; and you know what a curse fell on Israel: how, in the day of Jerusalem’s destruction, the tree wasNCTHING BUT LEAVES. withered altogether from its root, because it had its leaves, but had no fruit. The same will be true of any church. There are times when all the churches seem sunken alike in lethargy ; such a time we had, say, ten years ago. But one church, perhaps, seems to be all alive. The congregations are large. Mauch, apparently, is proposed for the growth of the Saviour’s kingdom. A deal of noise is made about it. There is much talk, and the people are all expectation ; and if there be no fruit, no real consecra« tion to Christ, — if there be no genuine liberality, no earnest vital godliness, no hallowed consistency, — other churches may live on ; but such a church as this, making so high a profession, and being so precocious in the produce of leaves, shall have a curse from God. No man shall eat fruit of it forever, and it shall wither away. In the case of individuals the moral of our miracle runs thus. Some are looked upon as young believers, who early join the church. “ The time of figs is not yet.” It is not a very ordinary case to see children converted; but we do see some, and we are very grateful. We are jealous, however, lest we should see leaves but not fruit. These juveniles are extraordinary cases ; and on that account we look for higher results. When we are disappointed, what shall come upon such but a curse upon their precocity, which led them to the deception? Some of us were converted, or profess to have been, when young ; and if we have lived hitherto, and all we have produced has been merely words, resolves, professions, but not fruit unto God, we must expect the curse. Again, professors eminent in station. There are necessarily but few ministers, but few church officers; but when men so distinguish themselves by zeal, or by louder professions than others, as to gain the ear of the Christian public, and are placed in responsible positions —if they bring forth no fruit, they are the persons upon whom the curse will light. It may be with other Christians that “the time of figs is not yet:” they have not made the advances which these profess to have made; but 161&2 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. having been, upon their own profession, elected to an office which essentially requires fruit, since they yield it not, let them ye ware. To those who make professions of much love to Christ the yame caution may be given. With the most of Christians, I am afraid, I must say that “the time of figs is not yet,” for we are too much like the Laodicean church. But you meet with some men — how much they are in love with Christ! How sweetly they can talk about him! But what dothey do for him? Noth- ing — nothing! Their love lies just in the wind which comes out of their own mouths, and that is all. Now, when the Lord has a curse, he will deal it out on such. They went beyond all others in an untimely declaration of a very fervent love, and now they yield him no fruit. “ Yes,’ said one, “I love God so much that I do not reckon that anything I have is my own. It is all the Lord’s — all the Lord’s, and I am his steward.” Well, this dear good man, of course, joined the church; and after a time, some mission work wanted a little help. What was his reply? “ When I pay my seat rent, I have done all I intend to do.” A man of wealth and means! After a little time, this same man found it inconvenient even to pay for his seat, and goes now to a place not quite so full, where he can get a seat and do nothing to support the ministry! If there is a special thunderbolt anywhere, it is these unctious hypocrites who whine about love to Christ, and bow down at the shrine of mammon. Or, take another case. You meet with others whose profes- sion is not of so much love, but it is of much experience. Oh, what experience they have had! What deep experience! Ah! they know the humblings of heart and the plague of human nature! ‘They know the depths of corruption, and the heights of divine fellowship, and so on. Yes; and if you go into the shop, you find the corruption is carried on behind the counter, and the deceit in the day-book. If they do not know the plague of their own hearts, at least they are a plague to their own household. Such people are abhorrent to z1l men, and much more to God.NOTHING BUT LEAVES. 183 se. What good people they must be —they can see the faults of other people so plainly! This church is not right, and the other is not right ; and yonder preacher — well, some people think hima very good man, but they do not. They can see the deficiencies in the various denominations, and they observe that very few really carry out Scripture as it should be carried out. They complain of want of love, and are the very people who create that want. Others you meet with who have a censorious tongr Now, if you will watch these very censorious people, the very faults they indicate in others they are indalging in themselves ; and while they are seeking to find out the mote in their brother’s eye, they have a beam in their own. These are the people who are indicated by this fig tree; for they ought, according to their own showing, taking them on their own ground, to be better than other people. If what they say be true, they are bright partic- ular stars, and they ought to give special light to the world. They are such that even Jesus Christ himself might expect to receive fruit from them; but they are nothing but deceivers, with these high soarings and proud boastings: they are nothing after all but pretenders. Like Jezebel with her paint, which made her all the uglier, they would seem to be what they are not. As old Adam says, ‘ They are candles with big wicks and no tallow, and when they go out they make a foul and nauseous smell.” “ "They have summer sweating on their brow, and winter freez- ing in their hearts.” You would think them the land of Goshen, but prove them the wilderness of sin. Let us search ourselves, lest such be the case with us. IV. And now to close, sucH A TREE MIGHT WELL BE WITH- ERED. Deception is abhorred of God. There was the Jewish temple ; there were the priests standing in solemn pomp ; there were the abundant sacrifices of God’s altar. But was God pleased with his temple? No; because in the temple you had all the leaves, you had all the externals uf vorship ; but there was no true prayer, no belief in the great Lamb of God’s pass- over, no truth, no righteousness, no love of men, no care for theRo 184 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. glory of God: and so the temple, which had been a house of prayer, had become a den of thieves. You do not marvel that the temple was destroyed. You and I may become just like that temple. We may goon with all the externals of religions; no- body may miss us out of our seat at Tabernacle: nay, we may never miss our Christian engagements; we may be in all ex- ternal matters more precise than we used to be, and yet for all that we may have become in our hearts a den of thieves: the heart may be given to the world while external ceremonies are still kept up and maintained. Let us beware of this, for such a place cannot be long without a curse. It is abhorrent to God. Again, tt is deceptive to man. Look at that temple! What do men go there for? To see holiness and virtue. Why tread they its hallowed courts? To get nearer to God. And what do they find there? Instead of holiness, covetousness; instead of getting nearer to God, they get into the midst of a mart where men are haggling about the price of doves, and bickering with one another about the changing of shekels. So men may watch to hear some seasonable word from our lips, and instead of that may get evil; and as that temple was cursed for deluding men, so may we be, because we deceive and disappoint the wants of mankind. ‘More than this: this barren fig tree committed sacrilege upon Christ, did it not? Might it not have exposed him to ridicule? Some might have said: “ How goest thou to a tree, thou prophet, whereon there is no fruit?” A false professor exposes Christ to ridicule. As the temple of old dishonored God, so does a Christian when his heart is not right; he does dishonor to God, _and makes the holy cause to be trodden under foot of the adversary. Such men indeed have reason to beware. Once more: this tree might well be cursed, because its bring- ing forth nothing but leaves was a plain evidence of its sterility. Tt had force and vitality, but it turned it to ill account, and would continue to do so. The curse of Christ was but a confirmation of what it already was. He did as good as say, “ He that is unfruitful, let him be unfruitful still” And now, what if ChristNOTHING BUT LEAVES. FS5 should come into this Tabernacle this morning, and should look on you and on me, and see in any of us great profession and great pomp of leaves, and yet no fruit, — what if he should pro- nounce the curse on us ? — what would be the effect ? We should wither away as others have done. What mean we by this? Why, they have on a sudden turned to the world. We could not understand why such fair saints should on a sudden become such black devils ; the fact was, Christ had pronounced the word, and they began to wither away. If he should pronounce the unmasking word on any mere professor here, and say, “ Let no man eat fruit of thee forever,” you will go into gross outward sin and wither to your shame. This will take place probably on a sudden ; and, taking place, your case will be irretrievable. You never afterwards will be restored. The blast which shall fall upon you will be eternal; you will live as a lasting monument of the terrible justice of Christ, as the great Head of the church; you will be spared to let it be seen that a man outside the church may escape with impunity in this life, but a man inside the church shall have a present curse, and be made to stand as atree blasted by the lightning of God forever. Now, this is a heart- searching matter. It went through me yesterday when I thought, “Well, here am I; I have professed to be called of God to the ministry ; I have forced myself into a leading place in God’s church ; I have voluntarily put myself into a place where seven- fold damnation is my inevitable inheritance if I be not true and sincere.” I could almost wish myself back out of the church, or at least in the obscurest place in her ranks, to escape the perils and responsibilities of my position ; and so may you, if you have not the witness of the Spirit in you that you are born of God ;— you may wish that you never thought of Christ, and never dreamed of taking his name upon you. If you have by diligence worked yourself into a high position among God’s people, — if you have mere leaves without the fruit, — the more sure is the curse, be- cause the greater the disappointment of the Saviour. The more you profess, the more is expected of you: and if you do not yield it, the more just the condemnation when you shall be left to stand 16*185 NOTHING BUT LEAVES. fovever withered by the curse of Christ. O men and brethren! let us tremble before the heart-searching eye of God; but let us still remember that grace can make us fruitful yet. ‘The way of mercy is open still. Let us apply to the wounds of Christ this morning. If we have never begun, let us begin now. Now let us throw our arms about the Saviour, and take him to be ours ; and, having done this, let us seek divine grace, that for the rest of our lives we may work for God: Oh! I do hope to do more for God, and I hope you will. O Holy Spirit! work im us mightily, for in thee is our fruit found! Amen.SERMON X. THE GREAT LIBERATOR. “IP THE SON THEREFORE SHALL MAKE YOu FREE, YE SHALL BE FREE INDEED.” — John viii. 86. Buxssep is that word “free,” and blessed is he who spends himself to make men so. Ye did well to crowd your streets and to welcome with your joyous acclamations the man who has bros ken the yoke from off the neck of the oppressed. Many sons of Italy have done valiantly ; but he excels them all, and deserves the love of all the good and brave. Political slavery is an tolerable evil. To live, to think, to act, to speak at the permis- sion of another! Better have no life at all! To depend for my existence upon a despot’s will, is death itself. Craven spirits may wear the dog-collar which their master puts upon them, and fawn at his feet for the bones of his table ; but men who are wor- thy of the name had rather feed the vultures on the battle-field. Lhe burden of civil bondage is too heavy for bold spirits to bear with patience, and therefore they fret and murmur bencath it § this murmuring the tyrant loves not, and therefore he throws the sufferers into his dungeons, and bids them wear out their days in captivity. Blessed is he who hurls down the despot, bursts the doors of his dungeons, and gives true men their rights. We have never felt, and therefore we know not, the bitterness of thraldom. Our emancipators have gone to the world of spirits, bequeathing us an heirloom of liberty, for which we should love their names and reverence their God. If they could have lived on till now, how we should honor them! but as they are gone, ° 1 iii™188 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. we do well to applaud our illustrious guest as if we saw in him the spirit of all our glorious liberators worthily enshrined. Polit- ical liberty allows scope for so much of all that is good and ennobling, and its opposite involves so much that is debasing, that the mightiest nation destitute of it is poor indeed, and the poorest of all people, if they be but free, are truly rich. But, my brethren, men may have political liberty to the very fullest extent, and yet be slaves; for there is such a thing as religious bondage. He who cringes before a priest —he who dreads his anathema, or who creeps at his feet to receive his blessing —is an abject slave. He may call himself a freeman, but his soul is in bondage vile if superstition makes him wear the chain. To be afraid of the mutterings of a man like myself, — to bow before a piece of wood or a yard of painted canvas, — to reverence 2 morsel of bread or a rotten bone — this 1s mental slavery indeed. They call the negro slave in the Southern Con- federacy, but men who prostrate their reason before the throne of superstition are slaves through and through. To yield obe- dience to our Lord, to offer prayer to God Most High, is perfect freedom; but to tell my heart out to a mortal with a shaven crown, —to trust my family secrets and my wife’s. character to the commands of a man who may be all the while wallowing in debauchery, — is worse than the worst form of serfdom. I would sooner serve the most cruel Sultan who ever crushed humanity beneath his iron heel than bow before the Pope or any other priest of man’s making. The tyranny of priesteraft is the werst of ills. Ye may cut through the bonds of despots with a sword, but the sword of the Lord himself is needed here. Truth must file these fetters, and the Holy Spirit must open these dungeons. Ye may escape from prison ; but superstition hangs round a man, and with its deadly influence keeps him ever in its dark and gloomy cell. Scepticism, which proposes to snap the chains of superstition, only supplants a blind belief with an unhallowed credulity, and leaves the victim as oppressed as ever. Jesus the Son alone can make men truly free. Happy are they whom he has delivered from superstition. Blessed are our eyes that thisTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 189 iy we see the light of gospel liberty, and are no longer immured in popish darkness. Let us remember our privileges, and bless God with a loud voice that the darkness is past and the true light shineth ; since the name of Jesus, the preaching of his Word and the power of his truth have, in this respect, in a high degree, made our nation free. Yet a man may be delivered from the bond of superstition, and be still a serf; for he who is not ruled by a priest may still be controlled by the devil or by his own lusts, which is much the same. Our carnal desires and inclinations are domineering lords enough, as those know who follow out their commands. A man may say, “I feel not supernatural terrors; I know no supersti- tious horrors ;” and then, folding his arms, he may boast that he is free ; but he may all the while be aslave to his own evil heart. He may be grinding at the mill of avarice, rotting in the reeking dungeon of sensuality, dragged along by the chains of maddened anger, or borne down by the yoke of fashionable custom. He is the free man who is master of himself through the grace of God. He who serves his own passions is the slave of the worst of des- pots. ‘Talk to me not of dark dungeons beneath the sea level; speak not to me of pits in which men have been immured and forgotten ; tell me not of heavy chains, nor even of racks and the consuming fire: the slave of sin and Satan, sooner or later, knows greater horrors than these —his doom more terrible be- cause eternal, and his slavery more hopeless because it is one into which he willingly commits himself, Perhaps there are those present who claim liberty for them- selves, and say that they are able to control their passions, and have never given way to impure desires. Ay, a man may get as far as that in a modified sense, and yet not be free. Perhaps I address those who, knowing the right, have struggled for it against the wrong. You have reformed yourselves from follies into which you had fallen; you have by diligence brought the flesh somewhat under, in its outward manifestations of sin, and now your life is moral, your conduct is respectable, your repu- tation high: still, for all that, it may be that you are conscious190 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. that you are not free. Your old sins haunt you; your former corruptions perplex ee ; you have not found peace, for you have not obtained forgiveness. You have buried your sins beneath the earth of years, but conscience has g iven them a resurrection, and the ghosts of your past transgr essions haunt yom. You can scarce sleep at night, because of the recollection of the wrath of God which you deserve; and by day there is a gall put into your sweetest draughts, because you know that you have sinned against heaven, and that heaven must visit with vengeance your transgression. Ye have not yet come to the full liberty of the children of God, as you will do if you cast yourselves into the hands of Jesus who looseth the captives. “If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed, ”- free as the mere political liberator cannot make you 5 free as he cannot make you who merely delivers you from superstition ; free as reformation cannot make you; free as God alone can make you by his inee Spirit. “If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed.” Now, this morning may the Lord give his servant help from on high while I try to talk with you. To those who feel to-day their slavery, my message may be profitable. Our first point is, that to those who are the bondslaves of Satan, liberty is possible. The text would not mock us with a dream: it says, “Jf the Son therefore shall make you free.” All who are slaves shall not be set free ; but there is the possibility of liberty implied in the text. Blessed “if;” it is like the prison window, — through the stony wall it lets in enough sunshine for us to read the word “ hope” with. “Jf the Son therefore shall make you free.” Secondly, there is a false freedom; you see that in the text — “ Ye shall be free indeed,” it says. ‘There were some who professed to be free, but were not so. The Greek is, “ Ye shall be free really,” for there be some who are free only in the name, and in the shadow of freedom, but who are not free as to the substance. Then, thirdly, real freedom must come to us from the Son, that glorious Son of God who, being free, and giving himself to us, gives us freedom, And then we shall close by puttmg a fewTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 191 personal questions as to whether the Son hath made us free, or whether we still remain slaves. I. First then, dear friends, our text rings a sweet silver bell of hope in the ear of those who are imprisoned by their sin. FREEDOM IS POSSIBLE; the word “if” implies it. The Son of God can make the prisoner free. No matter who you are, nor what you are, nor how many years you may have remained the slaves of Satan, the Son, the glorious Liberator, can make you free. “ He is able also to save them to the uttermost, who come unto God by him.” Perhaps that which weighs upon you most heavily is a sense of your past guilt. “I have offended God: I have offended often, wilfully, atrociously, with many agerava- tions. On such and such a day I offended him in the foulest manner, and with deliberation. On other days I have run greedily in a course of vice. Nothing has restrained me from disobedience, and nothing has impelled me to the service of God. All that his Word says against me, I deserve; and every threat- ening which his Book utters, is justly due to me, and may well be fulfilled. Is there a possibility that I can escape from guilt ? Can so foul a sinner as I am be made clean? I know that the leopard cannot lose its spots, nor the Ethiopian change his skin by his own efforts. Is there a power divine which can take away my spots, and change my nature?” Sinner, there is. No sin which you have committed need shut you out of heaven. However damnable your iniquities may have been, there is for- giveness with God that he may be feared. You may have gone to the very verge of perdition, but the arm of God’s grace is long enough to reach you. You may sit to-day with your tongue padlocked with blasphemy, your hands fast bound by acts of atrocious violence, your heart fettered with corruption, your feet chained fast to the satanic blocks of unbelief, your whole selt socked up in the bondage of corruption; but there is one so mighty to save that he can set even you free. “ All manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men.” “The blood of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth us from all sin.”192 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. In the matter of guilt, then, there is the possibility of freedom. “ But can I be freed from the punishment of sin?” saith another. “ God is just: he must punish sin. It is not possible that the Judge of all the earth should allow such a rebel as I am to escape. Shall I go scot free? Shall I have the same reward with the perfectly righteous? After years of unbelief, am I still to be treated as though I had always been a willing and loving child? This is not just: I must be punished.’ Sinner, there is no need that thou shouldst be cast into hell; nay, thou shalt not be, if thy trust is placed in the blood-shedding upon Calvary. There is an imperative need that sin should be punished, but there is no need that it should be punished in your person. The stern laws of justice demand that sin should meet with satisfac- tion; but there is no law which demands that it should receive satisfaction from you; for if thou believest, Christ has given sat- isfaction for thee. If thou dost trust Jesus Christ to save thee, be assured that Christ was punished in thy stead, and suffered the whole of wrath divine, so that there is no fear of thy being east into hell. If thou believest, thou canst not be punished ; for there is no charge against thee, —thy sin having been laid on Christ; and there can be no punishment exacted from thee, for Christ has already discharged the whole. God’s justice cannot demand two executions for the same offence. Oh! let not the flames of hell alarm thee, sinner; let not Satan provoke thee to despair by thoughts of the worm that never dies, and of the fire that never can be quenched. ‘Thou needst not go thither; there is a possibility of deliverance for thee: and though thy. heart says, “ Never, never shall I escape,” trust not thy heart; ‘“ God Believe 99 is greater than thy heart, and knoweth all things. thou his testimony, and fly thou to the great Deliverer for liberty. Freedom, then, from punishment is possible through Christ. I think I hear one say, “ Ah! but if I were saved from past sin, and from all the punishment of it, yet still I should submit to the power of sin again. I have a wolf within my heart hun- gering after sin, which will not be satisfied though it be gluttedTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 193 with evil. The insatiable horse-leech of my lust ever crieth, 1° ° is 7. ° . ‘Give, give!’ Can I be delivered from it? I have been bound with many resolutions, but sin, like Samson, has snapped them as though they were but green withs. I have been shut up in many professions, as though I was now, once for ¢ ll, a prisoner to morality ; but I have taken up posts and bars, and every other restraint which kept me in, and I have gone back to my old uncleannesses. Can I can I be saved from all these propensi- ties, and all this inbred corruption ?” My dear friend, there is a hope for thee, that thou mayst be. If thou believest in the Lord Jesus Christ, that same blood by which sin is pardoned en- ables man to overcome sin. They in heaven washed their robes and made them white in his blood ; but they have another note in their song, — they overcame through the blood of the Lamb. Not only were they delivered from guilt, but from the power of sin. I do not tell you that in this life Christ himself will make you pertectly free from indwelling sin : there will always be some corruption left in you to strugele with, some Canaanite still in the land to exercise your faith and to teach you the value of a Saviour: but the neck of sin shall be under your foot; God shall lead captive the great Adonibezek of your lust, and you shall cut off his thumbs, so that he cannot handle weapons of war. if the enemy cannot be destroyed, at least his head shall be bro- ken, and he shall never have reigning power over thee; you shall be free from sin, to live no longer therein. Oh! tha blessed word “if!” —Hlow it sparkles! It may seem but a, lit- tle star: may it herald the dawning of the Sun of Righteous- ness within you! — “if the Son therefore shall make you free.” “Qh,” says one, “that is a great ‘if’ indeed. It cannot be, surely ! — my guilt pardened, my punishment remitted, and my nature 2» changed! How can it be?” Dear friend, it may be, and I trust it will be this morning; for this “if” comforts the preacher vith a hope of success in delivering the Word ; and may-it give some hope to the hearers, that perhaps you may be made free yourselves. But I think I hear another exclaim, “Sir, I am in bondage 1?194 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. through fear of death. Go where I may, enjoying no assurance of acceptance in Christ, I am afraid to die. I know that I must one of these days close these eyes in the slumbers of the grave 5 but oh! it is a dread thought to me that I must stand before my God and pass the solemn test. I cannot look into the sepulchre without feeling.that it is a cold, damp place ; I cannot think of eternity without remembering the terrors which cluster round it to a sinner, ‘ where their worm dieth not, and where their fire is not quenched.’ ” h, but, my dear friend, if the Son make you free, he will deliver you from the fear of death. When sin is pardoned, then the law is satisfied ; and when the law is satisfied, then death becomes a friend. The strength of sin is the law: the law is fulfilled, the strength of sin is broken. The sting of death is sin: sin is pardoned, death has a sting no longer. If thou believest in Christ thou shalt never die, in that sense in which thou dreadest death: thou shalt fall asleep, but thou shalt never die. That death of which thou thinkest is not the Chris- tian’s portion: it belongs to the ungodly. In it thou shalt have no share, if thou trustest the Saviour. Borne on angels’ wings to heaven, up from calamity, imperfection, temptation and trial shalt thou mount, flitting with the wings of a dove far above the clouds of sorrow; leaving this dusky globe behind thee, thou shalt enter into the splendors of immortality. Thou shalt not die, but wake out of this dying world into a life of glory. Come, soul, if thou trustest in Christ, this “if” shall be no if, but a certainty to-day — the Son shall make you free indeed. I do not think I can bring out the full value of this liberty by merely speaking of the evils which we are delivered from ; you know, brethren, freedo.n consists not only in a negative but in a positive, —we are not only free from, but we are free fo. We hear of persons receiving the freedom of a city. This im- plies that certain privileges are bestowed. Now “ if the Son therefore shall make you free, you shall be free indeed,” in the sense of privilege; you shall be free to call yourself God’s child ; you shall be free to say, “Abba, Father,” without rebuke ; you shall be free to claim the protection of that Father’s house, 93THE GREAT LIBERATOR. 195 and the provision of his bounty ; you shall be free to come to his knees with all your trials, and tell him all your griefs; you shall be free to plead his promises and to receive the fulfilment of them too; you shall be free to sit at his table, not as a ser- vant is permitted sometimes to sit down when the feast is over to eat the leavings, but you shall sit there as a well-beloved son to eat the fatted calf, while your Father with you eats, drinks, and is merry ; you shall be free to enter into the church on earth, the mother of us all; free to all her ordinances ; free to share in all those boons which Christ hath given to his spouse; and when you die, you shall be free to enter into the rest which re- maineth for the people of God ; free of the New J erusalem which is above; free to her harps of gold and to her streets of joys free to her great banquet which lasteth forever ; free to the heart of God, to the throne of Christ, and to the blessedness of eternity. Oh! how, how good it is to think that there is a pos- sibility of a freedom to such privileges as these, and a possibility of it to the vilest of the vile! for some who were grossly guilty, some who had far gone astray, have nevertheless enjoyed the fulness of the blessing of the gospel of peace. Look at Paul! No man enters more into the mystery of the gospel than he. He had freedom to do so: he could comprehend with all saints what are the heights and depths, and know the love of Christ which passeth knowledge ; and yet it is he — it is he who once foamed out threatenings, who sucked the blood of the saints ; it is he who dyed his hands up to the very elbows in murderous gore ; it is he who hated Christ, and was a persecutor, and injurious ; and yet is he free from evil, and he is free to all the privileges of the chosen of God. And why not you? And why not you? Woman, tottering and trembling, why should not —why should not the Son make thee free? Man, tossed about with many doubts, why should not the great Liberator appear to thee? Can there be a reason why not? Thou hast not read the rolls of predestination and discovered that thy name has been left out. It has not been revealed that for thee there is no atone- ment ; but it is revealed to thee that whosoever believeth on Him196 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. is not condemned. And this is the testimony which comes to thee —oh that thou wouldst receive it !—- “ He that believeth on the Lord Jesus Christ, hath everlasting life.” Oh that thou wouldst be bold and trust Christ this morning, and the “if” which is in our text shall become a blessed certainty to thee. So, then, there is a possibility for freedom. We will pause awhile, and then warn you against false freedom. Il. Beware or FALSE LigeRtTy. Every good thing is imi- tated by Satan, who is the master of counterfeits, and hence, lib- erty — a word fit to be used in heaven, and almost too good for fallen earth—has been used for the very basest of purposes, and men have misnamed the devil’s offspring by this angelic title. We have in spiritual matters things called liberty which are no liberty. There is Antinomian liberty — God deliver us from that! A man saith, “I am not under the law of God, therefore I will live as I like.” A most blessed truth followed by a most atrocious inference. The Christian is not under the law, but under grace — that is a very precious fact: it is much better to serve God because we love him, than because we are afraid of his wrath. To be under the law is to give God the service of a slave who fears the lash ; but to be under grace is to serve God out of pure love to him. Oh to be a child, and to give the obedience of a child, and not the homage of a serf! But the Antinomian saith, “I am not under the law, therefore will I live and fulfil my own lust and pleasures.” Paul says of those ‘who argue thus, their damnation is just. We have had the pain of knowing some who have said, “I am God’s elect; Christ shed his blood for me; I shall never perish; ” and then they have gone to the ale-house, they have sung the drunkard’s song, and have even used the drunkard’s oath. What is this, dear friends, but a strong delusion to believe a lie? They who can do this, must surely have been some time in Satan’s oven, to be baked so hard. Why, these must have had their consciences taken out of them. Are they not turned to something worse than brutes? The dog doth not say, “ My master feeds me, and heTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 197 wil not destroy me, but is fond of me, therefore will I snarl at him or rend him.” Even the ass doth not say, “ My master gives me fodder, therefore will I dash my heels into his face.” “The ox knoweth its owner, and the ass his master’s crib; ” but these men only know God to provoke him, and they profess that his love to them gives them a liberty to rebel against his will. God deliver you from any such freedom as this; be not legalists, but love the law of God, and in it make your delight. Abhor all idea of being saved by good works, but oh! be as full of good works as if you were to be saved by them. Walk in holiness as if your own walking would make you enter into heaven, and then rest on Christ, knowing that nothing of your own can ever open the gate of the Celestial City. LEschew and abhor any- thing like Antinomianism. Do not be afraid of high doctrine. Men sometimes mis-label good sound Calvinism as Antinomian- ism. Do not be afraid of that; do not be alarmed at the ugly word Antinomianism, if it does not exist: but the thing itself —- flee from it as from a serpent. Shake off the venomous beast into the fire, as Paul did the viper which he found amongst the fagots. When you are gathering up the doctrines of grace to cheer and comfort you, this deadly viper getteth into the midst ; and when the fire begins to burn, he cometh out of the heat and fasteneth upon you. Shake him off into the fire of divine love, and there let the monster be consumed. My brethren, if we are loved of God with an everlasting love, and are no more under the law, but free from its curse, let us serve God with all our heart’s gratitude to him: let us say, “I am thy servant; I am thy servant, and the son of thine handmaid: thou hast loosed my bonds.” Let the loosing of our bonds be an argument for service. Then, again, beloved, there is another kind of freedom of which we must all be aware, — it is a notional, professional freedom. “Free! yes, certainly we are; we are the peop_2 of God,” say some. Not that they have ever passed from death unto life ; not that vital godliness is-a matter they understand. No. “We always went to church, or chapel; we have never stopped away 17*198 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. in our lives; we are the most regular of religious people, and we were baptized, and we go to the sacrament, and what is there that we do not do? Who convinceth us of any sin? If we are not free of the Celestial City, who can be? Surely — surely we enjoy much of the things of God; we sit in God’s house, and we feel a pleasure when we listen to the truth. Sacred song bears us on high as well as other men. We sit as God’s people sit, and we hear as God’s people hear: surely we are free!” Ah! but, dear friends, a man may think himself free, and be a slave still. You know there are many in this world who dream them- selves to be what they are not; and you have a faculty of dream- ing in the same’ manner. Christ must have come to you and shown you your slavery, and broken your heart on account of it, or else you are not free ; and you must have looked to the wounds of Jesus as the only gates of your escape, and have seen in his hand the only power which could snap your fetters, or else, ‘though you have professed\and re-professed, you are as much slaves of Satan as though you were in the pit itself. Beware, I pray you, of hereditary religion. A man cannot hand down his godliness as he doth his goods; and I cannot receive grace as I may receive lands, or gold, or silver. “ Ye must be born again.” There must be the going up out of Egypt, the leaving the flesh- pots and the brick-kilns, and advancing through the Red Sea of atonement into the wilderness, and afterwards into the promised rest. Have ye passed from death unto life? If not, beware of having a mere notional, professional liberty. There are many, too, who have the liberty of natural self- righteousness and of the power of the flesh. ‘They have fanciful, unfounded hopes of heaven. They have never wronged anybody ; they have never done any mischief in the world; they are ami- able; they are generous to the poor; they are this, they are that, they are the other; therefore they feel themselves to be free. They never feel their own inability ; they can always pray alike and always sing alike; they have no changes; they are not emptied from vessel to vessel; their confidence never wavers ; they believe themselves all right, and abide in theirTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. oo > 199 ae Ne confidence. They do not stop to examine : their delusion is too Strong and their comfort is much too precious for them to wish to mar it by looking to its foundation 3 80 they go on, on, on, sound asleep, till one of these days, falling over the awful preci- pice of ruin, they will wake up where waking will be too late. We know there are some such ; they are in God’s house, but they are not God’s sons. You remember the case of Ishmael ; it is to that which our Lord seems to allude here. Ishmael was a son of Abraham according to the flesh, but he never was free. His mother being a bondwoman, he was a slave. He might call himself Abraham’s son if he would, but being only after the flesh he was still a slave, for it was not in the power of Abraham, in the power of the flesh, to beget anything but bondage; and Ish- mael at his best was still the son of the bondwoman. Yet you see he sits at table, — he eats and drinks just as merrily as the child of the promise. Nay, in some things he is stronger than Isaac ; he has the advantage of age, and I dare say plumes himself on being heir. “Ah!” saith he, “I am the elder one of the family.” At last he mocked Isaac. When the boys were at their sports he was violent towards his younger brother, even as many Phari- sees are very cruel to true believers. What came of it? Why, “the servant abideth not in the house forever, but the son abideth ever ;” and so the day came in which Sarah said, “ Cast out the bondwoman and her son,” and away went Ishmael. He might cling to his father, and say, “I am thy son.” “You must go, sir; you are a slave; you were born after the flesh, and there- fore you take from your mother your state and condition, and not from your father. Your mother was a bondslave, and so are you, and you must go. The privileges of the children’s house are not for you; you must go into the wilderness ; you cannot abide here.” But Isaac, though feeble and tempted, and tired and vexed, is never sent out of his father’s house — never ; he abideth ever. This is the position of many. ‘They are very good people in their way. They do their best; but what is their best? It is the offspring of the flesh; and that which is born of the flesh is flesh ; consequently their best endeavors only make200 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. them slaves in the house, not sons; only he.who is born by faith according to the promise is the free Isaac, and abides in the house. The day will come when God will say to every member of the Christian church, and all who profess religion, “ Are ye children by faith in the promise, or not?” For if ye are only children according to the flesh, he will send you back again into the wilderness ; to eternal ruin you must go, except the Spirit of God hath given you the spirit of freedom. There was a custom observed among the Greeks and Romans, that when a man died, if he left slaves, they went as a heritage to the elder son; and if the elder son said, ‘‘ Some of these are my own brethren, though they be slaves; I therefore pronounce them free,” they would be free. Emancipation was not always allowed in either Greek or Roman states, a man might not always set a slave free without giving a good reason; but it was always held to bea valid reason if the son, coming into a heritage of slaves, chose to set them free. No question was asked, if the son made them free; the law did not step in. So, dear friends, if the Son shall make ws free, we shall be free indeed. If Jesus Christ, the great heir according to the promise, the great Mediator whom God hath created heir of all things, by whom also he made the worlds —if he shall say to us who are as Ishmael, “I make you free,” then are we free indeed, and neither law, justice, heaven or hell, can bring any argument against us why we should not be free. But do beware of all imaginary freedoms, and shun them as you would poison, and God give you to enjoy the glorious liberty of the children of God. JWI. True FREEDOM COMES TO US THROUGH HIM WHO IS, IN THE HIGHEST SENSE, “THE Son.” No man getteth free except as he cometh to Christ and taketh him to be his all in all. Thou mayst rivet on thy fetters by going to the law, to thine own good works, to thy willings and thy prayings and thy doings, but thou wilt never be free until thou comest to Christ. Mark thee, man! if thou wilt come to Christ thou shalt be free this moment from every sort of bondage; but if thou wilt goTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 201 hither and thither, and try this and that and the other, thou shalt find all thy tryings end in disappointment, and thou shalt le down in sorrow and in shame; for none but Jesus — none but Jesus can make us free indeed. Real liberty cometh from him only. Let us think awhile of this real liberty. Remember it is a liberty righteously bestowed. Christ has a right to make men free. If I should seta slave free who belonged to his master, he might run for a time ; but since I had not the power to give him a legal emancipation, he would be dragged back again. But the Son, who is heir of all things, has a right to make him free whom he wills to make free. The law is on Christ’s side. Christ hath such power in heaven and earth committed to him, that if he saith to the sinner, “Thou art free,’ free he is before high heaven. Before God’s great bar thou canst plead the word of Jesus, and thou shalt be delivered. Bethink thee, too, how dearly this freedom was purchased. Christ speaks it by his power, but he still bought it by his blood. He makes thee free, sinner, but it is by his own bonds. Thou goest clear, because he bare thy burden for thee. See him bear his agony — “crushed beneath the millstone of the law, till all his head, his hair, his garments bloody be.” See him yonder, dragged to Pilate’s hall, bound, whipped like a common felon, scourged like a murderer, and dragged away by hell-hounds through the streets, fastened by those cruel fetters which went through his flesh to the accursed wood! See him yield- ing up his liberty to the dungeon of death! There the Mighty One sleeps in Joseph of Arimathea’s tomb. Dearly did he purchase with his own bondage the liberty which he so freely gives. But, though dearly purchased, let us take up that key- note — he freely gives it. Jesus asks nothing of us as a prep- aration for this liberty. He finds us sitting in sackcloth and ashes, and bids us put on the beautiful array of freedom; he discovers us in a darkness which may be felt, sitting in the valley of the shadow of death, and he brings the true light in his hand, and turns our midnight into blazing noon, — and all without our help, without our merit, and at first without our will. ChristTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. saveth sinners just as they are. Christ died not for the righteous, but for the ungodly ; and his message is grace, pure grace, undi- luted by a single condition or requisition which God might make of man. Just as you are, trust your soul with Christ, and though there be in thee no speck of aught that is good, he will save thee, and give thee perfect liberty. Dearly hath he bought it, but freely doth he give it, even the faith by which we receive is the gift of God. It is a liberty which may be instantaneously received. The captive goes first through one door and then another, and per- haps a hundred keys must grate in the wards of the lock before he feels the cool fresh air gladdening his brow. But it is not so with the man who believeth. The moment thou believest, thou art free. Thou mayst have been chained at a thousand points, but the instant thou believest in’Christ thou art unfettered and free as the bird of the air. Not more free is the eagle which mounts to his rocky eyrie, and afterwards outsoars the clouds — even he, the bird of God, is not more unfettered than the soul which Christ hath delivered. Cut are the cords, and in an instant you are clear of all, and upward you mount to God. You may have come in here aslave, and you may go out free. God’s grace can in a moment give you the condition of freedom and the nature of it. He can make you say, “ Abba, Father,” with your whole heart, though up to this day you may have been of your father the devil, and his works you have done. In an instant is it wrought. We are told in tropical lands that the sun seems to leap up from under the horizon, and the dead of night is suddenly turned into the lustre of day : so on a sudden doth God’s grace often dawn upon the darkness of sinful hearts. You have seen, mayhap, at times, after showers of rain have fallen upon the earth, how land which seemed all dry and barren was suddenly covered with green grass, with here and there a lily full in bloom; and so a heart which has been like a desert, when once the shower of Jesus’ grace falls on it, blossoms like the garden of the Lord, and yieldeth sweet perfume; and that ina moment. You who have given yourselves up in despair ;THE GREAT LIBERATOR. 203 rou who have written your own condemnatio: ; you who have made a league with death and a covenant with hell, and said, © There is no hope, therefore will we go after our iniquities,” —— I charge you hear me when I declare that my Lord and Master, who has broken my chains and set me free, can break yours too, and that with one blow. Mark, that if this be done, it is done forever. When Christ sets free, no chains can bind again. Let the Master say to me, “Captive, I have delivered thee,” and it is done. Come on — come on ye fiends of the pit! Mightier is he who is for us than all they who be against us. Come on — come on temptations of the world ; but if the Lord be on our side, whom shall we fear ? If he be our defence, who shall be our destruction ? Come on — come on ye foul corruptions! Come on ye machinations and temptations of my own deceitful heart! But he who hath begun the good work in me will carry it on, and perfect it to the end. Gather ye, gather ye — gather ye all your hosts together, ye who are the foes of God and the enemies of man, and come at once with concentrated fury and with hellish might against my spirit ; but if God acquitteth who is he that condemneth? Who shall separate us from the love of God which~is in Christ Jesus our Lord? Yon black stream of death shall never wash out the mark of Christian liberty. That skeleton monarch bears no yoke which he can put upon a believer’s neck. We will shout victory when we are breast-deep amidst the last billows, and grapple with the king upon the pale horse: we will throw the rider and win the victory in the last struggle, according as it is written, “Thanks be unto God which giveth us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ.” Sparta and Greece refused to wear the yoke of Persia, and broke the proud king’s pomp ; but we are free in a nobler sense. We refuse the yoke of Satan, and will overcome his power as Christ overcame it in the days gone by. Let those who will bend and crouch at the foot of the world’s monarch; but as for those whom God has made free, they claim to think, to believe, to act, and to be as their divine instinct commands them, and the Spirit of God enables them —204 THE GREAT LIBERATOR. “ Where the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty.” “If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed.” ie IV. And now we put round the Qursrion, Are we free, then, this morning? Are we free? I will not answer it for you, nor need I just now answer for myself; but I would beseech you to make a searching inquiry into it. If you are free, then remem- ber that you have changed your lodging-place ; for the slave and the son sleep not in the same room of the house. The things which satisfied you when a slave will not satisfy you now. You wear a garment which a slave may never wear, and you feel an instinct within which the slave can never feel. There is an Abba, Father, cry in you, which was not there once. Is it so? Is itso? If you are free, you live not as you used todo. You go not to the slave’s work; you have not now to toil and sweat to earn the wages of sin, which is death ; but now as a son serveth his father, you do a son’s work, and you expect to receive a son’s reward ; for the gift of God is eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord. One thing I know: if you are free, then you are think- ang about setting others free; and if thou hast no zeal for the emancipation of other men, thou art a slave thyself. If thou art free, thou hatest ali sorts of chains, all sorts of sin, and thou wilt never willingly put on the fetters any more. Thou livest each day, crying unto Him who made thee free at first, to hold thee up that thou fall not into the snare. If thou be free, this is not the world for thee: this is the land of slaves; this is the world of bondage. If thou be free, thy heart has gone to heaven, the land of the free. If thou be free to-day, thy spirit is longing for the time when thou shalt see the great Liberator face to face. If thou be free, thou wilt bide thy time until he call thee; but when he saith, “ Friend, come up hither,” thou wilt fearlessly mount to the upper spheres, and death and sin shall be no A : hinderance to thine advent to his glory. I would we were all free; but if we be not, the next best thing I would is, that those of us who are not free would fiet under the fetter: for when the fetters are felt, they shall beTHE GREAT LIBERATOR. 205 broken ; when the iron enters into the soul, it shall be snapped ; when you long for liberty, you chall have it; when you seek for it as for hid treasure, and pant for it as the stag for the water- brook, God will not deny you. “ Seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened; ask, and it shall be given you.” God lead you to seek, and knock, and ask now, for Christ’s sake. Amen. 18SERMON XI. THE SINNER’S FRIEND. © x FRIEND OF PUBLIOANS AND SINNERS.”— Matthew xi. 19. Man¢ # true word is spoken in jest, and many a tribute to virtue has been unwittingly paid by the sinister lips of malice. The enemies of our Lord Jesus Christ thought to brand him with infamy, hold him up to derision, and hand his name down to everlasting scorn, as “a friend of publicans and sinners.” Short-sighted mortals! Their scandal published his reputation. To this day the Saviour is adored by the title which was minted as aslur. It was designed to be a stigma, that every good man would shudder at and shrink from; it has proved to be a fasci- nation which wins the heart and enchants the soul of all the godly. Saints in heaven and saints on earth delight to sing of him thus : ‘Saviour of sinners they proclaim, Sinirexs of whom the chief I am.” What the invidious Jews said in bitter spleen, has been turned by the Holy Spirit to the most gracious account. Where they poured out vials of hate, odors of sacred incense arise. Troubled consciences have found a sweet balm in the very sound. Jesus, “ the friend of publicans and sinners,” has proved himself friendly to them, and they have become friends with him, — so completely has he justified the very name which his enemies gave him in ribald affront. We shall take this title of Jesus to-night as an order of dissTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. - 20% tinction which sets forth his excellency, and as God helps us, we shall try to exalt his name and proclaim his fame, while we attempt to explain how he was the friend of sinners; and how he shows that he ts still the same. I. Our Lord PRovED HIMSELF IN HIS OWN TIME TO BE THE FRIEND OF SINNERS. What better proof could he give of it than coming from the majesty of his Father’s house to the meanness of Bethlehem’s manger? What better proof could he give than leaving the society of cherubim and seraphim, to lie in the manger where the horned oxen fed, and to become the associate of fallen men ? The incarnation of the Saviour in the very form of sinners, tak- ing upon himself the flesh of sinners, being born of a sinner, having a sinner for his reputed father, — his very being a man, which is tantamount to being in the same form with sinners, — surely this were enough to prove that he is the sinner’s friend. When you take up the roll of his earthly lineage and begin to read it through, you will be struck with the fact that there are but few women mentioned in it; and yet three out of those mentioned were harlots, — so that even in his lineage there was the taint of sin, and a sinner’s blood would have run in his veins if he had been the true sen of Joseph; but inasmuch as he was begotten by the Holy Ghost, who overshadowed the Virgin, in him was no sin: yet his reputed pedigree ran through the veins of sinners. ‘Tamar, and Rahab, and Bathsheba, are three names which bring to remembrance deeds of shame, and yet these stand in the records as the ancestors of the Son of Mary, the sinner’s friend ! As soon as Jesus Christ, being born in the likeness of sinful fiesh, has come to years of maturity, and has commenced his real lite-work, he at once discloses his friendship for sinners by asso- ciating with them. You do not find him standing at a distance, issuing his mandates and his orders to sinners to make them- selves better; but you find him coming among them like a good workman who stands over his work. He takes his place where208 THE SINNER’S FRIEND. the sin and the iniquity are, and he personally comes to deal with it. He does not write out a prescription, and send by an- other hand his medicines with which to heal the sickness of sin ; but he comes right into the lazar-house, touches the wounded, looks at the sick : and there~is healing in the touch; there is life in the look. The great Physician took upon himself our sicknesses and bare our infirmities, and so proved himself to be really the sinner’s friend. Some people appear to like to have a philanthropic love towards the fallen, but yet they would not touch them with a pair of tongs. They would lift them up if they could, but it must be by some machinery — some sort of contrivance by which they would not degrade themselves or contaminate their own hands. Not so the Saviour. Up to the very elbow he seems to thrust that gracious arm of his into the mire, to pull up the lost one out of the horrible pit and out of the miry clay. He takes himself the mattock and the spade, and goes to work in the great quarry that he may get out the rough stones, which afterwards he will himself polish with his own bitter tears and bloody sweat, that he may make them fit to shine forever in the glorious temple of the Lord his God. He comes himself into direct, personal contact with sin, without being contaminated with it. He comes as close to it as-a man can come. He eats and drinks with sinners. He sits at the Pharisee’s table one day, and does not rise because there is a crowd of people no better than they should be coming near him. Another day he goes to the publican’s house, and the publican had, no doubt, been a great extortioner in his time; but Jesus sits there, and that day does salvation come to that publican’s house. Beloved, this is a sweet trait about Christ, and proves how real and how true was his love, that he made his associa- tions with sinners, and did not shun even the chief of them. Nay, he not only came among them, but he was always seek- ing their good by his ministry. If there was anywhere a sinner, a lost sheep of the house of Israel, Christ was after that sinner. Never such an indefatigable shepherd; he sought that which was lost tiil he found it. One of his earliest works of mercy weTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. 209 will tell you of in brief. He was once ona journey, and Samaria was a little out of his way 3 but there lived in a city of that country a woman — ah! the less said of her the better. She had had five husbands, and he whom she then had was not her husband, nor were any of the others, either. She was a disgrace to that city of Samaria. But Jesus, who has a keen eye for sin- ners, and a heart which beats high for them, means to save that woman, and he must and he will have her. Being weary, he sits down on a well to rest. A special providence brings the woman to the well. The conventionalists of society forbid him to talk with her. But he breaks through the narrow bigotry of caste. A Samaritan by birth, he cares not for that; but will that most holy being condescend to have familiar ponniccadion with her — a dishonor to her sex? He will. His disciples may marvel when they come back and find him talking with her, but he will do it. He begins to open up the Word of life to her understand- ing, and that woman becomes the first Christian missionary we ever hear of, for she ran back to the city, leaving her water-pot, and crying, “ Come, see a man which told me all things that ever I did: is not this the Christ?” And they came and believed ; and there was great joy in that city of Samaria. You know, too, that there was another sinner. He was a bad fellow —I fear him. He had been constantly grinding the faces of the poor, and getting more out of them by way of taxation than he should have done; but the little man had the bump of curiosity, and he must needs see the preacher, and the preacher must needs love him; for I say there was a wonderful attraction in Jesus toa sinner. That sinner’s heart was like a piece of iron: Christ’s heart was like a loadstone ; and wherever there was a sinner the loadstone began to feel it, and soon the sinner began to feel the loadstone too. “ Zaccheus,” said Christ, “make haste, and come down ; for to-day I must abide at thy house; ” and down comes the sinner, and salvation has come to his house at that hour. Oh! Christ never seemed to preach so sweetly as when he was preaching a sinner’s sermon. I would have loved to have seen that dear face of his when he cried, “Come unto 18*210 THE SINNER’S FRIEND. me all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest ;” or, better still, to have seen his eyes running with whole showers of tears when he said, “O Jerusalem, Jerusalem .... how often would I have gathered thy children together, as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not!” or even to have heard him preach those three great sermons upon sinners, when he described the woman as sweeping the house and taking away the dust that she might find the lost piece of her money ; and the shepherd going from hill to hillafter the wandering sheep ; and the father running to meet that rag-clad prodigal, — kissing him with the kisses of love, clothing him with the best robe, and inviting him into the feast, while they did dance and make merry because the lost was found, and he who.was dead was alive again. Why, he was the mightiest of preachers for sinners, beyond a doubt. Oh, how he loved them! Never mind the Pharisees; he has thunderbolts for them. “ Woe unto you, Scribes and Pharisees!” But when publicans and harlots come, he always has the gate of mercy ajar for them. For them he always has some tender word, some loving saying, such as this: “Him that cometh unto me, I will in no wise cast out.” “ All manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men ;” or such-like words of tender wooing. The very chief of sinners was thus drawn into the circle of his disciples. And you know, dear friends, he did not prove his love merely by preaching to them, and living with them, and by his patience In enduring their contradiction against himself, and all their evil words and deeds; but he proved it by his prayers too. He used his mighty influence with the Father in their behalf He took their polluted names on his holy lips; he was not ashamed to call them brethren. Their cause became his own, and in their interest his pulse throbbed. How many times on the cold moun- tains he kept his heart warm with love to them! How often the sweat rolled down his face when he was in an agony of spirit for them I cannot tell you. This much I do know, that on that self- same night, when he sweat as it were great drops of blood falling down to the ground, he prayed this prayer, — after havingTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. 211 prayed for his saints, he went on to say: “ Neither pray I for these alone, but for them also which shall believe on me through their word.” Here, truly, the heart of the Saviour was bubbling up and welling over towards sinners. And you never can for- get that almost his last words were, “ Father, forgive them ; for they know not what they do.” ‘Though wilfully and wickedly they pierced his hands and his feet, yet were there no angry words, but only that short, loving, hearty prayer: “Father, forgive them; for they know not what they do.” Ah, friends! if there ever was a man who was a friend to others, Jesus was a friend to sinners his whole life through. This, however, is but little. As for the river of the Saviour’s love to sinners, I have only brought you to its banks. You have but stood on the bank and dipped your feet in the flood; but now prepare to swim. So fond was he of sinners, that he made his grave with the wicked. He was numbered with the trans- gressors. God’s fiery sword was drawn to smite a world of sin- ners down to hell. It must fall on those sinners. But Christ loves them. His prayers stay the arm of God a little while, but still the sword must fall indue time. What is to be done? By what means can they be rescued? Swifter than the lightning’s fiash, I see that sword descending. But what is that in vision I behold? It falls —but where? Not on the neck of sinners. It is not their neck which is broken by its cruel edge ; it is not their heart which bleeds beneath its awful force. No; the “friend of sinners ” has put himself into the sinner’s place! and then, as if he had been the sinner, though in him was no sin, he suffers, bleeds, and dies ; — no common suffering, no ordinary bleeding, no death such as mortals know. It was a death in which the second death was comprehended, — a bleeding in which the very veins of God were emptied. The God-man divinely suffered. I know not how else to express the suffering. It was a more than mortal agony ; for the divine strengthened the human, and the man was made vast and mighty to endure through his being a God. Being God and man, he endured more than ten thou- sand millions of men all put together could have suffered. He912 THE SINNER’S FRIEND. endured, indeed, the hells of all for whom he died, —the tor- ments, or the equivalent for the torments, which all of them ought to have suffered, — the eternal wrath of God condensed and put into a cup too bitter for mortal tongue to know, and then drained to its utmost dregs by the loving lips of Jesus. Beloved, this was love. “Herein is love, that while we were yet sinners, in due time Christ died for the ungodly.” “Greater love hath no man than this, that he lay down his life for his friends.” This Christ has done, and he is, therefore, demonstrated to be the friend of sinners. But the trial is over; the strugele is past; the Saviour is dead and buried. He rises again, and after he has spent forty days on earth — in that forty days proving still his love for sin- ners — he rose again for their justification. I see him ene up on high. Angels attend him as the clouds receive him “They bring his chariot from on high, To bear him to his throne; Clap their triumphant wings, and cry, ‘The glorious work is done!’ ” What pomp! What a procession! What splendor! He will forget his poor friends the sinners now, will he not? Not he! I think I hear the song, “ Litt up your heads,O ye gates; and be ye ’ oO lif He up, ye everlasting doors, that the King of Glory may come Ps ¥ y in.” ‘The bars of massy light are all unloosed ; the pearly gates are all wide open flung ; oa? and as he passes through, mark you, the highest joy which swells his soul is that he has opened those gates, not for himself, —for they were never shut on him, — but that he has opened them for sinners. It was for this, indeed, he died ; and it is for this that he ascends on high, that he may “open the > kingdom of heaven for all believers.” See him as he rides eon heaven’s streets! “Thou hast ascended up on high 5 thou hast led captivity captive ; thou hast received gifts of man.’ Ah! but hear the refrain, — for this is the sweetest note of all the hymn, — “ Yea, for the rebellious also — yea, for the rebellious also, that the Lord God might dwell among them.” The scat=THE SINNER’S FRIEND. 243 tered gifts of his coronation, the lavish bounties of his ascension, are still for sinners. He is exalted on high — for what? To give repentance and remission of sins. He still wears upon his breastplate the names of sinners; upon his hands and upon his heart does he still bear the remembrance of those sinners; and every day for the sinner’s sake he doth not hold- his peace, and for the sinner’s sake he doth not rest, but cries unto God until every sinner shall be brought safely home. Every sinner who believeth, every sinner who was given to him, every sinner whom he bought with blood he will not rest, I say, till all such are gathered to be the jewels of his crown, wor!d without end. Methinks we cannot say more; and I think you will say we could not have said less concerning the way in which the Saviour proved himself to be the sinner’s friend. If there are any of you who dare to doubt him after this, I know not what further to advance. If there can be one who has proved himself your friend, surely Jesus did it; and he is willing to receive you now. Vhat he has done he still continues to do. Oh that you might have grace to perceive that Jesus is the lover of your soul !— that you might find the blessedness which all these tokens of friendship of which we have been speaking have brought for believing sinners ! II. While we change the subject a little, we shall still keep to the text, and notice WHAT CHRIST IS DOING NOW FOR SIN- NERS. There is a deep principle involved here, Pharisee of old could not understand, a principle the and the cold heart of humanity is slow to embrace it to-day. I have two explanations to offer of the way in which Jesus personally discovers himself to be the friend of sinners, and I will just mention these before I come to the application of the subject Lintend. Once upon a time a woman was brought to Jesus by the Scribes and Phari- sees: she was an adulteress ; she had been taken in the very act. They tell “the sinner’s friend” what sentence Moses would214 THE SINNER’S FRIEND, pronounce in such a case, and they ask him, How sayest thou ? This they said tempting him. They were not much concerned about the unhappy creature; the accusation they were intent to lay was against the man of Nazareth. You know how he dis- posed of the case, and put her accusers out of countenance. He did not bring the sinner up before the magistrate ; nay, he would not act the judge’s part, and pronounce sentence; rather would he act the neighbor’s part: he acquitted himself as a friend. There is a proverb among a certain class of hard-dealing trades- men, “ We know no friendship in business; ” and full well they carry it out, while they grind the faces of the poor without pity, and strive to overreach one another without fairness. And there was, in like manner, no friendship, no mercy whatever, among those gentlemen of the long robe. Righteousness, to their idea, stood in exacting justice with rigid severity ; and as for wickedness, it was only shameful when it was found out. She who was taken in the act must be stoned. They who had done it secretly must prosecute. The real friendship of Jesus appears in his singling of pity ; and where they accused him of winking at crime, and harboring the criminal, he was truly lay- ing the axe at the root of the tree, and sheltering the victims, while he upbraided the arrogant rulers, whose secret vices were the genuine cause of the wretchedness which had fallen upon the dregs of the nation. I commend this thought to your con- sideration. When it is said of him, he is a “friend of publicans and sinners,” it Was implied that he was not a friend of Scribes and Pharisees. Yet again, I want you to notice that the office which Christ came to fulfil towards sinners was that of pure, unmingled friendship. Let us give you an illustration. There is an awful story abroad: a murder has been committed ; and the poor wretch who committed it has cut his own throat. The policeman and the surgeon are quickly on the spot. .The one comes there in the ‘nterest of law, the other attends in the inter- est of humanity. Says the officer of police: “ Man, you are my prisoner ;” says the doctor: “My dear fellow, you are my patient.” And now he lays a delicate hand upon the wound ; heTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. 215 stanches the blood, applies soft liniments, binds it up with plas- ters, and, bending down his ear, listens to the man’s breathing ; taking hold of his hand, he feels his pulse: gently raising his head, he administers to him some wine or stimulant ; takes him to the hospital, gives the nurse instructions to watch him, and orders that he shall be given nutritious diet as he is able to bear it. Day after day he still visits him, and uses all his skill and all his diligence to heal the man’s wounds. Is that the way to deal with criminals? Certainly it is not the manner in which the police deal. Their business is to find out all the traces and evidences of his guilt. But the medical attendant is not con- cerned with the man as an evil-doer, but as a sufferer. So is it with the sinner. Moses is the officer of justice who comes to arrest him. Christ is the good Physician who comes to heal him. He says, “ O Israel, thou hast destroyed thyself ; but in me is thy help.” He deals with the disease, with the wounds, with the sufferings of sinners. He is therefore their friend. Of course the parallel will only go a little way. In the instance of the murderer, the surgeon would hand his patient over to the officers as soon as the wound was recovered ; but in the conduct of our Saviour, he redeems the soul from under the law, and delivers it from the penalty of sin, as well as restores it from the self- inflicted injuries. But oh! if I could but show thee that Christ treats the sinner with pity rather than with indignation; that the Son of man is not come to destroy men’s lives, but to save them ; that his visit to our world was mediaturial — not to con- demn the world, but to give his life a ransom for many ; surely then thou wouldst see reason enough why the sinner should look to him as a friend indeed. Ah! then I would go further. I would entreat thee to make the case thine own. Thou art a sinner; can I not convince thee that he is thy friend ? You were sick the other day. The physician looked very grave, and whispered something to your wife. She did not tell you what it was; but your own life trembled in the scale, and it is a wonder you are here to-night. Shall I tell you why you216 THE SINNER’S FRIEND. are here? Do you see that tree yonder? It has been standing in its place for many years, but it has never yielded any fruit, and several times the master of the garden has said, “ Cut it down.” The other day the woodman came with his axe: he felt its edge; it was sharp and keen enough, and he began to cut, and the chips were flying, and he made a deep gash. But the gardener came by, one who had watched over the tree, and had hope of it even yet, —and he said, “Spare it — spare it yet a little longer; the wound thou hast made may heal; and I will dig about it, and dung it, and if it bring forth fruit, well. Spare it another year, and if not, then cut it down.” That tree is your- self. The woodman is Death. That chipping at the trunk of the tree was your sickness. Jesus is he who spared you. You had not been here to-night — you had been there in hell among damned spirits, howling in unutterable woe — if it had not been that the friend of sinners had spared your life. And where are you to-night? Perhaps, my hearers, you are in an unusual place for you. Your Sunday evenings are not often spent in the house of God. There are other places whicl know you, but your seat there is empty to-night. There has been much persuasion to bring you here, and it may be that you have come against your will; but some friend has asked you to conduct him to the spot, and here you are. Do you know why you are here? It is a friendly providence, managed by the sinner’s friend, which has brought you here, that you may hear the sound of mercy, and have a loving invitation tendered to you. Be grateful to the Saviour that he has brought you to the gospel-pool. May you—oh, may you this night be made to step in and be washed from sin! But it is kind of him, and proves how true a friend he is of sinners, that he has brought you here. I will leave you now where you are, and I will tell you how he has dealt with other sinners ; for mayhap this may lead you to ask him to deal the same with you. I know a sinner — while I live I must know him. Full well do I remember him when he was hard of heart and an enemy to God by a multitude of wicked works. But this friend ofTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. sinners loved him; and passing by one day, he looked right into his soul with such a look that his hard heart began to break. There were deep throes, as though a birth of a divine sort were coming on. ‘There was an agony, and there was a grief unut- terable ; and that poor soul did not think it kind of Jesus: but indeed it was kindness too intense ever fully to estimate ; for there is no saving a soul except by making it feel its need of being saved. There must be in the work of grace an emptying and a pulling down before there can be a filling and a building up. ‘That soul knew no peace for many a year, and the sole of its foot had no rest. But one day — “J heard the voice of Jesus say, Come unto me and rest; Lay down, thou weary one — lay down Thy head upon my breast. I carne to Jesus as I was, Weary, and worn, and sad; I found in him a resting-place, And he has made me glad! “‘T heard the voice of Jesus say, Behold, I freely give The living water — thirsty one, Stoop down and drink, and live! I came to Jesus, and I drank Of that life-giving stream; My thirst was quenched, my soul revived, And now [ live in him. *¢‘¥ heard the voice of Jesus say, I am this dark world’s light; Look unto me—thy morn shall rise, And all thy days be bright! I looked to Jesus, and I found In him my star, my sun; And in that light of light Pl walk, Till travelling days are done.” Ay, said I, Christ is the friend of sinners. So say I, and so will I say while this poor lisping, stammering tongue can articu- late a sound. And methinks God had a design of abundant 19218 ‘HE SINNER’S FRIEND. merey when he saved my soul. I had not then believed it, though a mother’s loving accents might have whispered it in my ears. But he seems to remind me of it over and over again, till love and terror mingle in my breast, saying, “ Woe is me if I preach not the gospel.” O my blessed Master! thou dost trust my lips when thou dost bear witness to my heart. Thou givest charge to my tongue when thou constrained my soul. “Am I a chosen vessel?” It is to bear his name to sinners. As a full bottle seeks vent, so must my testimony pant for utterance. O sinner! if thou trustest Him, he will be such a friend to thee! and if thou hast now a broken heart and a contrite spirit, these are his work ; and it is a proof of his great love to thee if he has made thee to hunger and thirst after him. Let me impress upon you that Jesus is the friend of the friendless. She who had spent all her money on physicians without getting relief, obtained a cure gratis when she came to him. He who hath “nothing to pay ” gets all his debts cancelled by this friend. And he who was ready to perish with hunger, finds not only a passing meal, but a constant supply at his hands. We know of a place in England, still existing, where there is a dole of bread served to every passer-by who chooses to ask for it. Whoever he may be, he has but-to knock at the door of St. Cross Hospital, and there is the dole of bread for him, Jesus Christ so loveth sinners that he has built a St. Cross Hospital, so that, whenever a sinner is hungry, he has but to knock and have his wants supplied. Nay, he has done better ; he has at- tached to this hospital of the cross a bath; and whenever a soul is black and filthy, it has but to go there and be washed. The fountain is always full, always efficacious. There is no sinner who ever went into it and found it, could not wash away his stains. Sins which were scarlet and crimson have all disap- peared, and the sinner has been whiter than snow. As if this were not enough, there is attached t6 this hospital of the cross a wardrobe ; and a sinner, making application simply as a sinner, with nothing in his hand, but being just empty and naked, he may come and be clothed from head to foot. And if he wishesTHE SINNER’S FRIEND. 219 to be a soldier, he may not merely have. an under-garment, but he may have armor which shall cover him from the sole of his foot to the crown of his head. Nay, if he wants a sword he shall have that given to him, and a shield too. There is noth- ing that his heart can desire, that is good for him, which he shall not receive. He shall have spending-money so long as he lives, and he shall have an eternal heritage of glorious treasure when he enters into the joy of his Lord. Beloved, I cannot tell you all that Christ has done for sinners ; but this I know, that if he meets with you to-night, and becomes your friend, he will stand by you to the last. He will go home with you to-night. No matter how many pairs of stairs you have to go up, Jesus will go with you. No matter if there be no chair to sit down on, he will not disdain you. You shall be hard at work to-morrow, but as you wipe the sweat from your brow he shall stand by you. You will, perhaps, be despised for his sake ; but he will not forsake you. You will, perhaps, have days of sickness; but he will come and make your bed in your sickness for you. You will, perhaps, be poor ; but your bread shall be given you, and your water shall be sure; for he will provide for you. You will vex him much and grieve his Spirit. You will often doubt him — you will go after other lovers. You will provoke him to jealousy, but he will never cease to love you. You will, perhaps, grow cold to him, and even forget his dear name for a time; but he will never forget you. You may, perhaps, dishonor his cross, and damage his fair fame among the sons of men; but he will never cease to love you: nay, he will never love you less — he cannot love you more. This night he doth espouse himself unto you. Faith shall be the wedding- ring which he will put upon your finger. He plights his troth to you. “Though you should him ofttimes forget, His loving-kindness fast is set.” His heart shall be so true to you that he will never leave you nor forsake you. You will come to die soon; but the friend of sin- ners, who loved you as a sinner and would not cast you off920 THE SINNER’S FRIEND. when your sinnership kept breaking up, will still be with you when you come to the sinner’s doom, which is to die. I see you going down the shelving banks of Jordan, but the sinner’s friend goes with you. Ah, dear heart! he will put his arm beneath you, and bid you fear not ; and when in the thick shades of that grim night you expect to see a fearful visage, — the grim face of Death, — you shall see, instead thereof — you shall see his sweet and smiling face, bright as an evening star, by your soul, and you shall hear him say, “ Fear not, I am with thee ; be not dis- mayed; I am thy God.” You will land in the world of spirits by-and-by ; but will the sinner’s friend forsake you then? No; he will be’ pleased to own you; he will meet you on the other side the Jordan, and he will say, “ Come, my beloved, I have loved thee with an everlasting love, and have bought thee, though thou wast a sinner vile, and now I am not ashamed to confess thee before my holy angels; nay, come with me, and I will take thee to my Father’s face, and will confess thee there.” And when the day shall come in which the world shall be judged, he will be thy friend then. ‘Thou shalt sit on the bench with him. At the right hand of the Judge shalt thou stand, accepted in him who was thine Advocate, and who is now thy Judge to acquit thee. And when the splendors of the millennium shall come, thou shalt partake of them; and when the end shall be, and the world shall be rolled up like a worn-out vesture, and these arching skies shall have passed away like a forgotten dream; when eternity with its deep-sounding waves shall break upon the rocks of time and sweep them away forever, — then, on that sea of glass mingled with fire, thou shalt stand with Christ, thy friend still, owning thee notwithstanding all thy mis- behavior in the world which has gone, and loving thee now — loving thee on as long as eternity shall last. Oh! what a friend is Christ to sinners — to sinners ! Now, do recollect that we have been talking about sinners. There is a notion abroad that Jesus Christ came into the world to save respectable people, and that he will save decent sort of folks ; that those of you who go regularly to a place of worship, and are good sort of people, will be saved. Now, Jesus Christ.THE-SINNER’S FRIEND. 221 came into the world to save sinners; and who does that mean? Well, it includes some of us who have not been permitted to ga into outward sin; but it also includes within its deep, broad compass those who have gone to the utmost extent of iniquity. Talk of sinners! Walk the streets by moonlight, if you dare, and you will see sinners then. Watch when the night is dark, and the wind is howling, and the picklock is grating in the door, and you will see sinners then. Go to yon jail, and walk through the wards, and see the men with heavy, overhanging brows, — men whom you would not like to meet out at night, — and there are sinners there. Go to the reformatories, and see those who have betrayed an early and a juvenile depravity, and you will see sinners there. Go across the seas to the place where a man will gnaw a bone upon which is reeking human flesh, and there is a sinner there. Go you where you will, and ransack earth to find sinners, for they are common enough: you may find them in every lane and street of every city and town and village and hamlet. It is for such that Jesus died. If you will select me the grossest specimen of humanity, if he be but born of woman, I will have hope of him yet, because the gospel of Christ is come to sinners, and Jesus Christ is come to seek and to save sinners. Electing love has selected some of the worst to be made the best. Redeeming love has bought, specially bought, many of the worst to be the reward of the Saviour’s passion. Effectual grace calls out and compels to come in many of the vilest of the vile: and it is therefore that I have tried to-night to preach my Master’s love to sinners. Oh! by that love, looking out of those eyes in tears; oh! by that love, streaming from ‘those wounds flowing with blood; by that faithful love, that strong love, that pure, disinterested, and abiding love; oh! by the heart and by the bowels of the Sa- viour’s compassion, I do conjure you turn not away as though it were nothing to you: but believe on him and you shall be saved! Trust your souls with him, and he will bring you to his Father's right band in glory everlasting. May God give us a blessing for Jesus’ sake. Amen. 19*SERMON XII. ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT TO SEEKING SOULS. “I WILL BE GRACIOUS UPON WHOM I WILL BE GRACIOUS, AND WILL SHOW MERCY UPON WHOM I WILL SHOW MERCY.’ — Exodus xxwiii. 19. Because God is the maker and creator and sustainer of all things, he has a right to do as he wills with all his works. “Shall the thing formed say to him that formed it, Why hast thou made me thus? Hath not the potter power over the clay of the same Jump to make one vessel unto honor, and another unto dishonor?” God’s absolute supremacy and unlimited sovereignty naturally flow from his omnipotence, and from the fact that he is the source and support of all things. Moreover, if it were not so, the super- lative excellence of the divine character would entitle him to absolute dominion. He should be chief who is best. He who cannot err, being perfect in wisdom; he who will not err, being as perfect in holiness ; he who can do no wrong, being supremely just ; he who must act in accordance with the principles of kind- ness, seeing he is essentially love, is the most fitting person to rule. Tell me not of the creatures ruling themselves: what a chaos were this! Talk not of a supposed republic of all created existences, controlling and guiding themselves. All the crea- tures put together, with their combined wisdom and goodness, — if, indeed, it were not combined folly and wickedness, — all these, I say, with all the excellencies of knowledge, judgment, and love, which the most fervid imagination can suppose them to possess, could not make the, equal of that great God whose name is holis ness, whose essence is love, to whom all power belongeth, and =ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT TO SEEKING SOULS. 223 fo whom alone wisdom is to be ascribed. Let iim reign supreme, for he is infinitely superior to all other existences. Even if he did not actually reign, the suffrages of all wise men would choose the Lord Jehovah to be absolute monarch of the universe ; and if he were not already King of kings and Lord of lords, doing as he wills among the armies of heaven and the inhabitants of this lower world, it were the path of wisdom to lift him up to that throne. Since men have sinned, there becomes a yet fur- ther reason, or rather a wider scope for the display of sovereignty. The creature, as a creature, may be supposed to have some claim upon the Creator; at least, it may expect that he shall not make it intentionally and despotically to put it to pain; that he shal not arbitrarily, and without cause or necessity, cause its existence to be one of misery. I will not venture to judge the Lord, but I do think it is altogether incompatible with his gocdness that he should have made a creature, and, as a creature, have con- demned it to misery. Justice seems to demand that there shall be no punishment where there is no sin. But man has lost ail his rights as a creature. If he ever had any, he has sinned them away. Our first parents have sinned, and we, their children, have attainted ourselves, by high treason against our liege Lord and Sovereign. All that a just God owes to any one of us on the footing of our own claim, is wrath and displeasure. If he should give to us our due, we should no longer remain on pray- ing ground, breathing the air of mercy. ‘The creature, before its Creator, must now be silent as to any demands upon him; it cannot require anything of him as a matter of right. If the Lord willeth to show mercy, it shall be so; but, if he withholds it, who can call him to account? “Can I not do as I will with mine own?” is a fit reply to all such arrogant inquiries; for man has sinned himself out of court, and there remains no right of appeal from the sentence of the Most High, Man is now in the position of a condemned criminal, whose only right is to be taken to the place of execution, and justly to suffer the due reward cf his sins. Whatever difference of opinion, then, there might have been about the sovereignty of God as exercised upon224 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT creatures in the pure mass, there should be none, and there will be none, except in rebellious spirits, concerning the sovereignty of God over rebels who have sinned themselves into eternal ruin, and have lost all their claim even to mercy, much more the love of their offended Creator. However, whether we all of us agree to the doctrine that God is sovereign or not, is a very little matter to him; far he 7s so. De jure, by right, he should be so; de facto, as matter of fact, he is so. It is a fact, concerning which you have only to open your eyes and see that God acts as a sovereign in the dispensa- tion of his grace. Our Saviour, when he wished to quote in- stances of this, spake on this wise: Many widows there were in Israel in the time of Elias the prophet, but unto none of these was Elias sent, save unto Sarepta, a city of Sidon, unto a woman who was a widow. Here was election. Elias is not sent to nourish and to be nourished by an Israelitish widow ; but to a poor idola- tress across the border, the blessing of the prophet’s company is graciously granted. Again, our Saviour says: “Many lepers were in Israel in the time of Eliseus the prophet ; and none of them were cleansed, save only Naaman the Syrian,” — not an Israelite at all, but one who bowed in the house of Rimmon. See how distinguishing grace finds out strange objects! Al- though our Saviour only gave these two instances, and no more, because they sufficed for his purpose, there are thousands of such cases on.record. Look at man and the fallen angels. How is it that fallen angels are condemned to endless fire, and reserved in chains of darkness unto the great day? There is no Saviour for angels; no precious blood was ever shed for Satan. Lucifer falls, and falls forever, — never to hope again. There is no dis- pensation of mercy to those nobler spirits; but man, who was made lower than the angels, is selected to be the object of divine redemption. What a great deep is here! This is a most illus- trious and indisputable instance of the exercise of the prerogatives of divine sovereignty. Look, again, at the nations of the earth. Why is the gospel preached to-day to us, Englishmea? We have committed as many offences —I will even venture to say ua hl)TO SEEKING SOULS. 225 we have perpetrated as many political crimes — as other nations. Our eye.is always prejudiced towards everything which is Iing- lish; but if we read our history fairly, we can discover in the past, and detect in the present, grave and serious faults which disgrace our national banner. To pass by as minor offences the late barbarities in Japan, and our frequent wars of extermination in New Zealand, and at the Cape, let it crimson the cheek of every inhabitant of the British Isles when we do but hint at the epium traffic with China. Yet to us the gospel is graciously sent, so that few nations enjoy it so fully as we do. It is true that Prussia and Holland hear the Word, and that Sweden and Denmark are comforted by the truth ; but their candle burns but dimly : it is a poor flickering lamp which cheers their darkness, while in our own dear land, partly from the fact of our religious liberty, and yet more graciously through the late revival, the sun of the gospel shines brightly, and men rejoice in the light of day. Why this? Why no grace for the Japanese? Why no gospel preached to the inhabitants of Central Africa? Why was not the truth of God displayed in the Cathedral of Santiago, instead of the mummeries and follies which disgraced both dupes and deceivers, and were the incidental cause of the horrible burnings of that modern Tophet? Why to-day is not Rome, instead of being the seat of the beast, become the throne of Jesus Christ? I cannot tell you. But assuredly, divine sovereignty, passing by many races of men, has been pleased to pitch upon the Anglo-Saxon family, that they may be as the Jews were aforetime, the custodians of divine truth, and the favorites of mighty grace. We need not further speak upon national elections, for the principle is plainly carried out in individuals. See ye anything, my brethren, in that rich publican, whose coffers are gorged with the results of his extortion, when he climbs the sycamore tree that his short stature may not prevent his seeing the Saviour — see ye anything in him why the Lord of glory should halt be- neath that sycamore tree and say, “ Zaccheus, make haste, and éome down ; for to-day I must abide at thy house”? Can you226 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT find me a reason why yonder adulterous woman, who has had five husbands, and who is now living with a man who is not her husband, should constrain the Saviour to journey through Sama- ria that he might tell her of the water of life? If you can see anything, I cannot. Look at that blood-thirsty Pharisee, hurry- ing to Damascus with authority to hale men and women to prison and shed their blood. The heat of midday cannot stop him, for his heart is hotter with religious rage than the sun with noontide rays. But see! He is arrested in his career! A brightness shines round about him! Jesus speaks from heaven the words of ten- der rebuke; and Saul of Tarsus becomes Paul, the apostle of God. Why? Wherefore? What answer can we give but this ? “Even so, Father; for so it seemed good in thy sight.” Read the “ Life of John Newton; ” had he not ripened into the gross- est of all villains? ‘Turn to the history of John Bunyan, by his own confession the lowest of all blackeuards, and tell me, can you find in either of these offenders any sort of reason why the Lord should have chosen them to be among the most distin- guished heralds of the cross ? Noman in his senses will venture to assert that there was anything in Newton or Bunyan why they should engross the regard of. the Most High. It was sov- ereignty, and nothing but sovereignty. Take your own case, dear friends, and that shall be the most convincing of all to you. If you know anything of your own heart, if you have formed a right estimate of our own character, if you have seriously con- sidered your own position before the Most High, the reflection that God loveth you with an everlasting love, and that, therefore, with the bands of his kindness he has drawn you, will draw forth from you at once the exclamation, “Not unto us, O Lord, not unto us, but unto thy name give glory, for thy mercy and for truth’s sake.” Brethren! the whole world is full of instances of divine sovereignty, for in every conversion some beam of the absolute dominion of God shines forth upon mankind. When a sinner is anxiously disturbed about his soul’s affairs, his chief and main thought should not be upon this subject ; > when a man would escape from wrath and attain to heaven, hisTO’ SEERING SOWUEG: 227 first, his last, his middle thought should be the cross of Christ. As an awakened sinner, I have vastly less to do with the secret purposes of God than with his revealed commands. For a man to say, “Thou commandest all men to repent, yet will I not repent, because I do not know that I am chosen to eternal life,” is not only unreasonable, but exceedingly wicked. That it is un- reasonable you will clearly see on a moment’s reflection. I know that bread does not of itself nourish my body, “For man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word which proceed- eth out of the mouth of God.” It depends, therefore, upon God’s decree whether that bread shall nourish my body or not; for if he has not purposed that it shall, it may even choke me, and so become rather the cause of my death than the staff of my life. Do I therefore, when I am hungry, thrust my hands into my pockets, and stand still, and refuse to help myself from the well- loaded table, because I do not know whether God has decreed that the bread shall nourish me or not? If I did, I should be an idiot or madman ; or if, in my senses, I should starve myself on such a pretence, 1 should richly deserve the burial of a sui- cide. I am not absolutely sure that there will be a harvest upon my field next year: unless God has ordained that the corn shall spring up and shall ripen, all my husbandry will be labor lost. There are worms in the earth, frosts in the air, birds in the sky, mildews in the winds, — all of which may destroy my corn, and I may lose every single grain of the handsful which I throw into my furrows. Shall I, therefore, leave my farm to be one per- petual fallow, because I do not know whether God has decreed that there shall be a harvest or not next year? If I become a bankrupt, if I am unable to pay my rent, if the thorn and the thistle grow taller and higher, and if at last my landlord thrusts me from my tenancy, all that men will say will be, “ It serves him right!” because I was such a fool as to make the secret purposes of God a matter of paramount consideration, instead of performing my known duty. Jam ill and sick. A physician comes to me with medicine. I am not clear that his medicine will heal me; it has healed a great many others: but228 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT if God has decreed that I shall die, I shall die, let me take any quantity of physic, or take none at all. My arm mortifies, but T will not have it cut ‘off, because I do not know whether God has decreed that I shall die of mortification or not. Who but a crazed idiot, or raving maniac, would talk thus? When I put the case in that light, you all reply, “ Nobody ever talks in that way; it is too absurd.” Of course nobody does. And the fact is, even in the things of God, nobody really does argue in that way. A man may say, “I will not believe in Christ, bécause I am afraid I am not elected;” but the thing is so stupid, so absurd, that I do not believe that any man, not absolutely de- mented, can be so grossly foolish as to believe in his own reason- ing. I am far rather inclined to think that is a wicked and perverse method of endeavoring to stultify conscience, on the theory that a bad excuse is better than none, and that even a foolish argument is better than having one’s mouth shut in speechless confusion. But, since men will everlastingly be getting to this point, and there are so many who are always giving this as a reason why they do not believe in the Lord Jesus: Christ, because “ it is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy,” I shall try, this morning, to talk with these people on their own ground ; and I shall endeavor, by the help of the Holy Spirit, to show that the doctrine of the sovereignty of God, so far from discouraging anybody, has not in it, if re- garded aright, any sort of discouragement whatever for any souls believing in Jesus Christ. For one moment let me detain you from my object, while I reply to a very common method of misrepresenting the doctrine. It may be as well to start with a clear idea of what the doctrine really is. Our opponents put the case thus: Suppose a father should condemn some of his children to extreme misery, and make others supremely happy, out of his own arbitrary will, would it be right and just? Would it not be brutal and detesta- ble? My answer is, of course it would ; it would be execrable in the highest degree: and far, very far be it from us 2 imputeTO SEEKING SOULS. 229 such a course of action to the Judge of all the earth... But the case stated is not at all the one under consideration, but one as opposite from it as light from darkness. Sinful man is not now in the position of a well-deserving or innocent child, neither does God occupy the place of a complacent parent. We will suppose another case, far nearer the mark ; indeed, it is no supposition, but an exact description of the whole matter. A number of criminals, guilty of the most aggravated and detestable crimes, are righteously condemned to die; and die they must, unless the king shall exer- cise the prerogative vested in him, and give them a free pardon. If, for good and sufficient reasons, known only to himself, the king chooses to forgive a certain number, and to leave the rest for execution, is there anything cruel or unrighteous here? If, by some wise means, the ends of justice can be even better an- swered by the sparing of the pardoned ones than by their condemnation, while at the same time the punishment of some tends to honor the justice of the lawgiver, who shall dare to find fault? None, I venture to say, but those who are the enemies of the state and of the king. And so may we well ask, “Ts there unrighteousness with God? God forbid.” “ What if God, willing to show his wrath and to make his power known, endured with much long-suffering the vessels of wrath fitted to destruction; and that he might make known the riches of his glory on-the vessels of mercy, which he had afore prepared unto glory, even us, whom he hath called, not of the Jews only, but also of the Gentiles?” Who is he that shall impugn the min- eled mercy and severity of Heaven, or make the eternal God an offender, because “he hath mercy on whom he will have mercy” ? Let us now proceed to our proper subject, and endeavor to clear this truth from the terrors supposed to cluster round it. I. Let us begin with this assertion, which we are absolutely sure is correct: THIS DOCTRINE DOES NOT OPPOSE ANY COM- FORT DERIVED FROM OTHER SCRIPTURAL TRUTHS. This doctrine, stern as it may seem to be, does not oppose the consolation which may be rightly derived from any other truth of 20230 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT 2% revelation. Those who hold the free-will theory, say that our doec- trine that salvation is of the Lord alone, and that he willhave mercy on whom he will have mercy, takes away from man the comfort derivable from God’s goodness. God is good, infinitely good in his nature. God is love: he willeth not the death of any, but had rather that all should come to repentance. “As I live, saith the Lord, I have no pieasure in the death of him that dieth, but had rather that he should turn unto me and live.” Our friends very properly insist upon it that God is good to all, and his tender mercies are over all his works; that the Lord is merciful and gracious, slow to anger, and plenteous in mercy. Let me assure them that we shall never quarrel on these points, for we also rejoice in the same facts. Some of you have listened to my voice for these ten years. I ask you whether you have heard me utter a single sentence which at all contradicts the doctrine of God’s great goodness? You may have so construed it by mistake, but no such teaching has passed my lip. Do I not, again and again, assert the universal benevolence of God ale infinite and overflowing goodness of the heart of the Most High ? If any man can preach upon the great text, “God is love,” though I may not be able to preach with the same eloquence, I will venture to vie with him in the decision, heartiness, delight, ear- nestness, and plainness with which he may expound his theme, be he who he may, or what he may. There is not the slightest shadow of a conflict between God’s sovereignty and God’s good- ness. He may be a sovereign, and yet it may be absolutely certain that he will always act in the way of goodness and love. It is true that he will do as he wills; and yet it is quite certain that he always wills to do that which, in the widest view of it, 1S good and gracious. If the sons of sorrow fetch any comfort from the goodness of God, the doctrine of election will never stand in their way. Only, mark, it does with a two-edged sword cut to pieces that false confidence in God’s goodness which sends so many souls to hell. We have heard dying men singing themselves into the bottomless pit with this lullaby, “Yes, sir, Iam asinner; but God is merciful; God is good.” Ah, dearTO SEEKING SOULS. 2a friends! let such remember that God is just as well as good, and that he will by no means spare the guilty, except through the great atonement of his Son Jesus Christ. The doctrine of elec- tion in a most blessedly honest manner, does come in, and breaks the neck, once for all, of all this false and groundless confidence in the uncovenanted mercy of God. Sinner, you have no right to trust to the goodness of God out of Christ. There is no word in the whole Book of inspiration which gives the shadow of a hope to the man who will not believe in Jesus Christ. It says of him, “ He that believeth not shall be damned.” It declares of you, who are resting upon such a poor confidence as the un- promised favor of Heaven, “ Other foundation can no man lay than that which is laid, Jesus Christ the righteous.” If this be an evil to rob you of a false refuge, the doctrine of election cer- tainly does this; but from the comfort properly derivable from the largest view of God’s bounteous goodness and unlimited love, election does not detract a single grain. Much comfort, too, flows to a troubled conscience from the promise that God will hear prayer. “ Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find ; knock, and it shall be opened unto you: for every one that asketh receiveth ; and he that seeketh find- eth; and to him that knocketh it shall be opened.” If you ask anything of God in the name of Jesus Christ, you shall receive it. Now, there are some who imagine that they must not pray, because they do not know whether they are God’s chosen peo- ple. If you refuse to pray on the ground of such bad reasoning as this, you must do so at your own expense; but do mark our solemn assurance, for which we have God’s warrant, that there is nothing in the sovereignty of God which at all militates against the great truth, that every sincerely seeking soul, crav- ing divine grace by humble prayer through Jesus Christ, shall be a finder. There may be an Arminian brother here who would like to get into this pulpit and preach the cheering truth that God hath not said to the seed of Jacub, seek ye my face in vain. We not only accord him full liberty to preach this doc- trine, but we will go as far as he can, and perhaps a little fur-22 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT ther, in the enunciation of that truth. We cannot perceive any discrepancy between personal election and the prevalence of prayer. Let those who can, vex their brains with the task of reconciling them; to us the wonder is how a man can believe the one without the other. Firmly must I believe that the Lord God will show mercy to whom he will show mercy, and have compassion on whom he will have compassion; but I know as assuredly that wherever there is a genuine prayer, God gave it; that wherever there is a seeker, God made him seek; conse- quently, if God has made the man seek and made the man pray, there is evidence at once of divine election; and the fact stands true that._none seek who shall not find. Very much comfort, also, is supposed to be derived, and nat- urally so, from the free invitations of the gospel. “ Ah!” cries one, “ what a sweet thing it is that the Saviour cried, ‘ Come unto me all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest’! How delightful to read such a word as this: ‘ Ho, every one that thirsteth, come ye to the waters, and he that hath no money; come ye, buy, and eat; yea, come, buy wine and milk without money and without price’! Sir, my heart is en- couraged when I find it written, ‘ Whosoever will, let him take the water of life freely.’ But, sir, I dare not come because of the doctrine of election.” My dear hearer, I would not say anything harshly to you, but I must express my conviction that this is nothing but an idle excuse for not doing what you have no mind to do; because invitations of the most general charac- ter, nay, invitations which shall be universal in their scope, are perfectly consistent with the election of God. I have preached here, you know it, invitations as free as those which proceeded from the lips of Master John Wesley. Van Armin himself, the founder of the Arminian school, could not more honestly have pleaded with the very vilest of the vile to come to Jesus than I have done. Have I therefore felt in my mind that there was a contradiction here? No; nothing of the kind: because I know it to be my duty to sow beside all waters, and, like the sower in the parable, to scatter the seed upon the stony ground, as wellTO SEEKING SOULS. 233 as upon the good land, knowing that election does not narrow the gospel-call, which is universal, but only affects the effectual call, which is and must be particular; which effectual call is no work of mine, seeing that it cometh from the Spirit of God. My business is to give the general call,— the Holy Spirit will see to its application to the chosen. Oh, my dear hearers! God’s in- vitations are honest invitations to every one of you. He invites you ; in the words of the parable, he addresses you, “ All things are ready ; come ye to the supper, my oxen and my fatlings are killed.” Nay, he saith to his ministers, “Go out into the high- ways and hedges, and compel them to come in.” Though he foreknows who will come in, and has before all worlds ordained who shall taste of that supper, yet the invitation, in its widest possible range, is a true and honest one; and if you accept it you shall find it so. Furthermore, if we understand the gospel at all, the gospel lies in a nutshell. It is this: “ Believe in the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved.” Or, to use Christ’s words, “‘ He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved, and he that believeth not shall be damned.” This promise is the gospel. Now, the gospel is true, whatever else may be false. Whatever doctrine may or may not be of God, the gospel certainly is. The doctrine of sovereign grace is not contrary to the gospel, but perfectly consonant therewith. God has a people whom no man shall number, whom he hath ordained unto eternal life. This is by no means in conflict with the great declaration,“ He that believeth on him is not condemned.” If any man who ever lived, or ever shall live, believes in Jesus Christ, he hath eternal life. Election or no election, if you are resting upon the rock of ages you are saved. If you, as a guilty sinner, take the righteousness of Christ, — if, all black and foul and filthy, you come to wash in the fountain filled with blood, — sovereignty or no sovereignty, rest assured of this, that you are redeemed from ‘the wrath to come. Oh, my dear friends! when you say, “I will not believe in Christ because of election,” I can only say, as Job did to his wife, “'Thou speakest as one of the foolish women 20*234 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT speaketh.” How dare you, because God reveals to you two things, which two things you cannot make square with one an- other — how dare you charge either the one or the other with being false? If 1 believe God, I am not only to believe what I can understand, but what I cannot understand ; and if there were a revelation which I could comprehend and sum up as I may count five upon my fingers, I should be sure it did not come from God. But if it has some depths vastly too deep for me, —some knots which I cannot untie, some mysteries which I cannot solve,—I receive it with the greater confidence, be- cause it now gives me swimming-room for my faith, and my soul bathes herself in the. great sea of God’s wisdom, praying, “ Lord J believe ; help thou mine unbelief.” Let it be said, over and over again, that there shall be no doubt about this matter; that if there be any comfort derivable from the gospel; if there be any sweet consolation flowing from the free invitations and the universal commands of- divine truth, all those may be received and enjoyed by you, while you hold this doctrine of divine sovereignty, as much as if you did not hold it, and received some wider scheme.. Methinks I hear one voice say, “ Sir, the only comfort I can ever have lies in the tn- finite value of the precious blood of Christ ; O, sir! it seems to me such a sweet thing that there is no sinner so black that Christ cannot wash away his sins, and no sinner so old that the meri- 9 torious virtue of that atonement cannot meet his case — not one in any rank or in any condition whom that blood cannot cleanse from all sin. Now, sir, if that be true, how can the doctrine of election be true?” My dear friend, you know in your own heart that the two things are not opposed to each other at all. For what does the doctrine of election say? It says that God has chosen and has saved some of the greatest sinners whc ever lived, has cleansed some of the foulest sins ever committed and that he is doing and will do the same to the world’s end. So that the two things exactly tally. And I will venture to say} that if in the fulness of a man’s heart he shall say, “There is ne sin, except the one excepted sin, which cannot be forgiven ;” ifTO SEEKING SOULS. 235 he boldly announce that “All manner of sin shall be forgiven unto men; ” and if he shall plead with power and earnestness that souls would now come to Christ and lay hold upon eternal life ; he may go back to his Bible, and he may read every-text teach- ing the sovereignty of God, and every passage upholding divine election; and he may feel that all these texts look him in the face, and say, “Well done; our spirit and your spirit are pre- cisely the same: we have no conflict together; we are two great truths which came from the same God; we are alike the reve- lation of the Holy Ghost.” But we leave that point. If there be any comfort, Sinner, which you can truthfully and rightly get from any passage of Scripture, from any promise of God, from any invitation, from any open door of mercy, you may have it; for the doctrine of election does not rob you of one atom of the consolation which the truth of God can afford you. II. But now we will take another point fora moment. Our second head is, that THIS DOCTRINE HAS A MOST SALUTARY EFFECT UPON SINNERS. ‘These may be divided into two classes: those who are awakened, and those who are hardened and incor- rigrble. To the awakened sinner, next to the doctrine of the cross, the doctrine of distinguishing grace is perhaps the most fraught with blessings and comfort. In the first place, the doctrine of election, applied by the Holy Ghost, strikes dead forever all the efforts of the flesh. It is the end of Arminian preaching to make men active, — to excite them to do what they can; but the very end and object of gospel preaching is to make men feel that they have no power of their own, and to lay them as dead at the foot of God’s throne. We seek, under God, to make them feel that all their strength must lie in the Strong One who is mighty to save. If I can convince a man that, let him do what he may, he cannot save himself; if I can show him that his own prayers and tears can never save him apart from the Spirit of God; if I can convince him that he must be born again from above; if I lead him to see that all which is born of the flesh is flesh, and236 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT only that which is born of the Spirit is spirit, — brethren! three parts of the great battle are already won. “I kill and I make alive,” saith God: “when aman is killed the work is half done.” “T wound and I heal; when a man is wounded his salvation is commenced.” What! am I to seta sinner industriously to labor after eternal life by his own works? ‘Then, indeed, am I an ambassador of hell. Am I to teach him that there is a goodness in him which he is to evolve, to polish and educate and perfect, and so to save himself? Then I am a teacher of the beggarly elements of the law, and not the gospel of Christ. Are we to set turth man’s prayers, repentings, and humblings, as the way of salvation? If so, let us renounce the righteousness of Christ at once, for the two will never stand together. JI am a mischief- maker if I excite the activities of the flesh, instead of pointing to the arms of the Redeemer! But if the potent hammer of electing sovereignty dashes out the brains of all a man’s works, merits, doings, and willings, while it pronounces over the dead carcass this sentence: “ It is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy ;” then, the best thing is done for a sinner that can be done as a stepping-stone to the act of faith. When a man is weaned from self, and totally delivered from looking to the flesh for help, there is hope for him: and this the doctrine of divine sovereignty does, through the Holy Spirit’s power. Again: this doctrine gives the greatest hope to the really awak- ened sinner. You know how the case stands. We are all pris- oners, condemned to die. God, as sovereign, has a right to pardon whom he pleases. Now, imagine a number of us shut up in a condemned cell, all guilty. One of the murderers says within himself: “ I know that I have no reason to expect to be delivered. J am not rich: if I had some rich relations, like George Townley, I might be found insane, and delivered. But I am very poor; I am not educated. If I had the education of some men I might expect some consideration. I am not a man of rank and position; I am a man without merit or influence, therefore I cannot expect that I should be selected as one to beTO SEEKING SOULS. 237 saved.” No; I believe that if the present authorities of our land were the persons to be taken into consideration, a man who was poor might have a very poor chance of expecting any gratuitous deliverance. But when God is the great sovereign the case is different. For then we argue thus: “ Here am I; my salvation depends entirely upon the will of God: is there a chance for me?” We take down a list of those whom he has saved, and we find that he saves the poor, the illiterate, the wicked, the godless, and the worst of the worst, the base things, and things that are despised. Well, what do we say? “Then why may he not choose me? Why not save me? If I am to look for some reason in myself why I should be saved, I shall never find any, and consequently never shall have a hope. But if I am to be saved for no reason at all but that God wills to save me, ah! then there is hopefor me. Iwill to the gracious King approach ; J will do as he bids me; I will trust in his dear Son, and I shall be saved.” So that this doctrine opens the door of hope to the worst of the worst, and the only persons it discourages are the Pharisees, who say, “ Lord, I thank thee that I am not as other men are,’ — those proud, haughty spirits who say, “No; if I am not to be saved for something good in myself, then I will be damned!” as damned they will be, with a vengeance, too. Moreover, do not you see, dear friends, how the doctrine of election comforts the sinner in the matter of power? His complaint is, “I find I have no power to believe; I have no spiritual power of any kind.” Election stoops down and whispers in his ear, “ But if God wills to save you, he gives the power, gives the life, and gives the grace; and thérefore, since he has given that power and might to others as weak as you, why not to you? Have courage ; look to the cross of Christ, and live.” And oh! what emotions of gratitude, what throbbings of love does this doctrine cause in human hearts! “ Why,” saith the man, “I am saved simply because God would save me; not because I deserved it, but because his loving heart would save me; then I will love him, I will live to him, I will spend and be spent for him.” Such a man cannot be proud —I mean not consistently with the doc-238 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT trine. He lies humbly at God’s feet. Other men may boast of what they are, and how they have won eternal life by their own goodness ; but I cannot. If God had left me, I had been in hell with others ; and if I go to heaven, I must cast my crown at the feet of the grace which brought me there. Such a man will ecome kind to others. He will hold his opinions, but he will not hold them savagely, nor teach them bitterly ; because he will say, “If I have light, and others have not, my light was given me from God; therefore I have no cause to plume myself upon it. I will try to spread that light, but not by anger and abuse. For why should I blame those who cannot see ?— for could I have seen if God had not opened my blind eyes ?” Every virtue this doctrine fosters, and every vice it kills, when the Holy Spirit so uses it. Pride it treads under foot; and humble, trustful con- fidence in the mercy of God in Christ, it cherishes as a darling child. My time is gone; but I wanted to have said a word as to the eilect of this gospel upon ¢ncorrigible sinners. I will just say this: I know what the effect of it ought to be. What do you say who have made up your minds not to repent — you who care not for God? Why, you believe that any day you like you can turn to God, since God is merciful, and will save you; and therefore you walk about the world as comfortably as possible, thinking it all depends upon you, and that you will get into heaven just at the eleventh hour. Ah, man! that is not_your case. See where you are. Do you see that moth fluttering in my hand? Imagine it to be there. With this finger of mine I can crush it—-in a moment. Whether it shall live or not de- pends absolutely upon whether I choose to crush it or let it go. That is precisely your position at the present moment. God can damn you now. Nay, let us say to you, “ Yours is a worse position than that.” .There are some seven persons now doomed for murder and piracy on the high seas. You can clearly say that their lives depend upon Her Majesty’s pleasure. If Her Majesty chooses to pardon them, she can. If not, when the fatal morning comes, the bolt will be drawn, and they will be launchedTO SEEKING SOULS. 259 into eternity. That is your case, sinner. You are condemned already. This world is but one huge condemned cell, in which you are kept until the execution morning comes. If you are ever to be pardoned, God must do it. You cannot escape from him by flight; you cannot bribe him by actions of your own You ar alpsolitehy 3 in the hand of God, and if he leaves you where you are and as you are, your eternal ruin is as certain ag your existence. Now, does not this make some sort of trembling come upon you? Perhaps not; it makes you angry. Well, if it does, that will not frighten me, because tier > are some of you who will never be good for anything until you are angry. I believe it is no ill sign when some persons are angry with the truth. It shows that the truth has pierced them. If an arrow penetrates my flesh, I do not like the arrow, and if you kick and struggle against this truth, it will not alarm me; I shall have some hope that a wound is made. If this truth should provoke you to think, it will have done for some of you one of the great- est things in the world. It is not your perverse thinking which frightens me ; it is the utterly thoughtless way in which you go on. If you had sense enough to consider these things, and ficht against them, I should then have some faint hope of you. But, alas! many of you have not sense enough ; you say, “ Yes, yes, tis all true.” You accept it, but then it has no effect upon you. The gospel rolls over you, like oil adown a slab of mar ble, and produces no effect. If you are at all right in heart, you will begin to see what your state is, and the next thing that will startle your mind will be the reflection: “Is it so? Am I absolutely in’ God’s hands? Can he save me or damn me as he will? Then, I will cry to him, “O God! save me from the wrath to come —from eternal torment —from banishment from thy presence! Save me, O God! What wouldst thou have me to do? Oh! what wouldst thou have me to do, that I may find thy favor and live?” Then comes the answer to you: “Believe in the Lord Jesus Christ, and you shall be saved; ” for “whosoever believeth in him shall uever perish, but shall have eternal life.”240 ELECTION NO DISCOURAGEMENT TO SEEKING SOULS. Oh that God might bless this divine doctrine to you! I have never preached this doctrine without conversions, and I believe I never shall. At this moment God will cause his truth to at- tract your hearts to Jesus, or to affright you to him. May you be drawn as the bird is drawn by the lure, or may you be driven as a dove is hunted by the hawk into the clefts of the rock. Only may you be sweetly compelled to come. May my Lord fulfil this desire of my heart. Oh that God may grant me your souls for my hire! and to him shall be the glory, world without end. Amen.SERMON XIiT. THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. “HE SAME HEARD PAUL SPEAK: WHO STEADFASTLY BEHOLDING HIM, AND PERCEIVING THAT HE HAD FAITH TO BE HEALED, SAID WITH A LOUD VCICE, STAND UPRIGHT ON THY FEET. AND HE LEAPED AND WALKED.” — Acts xiv. 9, 10. - I HAVE read in your hearing the story of the preaching of Paul and Barnabas in the town of Lystra. The name of Christ was there totally unknown. They were a sort of country people, partly pastoral and partly agricultural, who seem to have been deeply sunken in superstition. At the gates of their city there stood a great temple, dedicated to Jupiter, and they appear to have been his zealous votaries. Coming down from the moun- tain-side, Paul and Barnabas enter the town ; and when a fitting time has come, they stand up in the market-place, or the street, and begin to talk concerning Jesus, the Son of God, who had come down from heaven, had suffered and died, and had again ascended up on high. The people gather round them. Among the rest, a cripple listens with very marked attention. They preach again. The crowds are still greater; and on one occasion, while Paul is in the middle of a sermon, using his eyes to watch the audience, as all preachers should do, and not looking up at the ceiling or at the gallery-front, as some preachers are wont to do, he marks this cripple, fixes his eyes upon him, and looks earnestly in his face. Hither by the exercise of his judgment, or by the promptings of revelation, the apostle gathers that this man has faith — faith to be healed. In order to attract the at- 21242 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. tention of the people, to glorify the name of Christ, to publish more widely his glorious fame, and to make the miracle well known, Paul stops the sermon, and with a loud voice cries, “ Stand upright on thy feet.” The cripple leaps and praises God. The population are all amazed, and knowing that there was a tradition that Jupiter and Mercury had once appeared in that very town, —a tradition preserved in the Metamorphoses of Ovid to the present day, — they at once conclude that surely Jupiter and Mercury must be come again. They fix upon Barnabas, whe was probably the elder and the nobler looking man, for Jupiter ; and as Jupiter was always attended by Mercurius, as a messen- ger, and Mercury was the god of eloquence, they conclude that Paul must be Mercury. They rush to the temple; they tell the priests that the gods have come down. The priests, only too ready to foster popular credulity, and pander to it, bring forth the sacred bullocks and the garlands, and are about to offer sac- rifice before Paul and Barnabas. Such homage these men of God indignantly refuse: they rend their clothes ; they beseech them to do no such thing, for they are nothing but men; yet hardly with earnest words can they stay the people. But the next day certain Jews came thither and produced a counter irri- tation in the simple minds of the people: no very difficult task where a rude fanaticism rouses the wild passions of the mob. Such an assembly must rage, whether it be with redundant ap- plause or with derisive jeers. Accordingly, Paul finds himself exposed to peril. He is stoned through the streets; dragged forth as dead, and left by the very men who worshipped him but yes- terday as a god — left to die as a villain outside the city gates. But Paul’s preaching had not been in vain. There were some few disciples who remained faithful. His ministry was rewarded and owned of God. There are two or three points in this narrative to which I shall call your attention to-night, making, however, the lame man the centre of the picture. We shall notice, first of all, what preceded this lame man’s faith ; secondly, wherein lay his faith to be healed; and thirdly, what is the teaching of the miracleTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 243 vtself, and the blessing which the lame man obtained through Jaith. I. WuaT WAs IT WHICH PRECEDED HIs FAITH? That “ Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God,” is a great and universal rule; but the hearing of what? Doubtless the hearing of the gospel is intended. On turning to your Bibles you will find it is written —“ And there they preached the gospel.” What, Paul! dost thou not change thy voice? Thou hast preached the gospel in the cities of Iconium and Antioch, where there were enlightened and intelligent hear- ers; if the gospel suited them, surely it will not do for these wolfish boors! Why go and preach to these poor, ignorant, super- Stitious fanatics the very same truths which you spoke to your enlightened Jewish brethren? But he does do so, my friends. The very gospel- which he preached at Damascus in the syna- gogue, he preaches here at Lystra in the market-place. He makes no difference between the education of his hearers in dif- ferent places; he has the same gospel to preach to them both You recollect that Paul went to Ephesus ; and Ephesus, as a city, was besotted with a belief in sorcery. The people had given themselves up to practice magical arts. What is the right way to begin to preach at Ephesus? — deliver a course of lectures upon the impossibility and absurdity of such superstition? No, sir; nothing of the kind. Preach Christ, preach the gospel ; and as Jesus Christ is lifted up, they bring their magical books and make a bonfire of them in the open forum. But here is a polished governor — Sergius Paulus — sitting upon the judgment- seat. What shall be preached to him? Would it not be well to begin with a dissertation on politics, and to show that the Christian religion does not interfere with proper government, — that it does not stir up the people toanarchy ? No, sir; nothing of the kind. There is nothing for Sergius Paulus, any more than there is for Elymas the sorcerer, but the preaching of the gospel of Jesus Christ. Paul goes to Athens. Now, the Athe- nians are the most learned and philosophical of the whole raceDAA THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. of men. What will Paul preach there? The gospel, the whole gospel, and nothing but the gospel. He may change his tones, but never his matter. It is the same remedy for the same dis- ease, be the men what they may. He comes to Corinth, and here you have not only polished manners, but the very refine- ment of vice. It is a city, an emporium of trade, and a sort of central dépot of sin. What then? Will. he now, to please the trader, assume a different dialect? Not he! The Christ for Athens is the Christ for Corinth too. And now see him. He has come to Lycaonia, and is preaching at Lystra. Here is an ignorant set of people, who worship an image. Why does he not begin by preaching of the Deity? Why does he not talk to them of the Trinity in unity? Why does he not try and confute their notions about their gods? No, my dear sir; he will do nothing of the kind: that may be done incidentally, but the first and the last thing that Paul will do at Lystra is, there he will preach the gospel. O glorious gospel of the blessed God! Wherever we take thee thou art suited to the wants of men. Take thee to Persia, with all its gems and jewels, and thou dost suit the mon- arch on his throne; or take thee to the naked savage, with all his poverty and squalid filth, and thou dost suit him too. Thou mayst be preached, thrice glorious wisdom of God, to the wisest of men; but thou art not too great a mystery to be understood and believed even by the fools and the babes: the things which are not can receive thee as well as the things which are. Never, I pray you brethren, lose heart in the power of the gospel. Do not believe that there exists any man, much less any race of men, for whom the gospel is not fitted. Wherever you go, do not cut, and trim, and shape, and alter; but just bring out the whole truth as God has taught it to you, and rest assured that you will be unto God a sweet savor of Christ in every place, both in them who are saved and in them who perish. What, then, was this gospel which the Apostle Paul did preach everywhere? Well, it was a gospel which had in it three things, — certain facts, certain doctrines, and certain commands. It was a gospel of facts. Every time Paul stood up to preach,THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. he told the following unvarnished tale: God, looking upon the race of men, beheld them lost and ruined. Out of love to them, he sent his only-begotten Son, the Lord Jesus Christ, who was born of the Virgin Mary, lived some thirty-two or thirty-three years a life of spotless innocence and perfect obedience to God. Hie was God: he was man. In due time he was delivered up by the traitor Judas. He was crucified, and actually put to death. Though he was the Lord of life and glory, who only hath im- mortality, yet he bowed his head and gave up the ghost. After three days he rose again, and showed himself to many of his disciples, so that they were well assured he was the same person who had been put into the grave; and when the forty days were finished, he ascended up to heaven in the sight of them all, where he sitteth at the right hand of God, and shall also come ere long a second time to judge both the quick and the dead. ‘These were the facts which Paul would state. God was made flesh and dwelt amongst us, and we beheld his glory, — the glory as of the only-begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth. “This is a faithful saying, and worthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners ; of whom I am chief” Briefly, these were the facts which Paul would preach ; and if any one of these facts be preached doubtfully, or be left out of any ministry, then the gospel is not preached; for the foundations upon which the gospel rests have been removed, and then what can the righteous do ? Following upon these facts, Paul preached certain doctriaes, — the doctrines flowing out of the facts. To wit, he preached that Jesus Christ had offered a full atonement to divine wrath for the sin of his people, so that whosoever would believe on him, and trust him, should be saved. ‘The doctrine of the atonement would form the most prominent feature in the gospel of the Apostle Paul. Christ also hath suffered for us, the just for the unjust, to bring us to God. “ God commendeth his love towards us, in that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for the un- godly.” Then would come the doctrine of pardon. Paul, with glowing tongue, would tell how God could be just, and yet the 21*246 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. justifier of him who believeth ; how all manner of sin and in- iquity shall be forgiven unto men, the simple condition being that the man believes in Christ; and this not so much the man’s own work, as a gift of the Holy Ghost. Everywhere Paul would be unmistakable in this: “ Ye chief of sinners, look to the wounds of Jesus, and your sins shall be forgiven you.” Equally clear would he be upon the doctrine of justification. “ Christ,” he would say, “will wash you; nay, more, he will clothe you: the perfect holiness of his character shall be imputed unto you ; and being justified, you shall have peace with God, and there shall be no condemnation, because you are in Christ Jesus.” I think I see the flashing eye of the apostle. Methinks I listen to his earnest voice, while he pleads with men to lay hold upon eternal life, — to look to Jesus Christ, to forsake the deeds of the law, to put their trust in nothing which cometh from man, but to look to Jesus, and to Jesus only. These great truths, — atonement, pardon, and justification, with all the other truths connected with them, of which we cannot now speak particularly, — were just the gospel which the Apostle Paul preached. And out of these we said there sprung certain demands. The commands were these: “ Believe in the Lord Jesus Christ and thou shalt be saved.” Nor do I suppose that the apostle for a moment stammered to, preach that other command: “ Arise, and be baptized.” He would not preach half the gospel, but the whole of it. “He that believeth and is baptized shall he saved ; but he that believeth not shall be damned-;” and often, after his hearers had cried, “ What must we do to be saved?” and they had believed in Christ, they would say to him: “See, here is water ; what doth hinder me to be baptized ? ” The apostle, then, preached a gospel which was made up of certain authenticated facts, out of which there flowed certain most gracious evangelical doctrines, which were enforced and driven home with divine authority by Christ’s own commands. “ Well? says one, “do you think the world will be turned upside down by this?” Sirs, it has been, and it will be again. In vain do those who seek after human learning, and who aim at dreamyTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 947 sentiment or spurious science in preference to the standard teach- ing which is from above, attempt to find a nobler instrument, This is the great battering-ram which shall yet shake the bas- tions of error. This is the sword, the true Kscalabar, which, if any man knoweth how to wield it, shall cut through joints and marrow, and make him more than a conqueror. He who getteth a hold of the gospel of Christ, and knoweth how to use it, hath that before which the devils tremble, and in the presence of which angels adore, — which cherubs long to look into, and which God himself smiles upon as his noblest work. The truth we proclaim is not that which is discovered by us, but that which has been delivered to us. Do ye ask, then, where this man’s faith came from? It came from Paul’s preaching of the gospel. II. Now, WHEREIN LAY THIS MAN’S FAITH? Paul looked at the man, we are told, and perceived “that he had faith to be healed.” What meaneth this “ faith to be healed ?” In this man’s case I think it was something like this: Poor fel- low! As he listened to Paul’s preaching, he thought, perhaps, “Well, that looks like true; that seems to be the truth; it is the truth; I am sure it is true; and if it is true that Jesus Christ is so great a Saviour, perhaps I may be healed. These lame legs of mine, which never would carry me anywhere, may yet come straight. I — I —TI think they may; I hope they may; I believe they may. I know it can be done if Christ wills it. I believe that; and from what Paul says of Christ’s character, I think he must be willing to do it. I will ask the apostle. The first convenient season that I have I will lift up my cry, for I believe it can be done; and I think there is a perfect willingness, both in the mind of the apostle and of the Master, that it should be done. I believe it will be done, and that I shall yet stand upright.” Then Paul said to him, “ Stand upright on thy feet,” and he did so in a moment, for “he had faith to be healed.” Do you think I am overstraining the probabilities of the case ? You will perhaps say, “It does not appear that Paul had any communication with the poor cripple before the miracle was per-248 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. formed.” Now, I venture to draw quite an opposite inference. I know from my own experience that it is no uncommon thing for some one individual to arrest the preacher’s attention. ‘The group of countenances which lay before him in a large assembly, like the present, might to the first glance of a stranger look con- fused and inexplicable, as a Chinese grammar does to those who know not the language. But you need not doubt that a prac- tised eye can learn to read the one as well as the other. The lancuor and indifference of some; the curious, inquiring look of others ; the cold, critical attention of a considerable number ; and the countenances of those who are rather absorbed in a train of thought just awakened in their own minds, — these have all a peculiar impressiveness, and form a picture which often reacts upon us, and kindies a vehement desire in our breasts to reach the souls of those who, for a brief hour, hang upon our lips. But there will sometimes be one who has faith dazzling in his very eyes, as they are fixed with an intentness of which it were vain for me to attempt a description — seeming to drink in every word and every syllable of a word, till the preacher becomes as absorbed in that man as the man had been in the preacher, And while he pursues the discourse, gaining liberty at every step, till he forgets the formality of the pulpit in the freedom of con- versation with the people, he perceives that at last this man has heard the very truth which meets his case. There is no con- cealing it. His features have suddenly relaxed. He listens still, but it is no longer with painful anxiety; a calm satisfaction is palpable on his face now. That soul of communion which is in the eye has unravelled the secret. Preacher and hearer, unknown to all the rest of the audience, have secretly saluted each other, and met on the common ground of a vital faith. The anxious one feels that it can be done. And I can readily con- clude that the apostle perceived that feeling with greater cer- tainty than he would have done had the man whispered it in his ears. So have I sometimes known that the exhortation to believe has become from these lips a positive command to the struggling conscience of some one who has been brought toaTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. point where the remedy is instantly applied, and the cure in- stantly effected. Most unquestionably there is such a thing as faith to be saved. I do not know how many here may possess it; but, thank God! there are hundreds of you here who have faith that you are saved. That is better; that is the ripest faith — the faith which knows you are saved, and rejoices in hope of the glory of God. Alas! there are others who have no faith at all. But it is with those who have faith, and that only faith to be saved, not faith that you are saved, I am more particularly concerned at this moment. Shall I describe this “ faith to be saved?” for I believe that there may be some here who may just now stand upright on their feet; some who may at this time leap for joy of heart because they are saved, and did not know it. You have “faith,” but you have not fully exercised it. Now, you believe that Jesus Christ is God’s Son? “Yes.” Thathe has made a full atonement for his people? “Yes.” ~ You believe that they are his people who trust him? “Yes.” You believe he is worthy to be trusted ? “Yes.” You have nothing else to trust to? “No, sir.” You depend on nothing which you have ever felt, or thought, or done ? “ No, sir; I depend on nothing but Christ.” And you do, after a sort of fashion, trust Christ. You hope that one of these days he will save you; and you think, and sometimes you almost know, he will. You are ready to trust him. You do believe he is able, you do not think he is unwilling ; you have got faith in his ability, and you have almost got faith in his willingness. Some- times you half think to yourself, “I ama child of God.” But, then, there is some ugly “but” comes in. Those lame legs again, — those lame legs again. You are still afraid. You have “faith to be saved,” but you have not the full assurance of faith which can utter forth this joyous psalm: “ Behold, God is my salvation ; I will trust, and not be afraid: for the Lord Jehovah is my strength and my song; he also is become my salvation.” Well, now, I do not know whether I have picked you out— whether I have given a right description of you or not. I rec- ollect the time when I was in that state. I can honestly say I250 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. did not doubt Christ. I three parts believed that he would save me. J knew he was worthy of my trust; and I did trust him as far as this, — that I resolved, if I did perish, I would perish ery- ing to him ; and that, if I was cast away, it should be clinging to the cross. I believe I had “ faith to be saved,” and was for months in bondage when there was no necessity that I should have been in bondage at all; for when there is “ faith to be saved,” then the man only needs that gracious command, “ Stand up- right on thy feet,” and forthwith he leaps out of his infirmity, and walks freely in the integrity of his heart. III. I shall not enlarge further upon this, because I want to go to THE SPIRITUAL TEACHING OF THE MIRACLE, AND OF THE BLESSING CONFERRED. Are there not many who, though they have “faith to be saved,” are still entirely lame, or painfully limping? The reasons may be different in different cases. Some have been so stunned by the grief which they have suffered on account of sin, and the frightful convictions through which they have passed, that while they do believe that Christ is able and willing to save, they cannot get a hold of the fact that they are saved, — such is the faintness of spirit and the languishing of soul brought on by long despair. “Stand upright on thy feet,” thou trembling sinner. If thou believest in Jesus, whatever thy fears may be, there is no cause forthem. As for thy sins, they were laid on him, every one of them, and though thou hast been sore broken in the land of dragons, thus saith the Lord unto thee: “I have put away thy sin; thou shalt not die: I have blotted out like a cloud thy trans- gressions, and like a thick cloud thy sins.” Rejoice, then, and be glad. If you do trust Christ, you are saved; though as yet it only looketh like faith which heralds the tidings of a salvation which has not yet arrived. Still, it is the grace of God which bringeth salvation which has enabled thee to believe; and he who believeth on the Son hath everlasting life. Oh, receive the welcome message; spring up at the sound of the words; stand upright on thy feet, and rejoice.THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 251 Some are still lame, though they have faith, through ignorance. - They do not know what being saved is. They entertain wrong expectations. They are trusting in Christ, but they do not feel any surprising emotions; they have not had any remarkable dreams, or visions, or striking ebullitions of excited joy ; and therefore, though they have “faith to be saved,” they have not the faith of a present salvation. They are waiting for something, they hardly know what, to embellish their faith, or to fortify it with signs and wonders. Now, poor soul, wherefore do you wait? These things are not necessary to salvation. In fact, the fewer you have of them, methinks, the better, especially of things which are visionary. I rather tremble for those who talk much about sensible evidences; they are too often the frivolities of unstable hearts. Beloved, though you may have never had any ecstatic joys, or suffered any deep depression of your spirits, if you are resting on Christ, it does not matter one whit what your feelings have been or have not been. Do you expect to have an electric shock, or to go through some mysterious opera- tion? The operation is mysterious, too mysterious for you to discern it; but all that you have to do with is this — “Do I believe in Jesus? Am I simply depending upon him for every- thing?” If you do, you are saved; and I pray you to believe this. Stand upright on your feet, and leap for joy; for, whether you believe it or not, if you are now depending upon Christ, your sins are forgiven you; you are a child of God; you are an heir of heaven. Tlow many, too, are kept lame because of a fear of self-decep- tion. “I do trust Christ, but I am afraid lest I should deceive myself. Suppose I were to get confidence, and it should be pre- sumption. Suppose I should think myself saved, and I am not!” Now, sir, if thou wert dealing with thyself there would be reason to be afraid of presumption ; but thy faith hath to deal with God, who cannot deceive thee, and with Christ who will never tempt thee to be a deceiver. Doth not the Lord Jesus Christ himself tell thee that if thou believest in him thou art saved? ‘Thou believest that, dost thou not? Then, soul, if thou believest on2o2 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. him, if is not presumption to say, “I am saved.” Away with all that affectation of modesty, which some good people think to be so pretty — saying, “I hope,” “I trust;” but “TI-feel such doubts, such fears, and such gloomy misgivings.” My dear sir, that is not humility ; that isa vain, unseemly questioning of God. The God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ tells you — and he gives his own unequivocal word for it — that if.you rest upon Christ you rest upon a rock; that if you believe in him you are not condemned. Is it an evidence of the lowliness of your heart that you suspect the veracity of God, or the faithfulness of his promise? Surely this were no fruit of the meekness of wisdom. No, beloved ; it may seem too good to be true, but it is not too good for my God to give, though it is too good for you to re- ceive. You have his word for it, that, if you trust his Son to save you, and simply trust him, and him alone, even if the pillars of the heavens should shake, yet you would be saved. If the foundations of the earth should reel, and the whole earth should like a vision pass away, yet this eternal promise and oath of God must stand fast. Others, again, cannot stand upright on their feet, because they are afraid that ¢f they did begin they would go back again, and so bring dishonor to Christ. This would be a very proper fear, if you had anything to do with keeping yourselves. If you had to carry yourselves to heaven, it would be reasonable enough for you to despair of doing it. Of your own impotence it is impos- sible you can be too deeply convinced. You cannot do anything whatever, but Christ gives you his promise to preserve you even to the end. Ifyou believe on him you shall be saved. He does not say you shall be saved for a year, or for twenty years, and then, perhaps, be lost at last. No; but “he that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved.” If one man who believes in Christ is cast away, that promise of Christ is not true. Brethren, it is true, and it must be true, — and let its glorious truth be sweetly familiar with you now, — if you give your soul to Christ, putting simple faith in his person as the Son of God, and in his work as the Mediator between God and man, you shali as surely see hisTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 253 face within the pearly gates of heaven as your eyes see me to- night. ‘There may be a question about your seeing me, but there can be no question about Christ fulfilling his promise and keep- ing his word. Now, sit down in the dust no longer, thou doubting, mourning, trembling sinner. With a loud voice I say unto thee, as Paul did, “ Stand upright on thy feet.” Wherefore dost thou mourn? ‘There is nothing to mourn about. Thy sin is forgiven; thine eternal salvation is secure ; a crown in heaven is provided for thee, and a harp of gold awaits thee. If thou believest in Jesus, none can lay anything to thy charge. Not even the prin- cipalities of darkness shall be able to prevail against thee. Eter- nal love secures thee against the malice of hell. Stand upright, then, on thy feet ; for if thou believest, thou art saved, completely saved, — saved in time, and for eternal days, — saved in the Lord with an everlasting salvation. Then, possibly, there is one here who cannot stand upright be- cause of his many sins. Ah! while I have been talking about Christ, it may be something has been saying in your heart, “ Ah! ah! what is it? Christ taking men’s sins, suffering in their stead? That suits me. Is God doing this? Ah! then he must be able to save, and I am told that whosoever trusteth in him shall never perish. Isitso? Why, here lam; I, who have not been in a place of worship for months, for years, — I have strayed in here to-night; and if what this man says be true, well, then I will even venture my soul upon it. I have got nothing, I know; but he says there is nothing wanted. Iam not prepared to trust Christ, but he says there is no preparation required ; and if I trust Jesus Christ just as I am, Christ will save me. Why, I will do it; by the grace of God I will do it. Can he save me?” Then comes in the bitter reflection: “ Look what a sinner I have been! Why, I should be ashamed to say how foully I have sinned. He must shut me out. I have been too great a villain, too gross an offender. I have cursed and sworn at such a rate. He cannot mean that if I trust Christ I shall be saved. I believe he can save me; I see the fitness of the plan, and the excellency of it. I believe it; but see what a sinner lam!” Sinner, stand 22254 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. upright on thy feet ; for “all manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men.” Return, thou wanderer ; return to thy Father’s house! He comes to meet thee. On thy neck he will fall, and thou shalt be his child forever. Only believe thou in his Son Jesus Christ, and though this be the first time thou hast ever heard his Word, I would settle mine eyes upon thee ear- nestly, and say, “Stand upright on thy feet.” Ob ! how often I do wish that somebody had come to me when I was under depression of mind, and had told me about the sim- ple gospel of Jesus Christ! I think I should have stood upright on my feet long before I did; but, alas! I kept hearing about what people felt before they believed in Christ, — very proper preaching, —and I was afraid I did not feel it, though now I know I did. I heard a great deal about what Christians ought to be, and a great deal more about God’s elect — what they are in his esteem ; but I did not know whether I was one of God’s elect; and I knew I was not what I ought to be. Oh for the trumpet of the archangel, to sound the words, “ Believe and live,” as loud as the voice which shall wake the dead in their graves! And oh for the quickening Spirit to go with voice, as it shall go with the ringing of the archangel’s trump, when the graves shall open, and the dead shall arise! Go, you who know it, and tell it everywhere ; for there are multitudes, I doubt not, who are really seeking Christ, and who have his Spirit in them; but it is like as the prophet hath it: “The children have come to the birth and there is no strength to bring forth.” They have come to the very edge of light, and they only want’ one helping hand to bring them into noonday. ‘They are slipping about in the Slough of Despond, and they are almost out of it; but they want just a helping hand to pull them out. This hand of help is stretched out by thus telling them, telling them plainly, it is in Jesus their help is found, and that trusting him, relying upon him, they shall never perish, neither shall any pluck them out of his hand. I would to God that some of you, who have been long hear- ing me, might be found in this class. I have been bowed downTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 255 in spirit at some sad things which have been brought to my hear- ing of late. I know that there are some here, and there always have been some few attending my ministry, who have a personal affection for me, and who listen to the Word with very great at- tention, and who, moreover, are very greatly moved by it, but who have some besetting sin which they either cannot or will not give up. They do renounce it for a time ; but either bad associates, or else the strength of their passions, take them away again. Oh, sirs! I would ye would take warning. There was one of whom we had some sort of hope, who listened to our ministry. There came a turning-point with him. It was this: either that he must give up sin, or else give up coming to the Tabernacle. And what, oh! what became of him? I could indicate the place where he sat. He died of delirium tremens! And I do not wonder. When you have heard the gospel preached Sabbath after Sabbath, — when your response to the solemn appeals you have earnestly listened to has only been that you reject Christ and refuse eternal life, — is it any marvel that in making the choice of your own damnation reason should resign its seat as director of your actions, and cease to curb your headstrong will, leaving the maddened passions to dash on with reckless fury, and precipitate your destruction? Am I clear of their blood? I have asked myself the question. I may not be in some things, but I know I am as far as my ministry is concerned. I have not shunned to declare unto any of you the whole counsel of God. When I have known any vice, or any folly — which of you have I been afraid of, or before whom of you all have I trembled? God is my witness; him have I served in the spirit. And if these turn aside unto their crooked ways, they have not done it without well knowing the consequences; nay, they have not done it without being warned and entreated, and persuaded to look unto Jesus Christ. And I do conjure some of you — you know to whom I refer—TI do conjure those of you who have a conscience which is not seared, but who, nevertheless, persevere in your sins —I conjure_you by the love of God, do me this one favor at the last: if you choose your own ruin, bear eR NT ee256 THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. witness for me that I have not hesitated to warn you of it. I had infinitely rather, however, that you would do yourselves this great favor, to love your own souls. If you have anything to throw into the fire, throw it in; but let it not be your soul. If you have anything to lose, go and lose it; but do not lose your ‘soul. Sirs, if you must play the fool, indulge your sport at a cheaper rate than this. If sin be worth having, then I pray you pay a cheaper price than your own souls for it; for it does seem to me so pitiful, so sorrowful a thing that you who have been so short a time among us, and are passing away before my very eyes, should still prefer the fleeting joy of the moment to the eternal joy, and risk everlasting torment for temporary mirth. By the tears of Jesus, when he wept over Jerusalem ; by the blood of Jesus, which he shed for guilty men; by the heart of the eternal Father, who willeth not the death of a sinner, but had rather that he should turn unto him and live, —I pray you be wise, and consider your ways. Choose ye this day whom ye will serve, and may the Lord guide your choice. May you fail into the arms of Divine Mercy, and say, “ If thou wilt help me, Jesus, here I am; I give myself to thee.” May my Master teach me how to address you, if I do not know how to gasp the words of simplicity, tenderness, — of terrible apprehension, but of persuasive power. If there were any words in any language that would melt you, this tongue is at your service to utter them. If there is any form of speech, though it should make me to be called vulgar, and subject me to the shame and hissing which once I endured, — if the furnace could be heated seven times hotter than that, I would but laugh at it if I might but win your souls. ‘Tell me, sirs, how shall I put the case? Would you have argument? I wish that I could reason with you. Would.you have tears? ‘There, let them flow! Ye dry eyes, why do ye not weep more for these perishing souls? Would you have God’s Word without my word? Sirs, I would read it and let my tongue be dumb, if that would teach you. Would my death save you? That God who seeth in secret knoweth that to-night it were a joy to me to enter into my rest,THE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. 257 and so it were little for me to talk of being willing to give a life for you; and it were, indeed, but a trifle to me. Oh! why will ye perish? Why should I plead with you, and you not care for yourselves? What is it that besets you? Poor moths! Are ye dazzled with the flames? Are ye not content to have singed your wings? Must they also consume body and soul? How can ye make your bed in hell? How can ye abide with eternal burnings? In the name of Jesus of Nazareth, I com- mand you —for I can do no less—I command you to turn unto him, and live. Believe on him and you shall be saved. But, remember, at your hazard you reject the message to-night. It may be the last message that shall ever come to your soul with power; if ye cast this away — “‘ What chains of vengeance must they feel, Who slight the bonds of love?” I would have you saved just now. I cannot talk about to-mor- row. I would have you decide it at once. Oh! you have come as far as this twenty times, and have you gone back again? You have been aroused; you have made vows, and you have broken them ; resolutions, and you have belied them. Ok, sirs, for God’s sake do not lie to the Almighty again! Now, be true this time. May the Spirit of God make you speak the truth, even though you should be compelled to say, through your wickedness: or will not submit myself unto the Son of God.” Do speak the truth. Procrastinate not. As Elijah said, “ How long halt ye between two opinions?” so say I. If God be God, serve him ; but if Baal be God, serve him. But do not keep on coming here and then going to the pot-house. Do not come and take your seat here and then go to the brothel. Sirs, do not this foul scandal for God’s sake, and for your own sake. If you will serve the devil, serve him, and be a true servant to him. If you mean to go to hell, go there ; but if you seek eternal life and joys to come, give up these things. Renounce them. Why drink poi- son and drink medicine too? Wave done with one or the other, aeTHE CRIPPLE AT LYSTRA. and be honest. Be honest to your own souls. May the Lord grant that to-night some may have given to them not only “faith to be saved,” but the faith which saves, for his name’s sake. Amen.SERMO.” XIV. A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. “ a BUNDLE OF MYRRH IS MY WELL-BELOVED UNTO ME; HE SHALL LIE ALY, NIGHT BETWIXT MY BREASTS.’’— Canticles i. 13. CERTAIN divines have doubted the ‘inspiration of Solomon’s Song ; others have conceived it to be nothing more than a speci- men of ancient love-songs; and some have been afraid to preach from it because of its highly poetical character. The true rea- son for all this avoidance of one of the most heavenly portions of God’s Word lies in the fact that the spirit of this Song is not easily attained. Its music belongs to the higher spiritual life, and has no charm for unspiritual ears. The Song occupies a sacred enclosure, into which none may enter unprepared. “ Put off thy shoes from off thy feet, for the place whereon thou standest is holy ground,” is the warning voice from its secret tabernacles. The historical books I may compare to the outer courts of the temple; the Gospels, the Epistles, and the Psalms, bring us into the holy place, or the court of the priests; but the Song of Solomon is the most holy place — the holy of holies, before which the veil still hangs to many an untaught believer. It is not all the saints who can enter here, for they have not yet attained unto the holy confidence of faith, and that exceeding familiarity of love which will permit them to commune in conjugal love with the great Bridegroom. We are told that the Jews did not permit the young student to read the Canticles, —that years of full maturity were thought necessary before the man could rightly profit by this mysterious Song of loves. Possibly they260 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. were wise; at any rate, the prohibition foreshadowed a great truth. The Song is, in truth, a book for full-grown Christians. Babes in grace may find their carnal and sensuous affections stirred up by it towards Jesus, whom they know rather “ after the flesh ” than in the spirit; but it needs a man of fuller growth, who has leaned his head upon the bosom of his Master, and been baptized with his baptism, to ascend the lofty mountains of love on which the spouse standeth with her beloved. The Song, from the first verse to the last, will be clear to those who have received an unction from the Holy One, and know all things (1 John ii. 20). You are aware, dear friends, that there are very few commentaries upon the Epistles of John: Where we find fifty commentaries upon any book of St. Paul, you will hardly find one upon John. Why is that? Is the book too difficult ? ‘The words are very simple; there is hardly a word of four syllables anywhere in John’s Epistles. Ah! but they are so saturated through and through with the spirit of love, which also perfumes this Book of Solomon, that those who are not taught in the school of communion cry out, “ We cannot read it, for it is sealed.” The Song is a golden casket, of which love is the key rather than learning. Those who have not at- tained unto heights of affection, those who have not been educated by familiar intercourse with Jesus, cannot come near to this mine of treasure, “seeing it is hid from the eyes of all living, and kept close from the fowls of heaven.” Oh for the soaring eagle-wing of John, and the far-seeing dove’s eyes of Solomon! But the most of us are blind, and cannot see afar off. May God be pleased to make us grow in grace, and give us so much of the Holy Spirit that, with feet like hind’s feet, we may stand upon the high places of Scripture, and this morning have some near and dear intercourse with Christ Jesus. Concerning our text, let us talk very simply ; remarking, first, that Christ is very precious to believers ; secondly, that there ts good reason why he should be ; thirdly, that mingled with this sense of preciousness there 1s a joyous consciousness of possession of him ; and that therefore, fourthly, there ¢s an earnest desireA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 261 Jor perpetual fellowship with him. If you look at the text again you will see all these matters in it. I, First, then, Curist Jesus Is UNUTTERABLY PRECIOUS TO BELIEVERS. The words manifestly imply this: “A bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” She calls him her “ well- beloved,” and so expresses her love most emphatically ; it is not merely beloved, but well-beloved. Then she looks abroad about her to find a substance which shall be at once valuable in itself and useful in its properties, and lighting upon myrrh, she saith: “A bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” Without looking into the figure just now, we keep to the statement that Christ is precious to the believer. Observe, first, that nothing gives the believer so much joy as fellowship with Christ. Ask yourselves, you who have eaten at his table and have been made to drink of his cup, where can such sweetness be found as you have tasted in communion with Jesus? The Christian has joy, as other men have, in the com- mon mercies of life. For him there are charms in music, excel- lence in painting, and beauty in sculpture ; for him the hills have sermons of majesty, the rocks hymns of sublimity, and the valleys lessons of love. He can look upon all things with an eye as clear and joyous as another man’s; he can be glad both in God’s gifts and God’s works. He is not dead to the happiness of the household: around his hearth he finds happy associations, with- out which life were drear indeed. His children fill his home with glee; his wife is his solace and delight; his friends are his comfort and refreshment. He accepts the comforts which soul ud body can yield him, according as God seeth it wise to afford them unto him; but he will tell you that in all these separately, yea, and in all of them added together, he doth not find such sub- stantial delight as he doth in the person of his Lord Jesus. Brethren, there is a wine which no vineyard on earth ever yielded ; there is a bread which even the cornfields of Egypt could never bring forth. You and I have said, when we have beheld others finding their god in earthly comforts, “ You may262 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. boast in gold and silver and raiment, but I will rejoice in the God of my salvation.” In our esteem, the joys of earth are little hetter than husks for swine, compared with Jesus the heavenly manna. I would rather have one mouthful of Christ’s love, and a sip of his fellowship, than a whole world-full of carnal delights. What is the chaff to the wheat? What is the sparkling paste to the true diamond? What is a dream to the glorious reality ? What is time’s mirth in its best trim compared to our Lord Jesus in his most despised estate? If you know anything of the inner life, you will all of you confess that our highest, purest, and most enduring joys must be the fruit of the tree of life which is in the midst of the Paradise of God. No spring yields such sweet water as that well of God which was digged with the sol- dier’s spear. As for the house of feasting, the joy of harvest, the mirth of marriage, the sports of youth, the recreations of maturer age — they are all as the small dust of the balance com- pared with the joy of Immanuel our best beloved. As the Preacher said, so say we: “TI said of laughter, It is mad; and of. mirth, What doeth it?” “Vanity of vanities; all is vanity.” All earthly bliss is of the earth, earthy; but the comforts of Christ’s presence are like himself, heavenly. We can review our communion with Jesus, and find no regrets of emptiness therein; there are no dregs in this wine, no dead flies in this ointment. The joy of the Lord is solid and enduring. Vanity hath not looked upon it, but discretion and prudence testify that it abideth the test of years, and is in time and in eternity worthy to be called “the only true delight.” “What is the world, with all its store? ’Tis but a bitter sweet; When I attempt to pluck the rose, A pricking thorn I meet. “Here perfect bliss can ne’er be found; The honey’s mixed with gall; *Midst changing scenes and dying friends, Be thou my All in All.” We may plainly see that Christ is very precious to the believer,A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 263 because to him there is nothing good without Christ. Believer, have you not found in the midst of plenty a dire and sore famine if your Lord has been absent? The sun was shining, but Christ had hidden himself, and all the world was black to yOu: OL if was a night of tempest, and there were many stars ; but since the bright and morning star was gone, on that dreary main, where you were tossed with doubts and fears, no other star could shed so much as a ray of light. h, what a howling wilderness is this world without my Lord! If once he groweth angry, and doth, though it be for a moment, hide himself from me, withered are the flowers of my garden; my pleasant fruits decay; the birds suspend their songs, and black night lowers over all my hopes. Nothing can compensate for the company of the Saviour: all earth’s candles cannot make daylight if the Sun of Righteous- ness be gone. On the other hand, when ail earthly comforts have failed you, have you not found quite enough in your Lord? Your very worst times have been your best times. You must almost ery to go back to your bed of sickness, for Jesus made it as a royal throne, whereon you reigned with him. Those dark nights —ah! they were not dark; your bright days, since then, have been darker far. Do you remember when you were poor? Oh, how near Christ was to you, and how rich he made you! You were despised and rejected of men, and no man gave you a good word. Ah! sweet was his fellowship then ; and how delightful to hear him say, “ Fear thou not, for I am with thee; be not dismayed, for Tam thy God”! As afflictions abound, even so do consola- tions abound by Christ Jesus. The devil, like Nebuchadnezzar, heated the furnace seven times hotter ; but who would have it less furiously blazing? No wise believer; for, the more terrible the heat, the greater the glory in the fact that we were made to tread those glowing coals, and not a hair of our head was singed, nor so much as the smell of fire passed upon us, because the Son of God walked those glowing coals in our company. Yes, we can look with resignation upon penury, disease, and even death ;264 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. for if all comforts be taken from us, we should still be blest, so long as we enjoy the presence of the Lord our Saviour. Nor should I be straining the truth if I say that the Christian would sooner give up anything than forsake his Master. I have known some who have been afraid to look that text in the face which saith, ‘“ He that loveth son or daughter more than me is not worthy of me,” or that, “ Except a man hate (or love less) his father and mother, and wife and children, he cannot be my disciple.” Yet I have found that those have frequently proved to be the most sincere lovers of Jesus who have been most afraid that he had not the best place in their hearts. Perhaps the best way is not to sit down calmly to weigh our love, — for it is not a thing to be measured with cool judgment, — but put your love to some practical test. Now, if it came to this, that you must deny Christ or give up the dearest thing you have, would you delib- erate? The Lord knoweth I speak what I feel in my own soul, — when it comes to that, I could not hesitate a second. If there were a stake and burning fagots, I might flinch from the fire ; but so mighty is divine love, that it would doubtless drive me to the flames sooner than let me leave Jesus. But if it comes to this: “ Wilt thou lose thine eyes or give up Christ?” I would cheerfully be blind. Or if it were asked, “ Wilt. thou have thy right arm withered from its socket or give up Christ?” Ay; let both arms go: let them both drop from the shoulder-blades. Or if it should be, “ Wilt thou be from this day dumb, and never speak before the multitude?” Oh! better tobe dumb than lose Him. Indeed, when I talk of this it seems to be an insult to my Master to put hands and eyes and tongue in comparison with him. ** Nor to my eyes is light so dear, Nor friendship half so sweet.” If you compare life itself with Jesus, it is not to be named in the same day. If it should be said, “Will you live without Christ. or die with Christ?” you could not deliberate, for to die with Christ is to live with Christ forever; but to live without Christ is to die the second death, the terrible death of the soul’sA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 265 eternal perdition. No; there is no choice there. I think we could go further, dear friends, and say, not only could we give up everything, but I think, when love is fervent, and the flesh is kept under, we could suffer anything with Christ. I met, in one of Samuel Rutherford’s letters, an extraordinary expression, where he speaks of the coals of divine wrath all falling upon the liead of Christ, so that not one might fall upon his people. ‘And yet,” saith he, “if one of those coals should drop from his head upon mine, and did utterly consume me, yet if I felt it was a part of the coals that fell on him, and I was bearing at for his sake, and in communion with him, I would choose it for my heaven.” That is a strong thing to say, that to suffer with Christ would be his heaven, if he assuredly knew that it was for and with Christ that he was suffering. Oh! there fod s indeed a heavenliness about suffering for Jesus. is cross hath such a majesty and mystery of delight in it, that, the more heavy it becometh, the more lightly doth it sit upon the believer’s shoulders. One thing I know proveth, beloved, that you esteem Christ to be very precious; namely, that you want others to know him too. Do you not feel a pining in your souls till others’ hearts be filled with the love of Christ? My eyes could weep themselves | out of their sockets for some of you who are ignorant of my Mas- ter’s leve. Poor souls! ye are sitting outside the feast when the door is wide open, and the king himself is within. Ye choose to be out in the highways and under the hedges sooner than come to this wedding feast, where the oxen and fatlings are killed, and all things are ready. Oh! did you know dim, did you know him, you would never be able to live without him. If your eyes had ever seen him once, or if your heart had ever known the charm of his presence, you would think it to be a hell to be for a moment without Christ. O poor blind eyes which cannot see him, and deaf ears which cannot hear him, and hard, stony hearts which cannot melt before him, and _hell-besotted souls which cannot appreciate the majesty of his love, God help you! God help you! and bring you yet to know and rejoice in 639 ae266 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. -him. The more your love grows, beloved, the more insatiable will be your desire that others should love him, till it will come to this, that you will be, like Paul, “in labors more abundant,” spending and being spent that you may bring the rest of Christ’s elect body into union with their glorious head. II. But, secondly, THE SOUL CLINGETH TO CHRIST, AND SHE HATH GOOD REASON FOR SO DOING, for her own words are, “A bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” We will take the myrrh first, and then consider the bundle next. 1. Jesus Christ is like myrrh. Myrrh may be well the type of Christ for its prectousness. It was an exceedingly expensive drug. We know that Jacob sent some of it down into Egypt, as being one of the choice products of the land. It is always spoken of in Scripture as being a rich, rare, and costly substance. But no myrrh could ever compare with him ; for Jesus Christ is so precious, that if heaven and earth were put together they could not buy another Saviour. When God gave to the world his Son, he gave the best that heaven had. Take Christ out of heaven, and there is nothing for God to give. Christ was God’s all; for is it not written, ‘In him dwelleth all the fulness of the Godhead bodily”? O precious gift of the whole of deity in the person of Christ! How inestimably precious is that body of his which he took of the substance of the virgin! Well might angels herald the coming of this immaculate Saviour, well might they watch over his holy life; for he is precious in his birth, and precious in all his actions. ow precious is he, dear friends, as myrrh in the offering of his great atonement! What a costly sacrifice was that! At what a price were ye re- deemed! Not with silver and gold, but with the precious blood of Christ. How precious is he, too, in his resurrection! He jus- tifies all his people at one stroke; rising from the dead, that glorious Sun scatters all the nights of all his people by one rising. How precious is he in his ascension, as he leads captivity cap- tive, and scattereth gifts among men! And how precious to-day in those incessant pleadings of his through which the mercies ofA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 267 God come down like the angels upon Jacob’s ladder to our needy souls! Yes, he is to the believer, in every aspect, like myrrh for rarity and excellence. Myrrh, again, was pleasant. It was a pleasant thing to be in a chamber perfumed with myrrh. Through the nostrils myrrh conveys delight to the human mind ; but Christ gives delight to his people, not through one channel, but through every avenue. It is true that all his garments smell of myrrh and aloes and cas- sia; but he hath not spiritual smell alone ; the taste shall be grat- ified too; for we eat his flesh and_drink his blood. Nay, our feeling is ravished when his left hand is under us and his right hand doth embrace us. As for his voice, it is most sweet, and our soul’s ear is charmed with its melody. Let God give him to our sight, and what can our eyes want more? Yea, he is altogether lovely. Thus every gate of the soul hath commerce with Christ Jesus in the richest and rarest commodities. There is no way by which a human spirit can have communion with Jesus which doth not yield unto that spirit fresh and varied delights.. O, beloved, we cannot compare him merely to myrrh. He is everything which is good to look upon, or to taste, or to handle, or to smell, all put together in one,— the quintessence of all delights. As all the rivers run into the sea, so all delights centre into Christ. The sea is not full, but Jesus is full to the very brim. Moreover, myrrh is perfuming. It is used to give a sweet smell to other things. It was mingled with the sacrifice, so that it was not only the smoke of the fat of kidneys of rams, and the flesh of fat beasts, but there was a sweet fragrance of myrrh, which went up with the sacrifice to heaven. And surely, be- loved, Jesus Christ is very perfuming to his people. Does not he perfume their prayers, so that the Lord smelleth a sweet savor? Doth he not perfume their songs, so that they become like vials full of odor sweet ? Doth he not perfume our minis- try ? for is it not written, “ He causeth us to triumph in Christ, and maketh manifest the savor of his knowledge by us in every place? For we are unto God a sweet savour of Christ, in them268 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. ee that are saved, and in them that perish.” Our persons are per- . famed with Christ. Whence get we our spikenard, but from i him? Whither shall we go to gather camphor, which shall make our persons and presence acceptable before God, but to him? ‘For we are accepted in the beloved.” “Ye are complete in him ” — “perfect in Christ Jesus” — “for he hath made us kings and priests unto our God, and we shall reign for ever and ever” Myrrh has preserving qualities. The Egyptians used it in embalming the dead; and we find Nicodemus and the holy wo- nen bringing myrrh and aloes in which to wrap the dead body of the Saviour. It was used to prevent corruption. What is there which can preserve the soul but Christ Jesus? What is the myrrh which keeps our.works, which in themselves are dead and corrupt and rotten — what, I say, keeps them from becom- ing a foul stench in the nostrils of God, but that Christ is in them? What we have done out of love to Christ, what we have offered through his mediation, what has been perfumed by faith in his person, becomes acceptable. God looketh upon anything we say, or anything we do, and if he seeth Christ in it, he ac- cepteth it; but if there be no Christ, he putteth it away asa foul thing. See to it then, beloved, that you never pray a prayer which is not sweetened with Christ. I would never preach a sermon — the Lord forgive me if I do !— which is not fall to overflowing with my Master. I know one who said I was always on the old string, and he would come and hear me no more; but if I preached a sermon without Christ in it he would eome. Ah! he will never come while this tongue moves ; for a sermon without Christ in it, a Christless sermon; a brook without water; a cloud without rain; a well which mocks the traveller; a tree twice dead, plucked up by the root; a sky without a sun ; a night without a star ; — it were a realm of death ) —a place of mourning for angels and laughter for devils. O Christian, we must have Christ! Do see to it that every day when you wake you give a fresh savor of Christ upon you by contemplating his person. Live all the day, trying as much asA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 269 eth in you to season your hearts with him, and then at night lie down with him upon your tongue. It is said of Samuel Rutherford, that he often did fall asleep talking about Christ, and was often heard in his dreams saying sweet things about his Saviour. There is nothing which can preserve us, and keep us from sin, and make our works holy and pure, like this “ bun- dle of myrrh.” Myrrh, again, was used as a disinfectant. When the fever is abroad, we know people who wear little bags of camphor about their necks. They may be very good; I do not know. But the Orientals believed that, in times of pest and plague, a little bag of myrrh worn between the breasts would be of essential service to whoever might carry it. And there doubtless is some power in myrrh to preserve from infectious disease. Well, brethren, certain I am it is so with Christ. You have to go into the world, which is like a great lazar-house ; but if you carry Christ with you, you will never catch the world’s disease. A man may be worth never so much money — he will never get worldly if he keepeth Christ on his heart. A man may have to tug and toil for his livelihood, and be very poor — he will never be discontented and murmuring if he lives close to Christ. Oh you who have to handle the world, see to it that you handle the Master more than the world. Some of you have to work with drunken and swearing men; others are cast into the midst of frivolities; oh, take my Master with you! and sin’s plagues can have no influence upon your moral nature. But myrrh was believed by the ancient physicians to do more than this; it was a cure: it did not merely prevent, but it healed. I do not know how many diseases are said to be healed by the use of myrrh, nor do I altogether suppose that these Oriental physicians spoke from facts, for they were too much given to ascribe qualities to drugs which those drugs did not possess ; however, even modern physicians believe myrrh to have many valuable medical properties. Certain is it that your Christ is the best medicine for the soul. His name is Jehovah Rophi — “ I am the Lord that healeth them.” When we see Luke called 20*270 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. > we almost grudge him the name. I “the beloved physician,’ will take it from him and give it to my Master, for he deserves it far more than Luke. The beloved physician! He touched the leper, and he was made whole. He did but look upon : those who were lame, and they leaped as a hart. His voice startled the silence of Hades, and brought back the soul to the body. What cannot Christ do? He can heal anything. You who are sick this morning — sick with doubts and fears; you who are sick with temptation ; you who struggle with an angry temper, or with the death-like sleep of sloth, — get Christ and you are healed. Here all things meet, and in all these things we may say, “ A bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” I have not done yet; for myrrh was used in the East as a beautifier. We read of Esther, that, before she was introduced to Ahasuerus, she and the virgins were bidden to prepare them- selves; and, among other things, they used myrrh. The belief of Oriental women was, that it removed wrinkles and stains from the face, and they used it constantly for the perfecting of their ‘ charms. I do not know how that may be, but I know that noth- ing makes the believer so beautiful as being with Christ. He is beautiful in the eyes of God, of holy angels, and of his fellow- men. I know some Christians whom it is a great mercy to speak to: if they come into your cottage, they leave behind them tokens of remembrance in the choice words they utter. ’ To get them into the church is a thousand mercies; and if they join the Sunday-school, of what value they are! Let me tell you that the best gauge of a Christian’s usefulness will be found in the degree in which he has been with Jesus and learned of him. Do not tell me it is the scholar, do not say to me it is the man of eloquence, do not say it is the man of substance, — well we would have all these consecrate what they have to Christ, — but it is the man of God who is the strong man; it is the man who has been with Jesus who is the pillar of the church and a | light to the world. O brethren, may the beauty of the Lord | | be upon us through being much with Christ ! And I must not close this point without saying that myrrhA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 271 might well be used as an emblem of our Lord from ‘és connection with sacrifice. It was one of the precious drugs used in making the holy oul with which the priests were anointed, and the frank- incense which burned perpetually before God. It is this, the sacrificial character of Christ, which is at the root and bottom of all that Christ is most precious to his people. O Lamb of God, our sacrifice, we must remember thee ! II. Now there has been enough, surely, said about the myrrh. Have patience while we just notice that he is called a bundle of myrrh, or, as some translate it, a bag of myrrh, or a box of myrrh. There were three sorts of myrrh: there was the myrrh in sprigs, which, being burnt, made a sweet smell; then there was myrrh, a dried spice ; and then, thirdly, there was myrrh, a flow- ing oil. We do not know to which there is reference here. But why is it said, “a bundle of myrrh?” First, for the plenty of it. He is not a drop of it, —he is a casket full. He is not a sprig or flower of it, but a whole bundle full. There is enough in Christ for my necessities. There is more in Christ than I shall ever know — perhaps more than I shall understand, even in heaven. A bundle, again, for variety ; for there is in Christ not only the one thing needful, but “ye are complete in him.” There is everything needful. Take Christ in his different characters, and you will see a marvellous variety, — prophet, priest, king, husband, friend, shepherd. Take him in his life, death, resur- rection, ascension, second advent; take him in his virtue, gentle- ness, courage, self-denial, love, faithfulness, truth, righteousness — everywhere it is a bundle. Some of God’s judgments are manifold, but alJ God’s mercies are manifold ; and Christ, being the sum of God’s mercies, hath in fold upon fold of goodness. He is “a bundle of myrrh” for variety. He is a bundle of myrrh, again, for preservation, — not loose myrrh to be dropped on the floor or trodden on, but myrrh tied up, as though God bound up all virtues and excellencies in his ee i rR RE At et nc i& 272 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. Son; not myrrh spilt on the ground, but myzrh in a box, — myrrh kept in a casket. Such is Christ. The virtue and excel- lence which goeth out of Christ is quite as strong to-day as in the day when-the woman touched the hem of his garment and was healed. “ Able to save unto the uttermost them that come unto God through him,” is he still unto this hour. A bundle of myrrh, again, to show how diligently we should take care of tt. We must bind him up; we must keep our thoughts of him and knowledge of him as under lock and key, lest the devil should steal anything from us. We must trea- sure up his words, prize his ordinances, obey his precepts ; tie him up, and keep him ever with us as a precious bundle of myrrh. And yet again, a bundle of myrrh for speciality, as if he were not common myrrh for everybody. No, no, no; there is distin- guishing, discriminating grace, — a bundle tied up for his people, and labelled with their names, from before the foundation of the world. No doubt there is an allusion here to the scent-bottle used in every land. Jesus Christ is a bottle of myrrh, and he doth not give forth his smell to everybody, but to those who know how to draw forth the stopper — who understand how to get into communion with him, to have close dealings with him. He is not myrrh for all who are in the house, but for those who know how to put the bottle to their nostrils and receive the sweet perfume. O blessed people, whom the Lord hath admitted into his secrets! O choice and happy people, who are thus made to say, “ A bottle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” But I am afraid I tire you, especially those of you who do not know anything about my subject. There are some such here who know no more about what I am talking of than if they were Mahometans. They are listening to a new kind of religion now. The religion of Christ is as high above them as is the path of the eagle above that of the fish, and as much hidden from them as the way of the serpent on the rock from the eye of man. This is a path which the eagle’s eye hath not seen, nor hath the lion’s whelp trodden it; but I trust there are some here who know it.A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 273 Ill. Our third r2mark was to be, that with a sense of Christ’s preciousness is combined A CONSCIOUSNESS OF POS- SESSION. It is “my well-beloved.” My dear hearer, is Christ your well-beloved? A Saviour — that is well; but my Saviour — that is the best of the best. What is the use of bread, if it is 200t mine? I may die of hunger. Of what value is gold, if it be not mine?. I may yet die in a workhouse. I want this pre- ciousness to be mine. “ My well-beloved.” Have you ever laid hold on Christ by the hand of faith ? Will you take him again this morning, brethren in Jesus? I know you will. Would that those who never did take him would take him now, and say, “ My Saviour.” There stands his atonement, freely offered to you; may you have the grace to take it, and say, “My Saviour, my Saviour,” this morning. Has your heart taken him? It is well for us to use both hands; not only the hand of faith, but the hand of love, for this is the true embrace when both arms meet around our beloved. Do you love hin? O souls, do you Love Christ, with an emphasis upon the word? Do not talk to me about a religion which dwells in the head and never gets into the heart. Get rid of it as quickly as you can; it will never bring you to heaven. It is not a believe this and that” merely, but “I love.” Ah! some who have been great fools in doctrine have been very wise in love. We tell our children to learn things “ by heart.” I think you can ; you love Jesus; and if you cannot, you must confess, as I do— “A very wretch, Lord, I should prove, Had I no love to thee; Sooner than not my Saviour love, Oh thay I cease to be.” But that is not the only word. “A bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” That isnot a redundant expression, “ ynto me.” He is not so to many. Ah! my Lord is a root out of a dry ground to multitudes. A three-volume novel suits them better than his Book. They would sooner go to a play or a dance than they would have any fellowship with him. TheyO74 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. can see the beanties upon the cheeks of this Jezebel world, but they cannot see the perfections of my Lord and Master. Well! well! well! Let them say what they will, and let them think as they please ; every creature hath its own joy; but “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me” — unto me — unto me ; and if there is not another who finds him so, yet “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” JI would it were not with others as it is; I would that others did think so also of him: but let them say what they will, they shall not drive me out of my knowledge of this — “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” ‘The infidel saith, “‘ There is no God.” The atheist would altogether laugh me to scorn. They shall say what they will, but “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” Even bishops have been found who will take away a part of his Book, and so rend his garments, and rob him; and there be some who say his religion is out of date, and grace has lost his power; and they go after philosophy and vain conceit, and I know not what ; but “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved wnto me.” They may have no nostril for him, they may have no desire after him; so let it be; but “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” I know there are some who say they have tried him and not found him sweet, and who have turned away from him and gone back to the beggarly elements of the world, because they see nothing in Christ that they should desire him; but “a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.” Ah, Christian! this is what you want —a personal experience, a positive experience ; you want to know for yourself, for there is no religion which is worth a button which is not burnt into you by personal experi- ence; and there is no religion worth @ straw which does not spring from your soul, which does lay not hold upon the very vitals of your spirit. Yes, you must say —I hope you can say as you go down those steps this morning, and enter again to-mor- row into that busy, giddy world — you must say, “ Let the whole world go astray, ‘a bundle of myrrh is my well-beloved unto me.’”A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. 275 IV. Now, the practical point closes it. A SENSE OF POSSES- SION AND A SENSE OF ENJOYMENT WILL ALWAYS LEAD THE CHRISTIAN TO DESIRE CONSTANT FELLOWSHIP. “ Ele?’ tor, rather, “it, shall lie all night betwixt my breasts.” The church does not say, “I will put this bundle of myrrh on my shoulders,” — Christ is no burden to a Christian. She does not say, “I will put this bundle of myrrh on my back,” —the church does not want to have Christ concealed from her face. She desires to have him where she can see him, and near to her heart. The bundle of myrrh shall lie all night upon my heart. The words “all night” are not in the original; I do not know how they got into the translation. He is to be always there, not only all night but all day. It would be always night if he were not there, and it cannot be night when he is there, for — ‘Midst darkest shade, if he appear, My dawning has begun.” He shall always be upon our heart. I think that expression just means these three things: It is an expression of desire, — her desire that she may have the consciousness of Christ’s love continually. Do not you feel the same desire? O Christian ! if thou hast ever been made like the chariots of Aminadab, it will be ill for thee if thou canst be content to be otherwise. If thou hast but once tasted Christ, thou wilt want to feed upon him all day and all night, and as long as thou livest. My desire is that Jesus may abide with me from morn till even, in the world and in the church, when I awake, when I sleep, when I go abroad, and when I come home into the bosom of my family. Is not that your desire that he may be always with you? But, then, it is not only her desire, but it is also her confidence. 3 She seems to say, “ He will be with me thus.” You may have a suspension of visible fellowship with Christ, but Christ never will go away from his people really. He will be all night be- twixt your breasts; he will at all times abide faithful to you. He may close his eyes and hide his face from you, but his heart never can depart from you. He has set you as a seal upon his en TT SrA eee276 A BUNDLE OF MYRRH. heart, and increasingly will make you sensible of it. Recollect there is no suspension of Christ’s union with his people, and no Suspension of those saving influences which always make his people to stand complete in him. Lo conclude: this is also a resolve. She desires, she believes, and she resolves it. Lord, thou shalt be with me; thou shalt be with me always. I appeal to you, brethren, will you not make this resolve in God’s strength this morning to cling close to Christ. Do not go talking, as you go home, about all sorts of nonsense ; do not spend this afternoon in communion with folly and vanity, but throughout this day let your soul keep to Christ, to nothing but Christ. This evening we shall come to his table, to eat bread and drink wine, in remembrance of him; let us try, if we can, that nothing shall make us give up Christ all this day. Have you got him, hold him, and do not let him go till you bring him to your mother’s house, to the chamber of her who bare you. Then there will be the family prayer at night. Oh, seek to keep him till you put your head upon the pillow. And then, on Monday morning some of you have to go to work, and as soon as you get into the workshop or the factory, you say, “ Now I must lose my Master.” No, do not lose him. Hold him fast when your hand plies the hammer, and when your fingers hold the needle still cling to him; in the market or in the exchange, on board ship or in the field, do not let him go. You may have him with you all day. The Mahometan usually wears a piece of the Koran round his neck ; and one, when converted to Christianity, put his New Testa- ment in a little silken bag, and always wore it there. We need not such outward signs, but let us always have the Saviour there ; Jet us hang him about our neck as a charm against all evil; seck his blessed company ; place him as astar upon your breast, to be your honor and joy. | Well, I have done; but I must have a word with the uncon-. verted. ‘There are some who can say, “I will have Christ always on my tongue.” Away with tongue religion! You must have him on your heart. Ah! there are some who say, “ [hopeA BUNDLE OF MYRRH. Dt I shall have Christ on my heart #. all eternity.” You cannot have Christ in eternity if you do not have him in time. If you despise him to-day in this life, he will reject you to-m zrow in the world to come ; and if ke call and you refuse, one day you will call and he refuse. Do not put up with desires m rely, dear friends; some of you have desires, and nothing more. Do not only desire Christ, but get him. Do not stop short wih saying, “T should like to have him in my heart;” give no sle »p to your eyes nor slumber to your eyelids till by humble faith you have taken Christ to be your all in all. May the Lord | less these poor words, for Jesus’ sake. Amen, 24 9SERMON XV. TRE LAMB: THE LIGHT. “AND TH si KG NO NEXD OF THE SUN, NEITHER OF THE MOON, TO SHINE IN IT: FOR raf GLOAY OF GOD DID LIGHTEN IT, AND THE LAMB IS THE LIGHT THEREOR.” -—~ Key. xxi. 28. To the lover of Jesus it is very pleasant to observe how the Lord Jesus Christ has always stood foremost in glory from be- fore the foundation of the world, and will do so as long as eter- nity shall last. If we look back by faith to the time of the cre- ation, we find our Lord with his Father as one brought up with him. “ When there were no depths, I was brought forth ; when there were no fountains abounding with water. While as yet he had not made the earth, nor the fields, nor the highest part of the dust of the world. When he prepared the heavens, I was there : when he set a compass upon the face of the depth: when he established the clouds above : when he strengthened the foun- tains of the deep.” He was that wisdom who was never absent from the Father’s counsels in the great work of creation, whether it be the birth of angels or the making of worlds of men. One of the first events ever recorded in Scripture history is, “ When he bringeth in the first-begotten into the world, he saith, let all the angels of God worship him.” Such words were never spoken of any creature, but only of him who is co-equal and co-eternal with the Father, glorious forever ; the first-born of every crea- ture, the head of the household of God, the express image of his person, and the fulness of his glory. In the earliest periods of which we possess any knowledge, Jesus Christ stood exalted farTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 279 above all principalities and powers, and every name that is named. When human history dawns, and the history of God’s church commences, you still find Christ pre-eminent. All the types of the early church are only to be opened up by him as the key. It would have been nothing to be of the seed of Israel, if it had not been for the promise of the Shiloh that was to come; it would have been im vain that the sacrifices were offered in the wilderness, that the ark abode between the curtains, or that the golden” pot which had the manna was covered with the mercy-seat, if there had not been a real signification of Christ in all these. The religion of the Jew would have been very emptiness if it had not been for Christ, who is the substance of the former shadows. Run on to the period of the prophets, and in all their prophesyings do you not see additional glimpses of the glory of Christ ? When they mount to the greatest heights of eloquence do they not speak of him? Whenever their soul is carried up, as in a chariot of fire, is not the mantle left behind them a word telling of the glory of Jesus? They could never glow with fervent heat, except concerning him. Even when they denounced the judgments of God, they paused between the crashes of God’s thunder to let some drops of mercy fall on man in words of promise concerning him who was to come. It is al- ways Christ from the opening leaf of Genesis to the closing note of Malachi, — Christ, Christ, Christ, and nothing but Christ. It is very delightful, brethren, when we come to such a text as this, to observe that what was in the beginning, is now, and ever shall be, world without end, Amen. In that millennial state of which the text speaks, Jesus Christ is to be the light thereof, and all its glory is to proceed from him; and if the text speaketh con- cerning heaven and the blessedness hereafter, all its light and blessings and glory stream from him: “The Lamb is the light thereof.” If we read the text, and think of its connection with us to-day, we must confess that all our joy and peace flow from the same fountain. Jesus Christ is the Sun of Righteousness to us as well as to the saints above. I shall try, then, — though I am conscious of my feebleness to280 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. handle so great a matter, — I shall try, as best I can, to extol the Lord Jesus, first of all, in the excellence of his glory in the mal- lennial state ; next, in heaven ; and then, thirdly, in the condition of every heavenly-minded man who is on his way to paradise. In all these cases “ the Lamb is the light thereof.” I. First, then, a few words concerning THE MILLENNIAL PERIOD. We are not given to prophesyings in this place. ‘There are some of our brethren who delight much in them. Perhaps it is well that there should be some who should devote their time and thoughts to that portion of God’s Word which abounds in myste- ries; but, for our part, we have been so engaged in seeking to win souls, and in endeavoring to contend with the common errors of the day, that we have scarcely ventured to land upon the rock of Patmos, or to peer into the dark recesses of Daniel and Eze- kiel. Yet this much we have ever learned most clearly — that on this earth, where sin and Satan gained victory over God through the fall of man, Christ is to achieve a complete triumph over all his foes ; not on another battle-field, but on this. The fightis not over. . It commenced by Satan’s attack upon our mother Eve ; and Christ has never left the field from that day until now. The fight has lasted thousands of years ; it grows sterner every day ; it is not over; and it never shall be stayed until the serpent’s head is effectually bruised, and Christ Jesus shall have gotten unto himself a perfect victory. Do not think the Lord will allow Satan to have even so much as one battle to call his own. In the great campaign, when the history shall be written, it shall be said: “'The Lord reigneth ;” all along the line he hath gotten the victory. There shall be victory in every place and spot; and the conquest of Jesus shall be complete and perfect. We believe, then, that in this very earth, where superstition has set up its idols, Jesus Christ shall bé adored. Here, where blas- phemy has defiled human lips, songs of praise shall rise from islands of the sea and from the dwellers among the rocks. In this very country, among those very men who became the toolsTHE LAMB : THE LIGHT. 281 of Satan, and whose dwelling-places were dens of mischief, there shall be found instruments of righteousness, lips to praise God, and oecasions of eternal glory unto the Most High. O Satan! thou mayst boast of what thou hast done, and thou mayst think thy scetre still-secure ; but he cometh, even he who rides upon the white horse of victory ; and when he comes, thou shalt not stand against him, for the two-edged sword which goeth out of his mouth shall drive thee and thy hosts back to the place from whence thou camest. Let us rejoice that Scripture is so clear and so explicit upon this great doctrine of the future triumph of Christ over the whole world! We are not bound to enter into any particulars concerning what form that triumph shallassume. We believe that the Jews will be converted, and that they will be restored to their own land. We believe that Jerusalem will be the central metropolis of Christ’s kingdom; we also believe that all the nations shall walk in the light of the glorious city which shall be built at Je- rusalem. We expect that the glory which shall have its centre there shall spread over the whole world, covering it as with a sea of holiness, happiness, and delight. For this we look with joyful expectation. During that period the Lord himself, by his glorious presence, shall set aside the outward rites of his sanctu- ary. “The city hath no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it.’ Perhaps by sun and moon here are intended those ordinary means of enlightenment which the church now wants. We want the Lord’s Supper to remind us of the body and blood of Christ; but when Christ comes there will be no Lord’s Suppers, for it is written, “ Do this until he come:” but when he comes, then will be the final period of the remembrance- token, because the person of Christ will be in our midst. Neither will you need ministers any longer, any more than men need candles when the sun ariseth. They shall not say one to another, ‘“ Know the Lord: for all shall know him, from the least to the ereatest.” There may be even in that period certain solemn as- semblies and Sabbath-days, but they will not be of the same kind as we have now; for the whole earth will be a temple: every 24* ee eS eaeaeetinidanieeeesemeeaenl ae ae282 THE LAMB : THE LIGHT. day will be a Sabbath ; the avocations of men will all be priestly ; they shall be a nation of priests — distinetly so; and they shall day without night serve God in his temple ; so that everything to which they set their hand shall be a part of the song which shall go up to the Most High. O, blessed day! Would God it had dawned, when these temples should be left, because the whole world should be a temple for God. But whatever may be the splendors of that day, — and truly here is a temptation to let our imagination revel, — however bright may be the walls set with chalcedony and amethyst, however splendid the gates which are of one pearl, whatever may be the magnificence set forth by the “streets of gold,” this we know, that the sum and substance, the light and glory of the whole will be the person of our Lord Jesus Christ ; “for the glory of God did lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.” Now, I want the Christian to meditate over this. In the hightest, holiest, and happiest era that shall ever dawn upon this poor earth, Christ is to be her light. When she puts on her wedding garments, and adorns herself as a bride is adorned with jewels, Christ is to be her glory and her beauty. There shall be no ear-rings in her ears made with other gold than that which cometh from his mine of love; there shall be no crown set upon her brow fashioned by any other hand than his hands of wisdom and of grace. She sits to reign, but it shall be upon Ais throne ; she feeds, but it shall be upon fis bread ; she triumphs, but it shall be because of the might which ever belongs to him who is the Rock of Ages. Come -then, Chris- tian, contemplate for a moment thy beloved Lord. Jesus, in a millennial age, shall be the light and the glory of the city of the New Jerusalem. Observe, then, that Jesus makes the light of the millennium, because his presence will be that which distin- quishes that age from the present. That age is to be akin to paradise. Paradise God first made upon earth, and paradise God will last make. Satan destroyed it; and God will never have defeated his enemy until he has re-established paradise — until once again a new Eden shall bless the eyes of God’s creas tures. Now, the very glory and privilege of Eden I take to beTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 283 not the river which flowed through it with its four branches, nor that it came from the land of Havilah which hath dust of gold; I do not think the glory of Eden lay in its grassy walks, or in the boughs bending with luscious fruit; but its glory lay in this, that the “ Lord God walked in the garden in the cool of the day.” Here was Adam’s highest privilege, that he had com- panionship with the Most High. In those days angels sweetly sang that the tabernacle of God was with man, and that he did dwell amongst them. Brethren, the paradise which is to be regained for us will have this for its essential and distinguishing mark, that the Lord shall dwell amongst us. This is the name by which the city is to be called — Jehovah Shammah, the Lord is there. It is true we have the presence of Christin the chureh now — “ Lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world.” We have the promise of his constant indwelling — “‘ Where two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them.” But still that is vicariously by his Spirit, but soon he is to be personally with us. That very man who once died upon Calvary is to live here. He —that same Jesus — who was taken up from us, shall come in like manner as he was taken up from the gazers of Galilee. Rejoice, rejoice, beloved, that he comes, actually and really comes; and this shall be the joy of that age, that he is among his saints, and dwelleth in them, with them, and talketh and walketh in their midst. The presence of Ohrist it is which will be the means of the peace of the age. In that sense Christ will be the light of it, for heis our peace. Itwill be through his presence that the lion shall eat straw like an ox, that the leopard shall lie down with the kid. It will not be because men have had more enlightenment, and have learned better, through advancing civilization, that they shall beat their swords into ploughshares. It is notorious that the more civilized nations become, the more terrible are their instru- ments of destruction; and when they do go to war, the more bloody and protracted their wars become. I ventureto say that if in a thousand years’ time Christ shall not come, if war’ were to break out, where we now fight for ten or twenty years, we shallre 284 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. have the venomous hatred of one another, and the means of car- rying on a war for acentury. Instead of advancing in peace- falness, I do fear me the world has gone back. We certainly cannot boast now of living in haleyon days of peace. But Christ’s presence shall change the hearts of men. Then, spon- taneously, at sight of the great Prince of Peace, they shall cast away their armor and their weapons of war, and shall learn war no more. In that sense, then, because his presence will be the cause of that happy period, he is the light of it. Again: Christ’s presence is to that period its special imstruc- tion. They shall need no candle, neither light of the sun, nor of themoon. Why? Because Christ’s presence will be sufficiently instructive to the sons of men. When the Lord Jesus Christ comes, superstition will not need an earnest testimony to confute it; it will hide its head. Idolatry will not need the missionary to preach against it; the idols he shall utterly abolish, and shall cast them to the moles and to the bats. Men and women, at the sight of Christ, and at the knowledge that he is reigning glori- ously upon earth, will give up their unbelief. The Jew will recognize the Son of David, and the Gentile will rejoice to wor- ship him who was once slain as the King of the Jews. The presence of Christ shall do more for the enlightenment of his church than the teaching of all her officers and ministers in all ages. She shall then in the sight of her Lord come to a fulness of knowledge, and have a perfect understanding of God’s Word. : Once again: Christ will be the light of that period 7m the sense of being tts glory. Oh! it is the glory of the Christian now to think that Christ reigns in heaven. In this we boast, in every season of depression and of downcasting, that he is exalted and sits at the right hand of the Father. But the glory of that age shall be that Christ is come; that he sits upon the throne of David, as well as upon the throne of God; that his enemies bow before him and lick the dust. Think, my brethren, of the splendor of that time, when from every nation and land they shall bring him tribute; when praises shall ascend from every land; when theTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 285 streets of that city shall be thronged every day with adoring worshippers ; when he shall ride forth conquering and to conquer, and his saints shall follow him upon white horses! We some- times have high days and holidays, when kings and princes go abroad, and the streets are full, and people crowd even to the chimney-pots to see them as they ride along; but what shall it be to see King Jesus crowned with the crown wherewith his mother crowned him in the day of his espousals!] What a con- trast between the cavalcade winding its way along the streets of Jerusalem, along the via dolorosa up to the mount of execu- tion! — what a contrast, I say! Then women followed him and wept, but now men will follow him and shout for joy. Then he carried his cross, but now he shall ride in state; then his ene- mies mocked him, and gloated their eyes with his sufferings ; but then his enemies shall be put to confusion, and covered with shame, and upon himself shall his crown flourish; then it was the hour of darkness, and the time of the prince of the pit; but now it shall be the day of light and the victory of Emmanuel, and the sounding of his praise both in earth and heaven. Con- template this thought; and though I speak of it so feebly, yet it may ravish your hearts with transport that Christ is the Sun of that long-expected, that blessed day; that Christ shall be the highest mountain of all the hills of joy, the widest river of all the streams of delight; that whatever there may be of magnificence and of triumph, Christ shall be the centre and soul of it all. Oh to be present, and to see him in his own light, the King of kings and Lord of lords! IE. And now we will turn our thoughts another way from the millennial period to THE STATE OF THE GLORIFIED IN HEAVEN irseLr. “The city hath no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it.” The inhabitants of the better world are independent of creature- comforts. Let us think that over for aminute. We have no reason to believe that they daily pray, “Give us this day our daily bread.” Their bodies shall dwell in perpetual youth. They286 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. shall have no need of raiment; their white robes shall never wear out, neither shall they ever be defiled. Having food and raiment on earth, therewith we are content ; but in heaven “they toil not, neither do they spin; and yet I say unto you, that even Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of these ;” yet the fields yield them neither flax nor any other ma- terial for clothing, neither do the acres of heaven yield them bread. They are satisfied by leaning upon God, needing not the creature for support. They need no medicine to heal their disease, “for the inhabitant shall not say, I am sick.” They need no sleep to recruit their fatigue; and although sleep is sweet and balmy, — God’s own medicine, — yet they rest not day nor night, but unweariedly praise him in his temple. They need no social ties in heaven. We need here the asso- ciatfons of friendship and of family love ; but they are neither married nor are given in marriage there. Whatever comfort they may derive from association with their fellows is something extra and beyond; they do not need any: their God is enough. They shall need no teachers there. They shall doubtless com- mune with one another concerning the things of God, and tell to one another the strange things which the Lord hath wrought for them; but they shall not need this by way of instruction : they shall be taught of the Lord, for in heaven “the glory of God doth lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.” There is an utter independence in heaven, then, of all the creatures. No sun and no moon are wanted; nay, no creatures whatever. Here we lean upon the friendly arm; but there they lean upon their Beloved, and upon him alone. Here we must have the help of our companions; but there they find all they want in Christ alone. Here we look to the meat which perisheth, and to the raiment which decays before the moth; but there they find everything in God. We have to use the bucket to get water from the well; but there they drink from the well-head, and pul their lips down to the living water. Here the angels bring us blessings; but we shall want no messenger from heaven then They shall need no Gabriels there to bring their love-notes fromTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 287 God, for there they shall see him face to face. Oh! what a blessed time shall that be, when we shall have mounted above every second cause, and shall hang upon the bare arm of God! What a glorious hour when God and not his creatures, God and not his works, but God himself, Christ himself, shall be our daily joy! ** Plunged in the Godhead’s deepest sea, And lost in His immensity ’’— Our souls shall then have attained the perfection of bliss. While in heaven it is clear that the glorified are quite inde- pendent of creature aid, do not forget that they are entirely de- pendent for their joy upon Jesus Christ. He is their sole spiritual light. They have nothing else in heaven to give them perfect satisfaction but himself. ‘The language here used, “’The Lamb is the light thereof,’ may be read in two or three ways. By your patience, let us so read it. In heaven Jesus is the light in the sense of joy, for light is ever in Scripture the emblem of joy. Darkness betokens sor- row, but the rising of the sun indicates the return of holy joy. Christ is the joy of heaven. Do they rejoice in golden harps, in palm branches and white robes? They may do so, but they only rejoice in these things as love-gifts from him. Their joy is compounded of this: “Jesus chose us, Jesus loved us, Jesus bought us, Jesus washed us, Jesus robed us, Jesus kepf us, Jesus glorified us; here we are, entirely through the Lord Jesus —through him alone.” Each one of these thoughts shall be to them like a cluster from the vines of Eshcol. Why, methinks there is an eternal source of joy in that one thought, “ Jesus bought me with his blood.” Oh, to sit on the mountains of heaven and look across to the lowly hill of Calvary, and see the Saviour bleed! What emotions of joy shall stir the depths of our soul when we reflect that there upon the bloody tree he counted not his life dear unto him that he might redeem us unto God! ** Calvary’s summit shall I trace, View the heights and depths of grace, Count the purple drops, and say, ‘Thus my sins were washed away.’ ”288 THE LAMB : THE LIGHT. In glory they think of the character and person of Jesus, and these are wells of delight to them. Thus they muse: Jesus is eternal God; his enemies reviled him, but still he is God. Jesus became the virgin’s child; Jesus lived a life of holiness, and Jesus died; but see what triumph springs from his condescen- sion and his shame! He rises, he ascends, and leads captivity captive; he scatters gifts amongst men; he reigns over earth and hell and heaven, King of kings, and Lord of lords. ‘The government shall be upon his shoulder: and his name shall be called Wonderful, The Counsellor, The mighty God, The ever- lasting Father, The Prince of Peace.” When I have listened to Handel’s music in “ The Messiah,” where that great musician wakes every instrument to praise the name of Jesus, I have felt ready to die with excess of delight that such music should ever have been composed by mortal man to the honor of our grea ‘Messiah ; but what will be the music of celestial choirs? How would such hearts as ours burst, and such souls as ours leap out of their bodies, if they could but know while here such joys as celestials know above! But, beloved, our faculties shall be strengthened, our capacities shall be enlarged, our whole being shall be expanded; and thus we shall be able to bear the full swell of seraphic music, and join in it without fainting from de- light, while they sing of the glory of the Son of Man — the Son of God. Christ is the light of heaven, then, because he is the substance of its joy. Light may be viewed in another sense. Light is the cause of beauty. ‘That is obvious to you all. Take the light away, and there is no beauty anywhere. The fairest woman charms the eye no more than a heap of ashes when the sun has departed. Your garden may be gay with many-colored flowers, but when the sun goeth down you cannot know them from the grass which norders them. You look upon the trees, all fair with the ver- dure of summer; but when the sun goes down they are all hung in black. Without light no radiance flashes from the sapphire, no peaceful ray proceedeth from the pearl. ‘There is naught of beauty left when light is gone. Light is the mother of beauty.THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 289 in such sense the Lord God Almighty and the Lamb are the light of heaven; that is to say, all the beauty of the saints above comes from God incarnate. Their excellence, their joy, their triumph, their glory, their ecstatic bliss, all spring from him, As planets, they reflect the light of the Sun of Righteousness. They live as beams proceeding from the central orb — as streams leaping from the eternal fountain. If he withdrew, they must die; if his glory were veiled, their glory must expire. Think of this, Christian, and I am sure you will be reminded how true this is beneath the sky, as well as above, — that if light be the mother of beauty, Christ is the light. There is nothing good, nor comely, nor gracious about any one of us, except as we get it from Christ, and from Christ Jesus alone. “The Lamb is the light thereof.” Another meaning of light, in Scripture, is knowledge. Igno- rance is darkness. Now, in heaven they need no candle, neither light of the sun, bécause they receive light enough from Christ, — Christ being the fountain of all they know. I think it is Dr. Dick who speaks about the enjoyments of heaven consisting very likely in going from star to star and viewing the works of God in different portions of his universe, admiring the anatomy of living creatures, studying geology, ferrying across the waving of ether, and voyaging from world to world. I do not believe in such a heaven for a moment. I do not conceive it a worthy employment for immortal spirits ; and if there were nothing else to make me think so, the text would be enough: “ And the city had no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it.” There is no need of the works of God to give instruction to its inhabitants, “for the glory of God did lighten it” The glory, not of God’s works, but of God’s Son, is their glorious light. “ The spacious earth and spreading flood Proclaim the wise and powerful God; And thy rich glories from afar Sparkle in every relling star. “ But in his looks a glory stands, The noblest labor of thy hands: 20THE LAMB : THE LIGHT. The pleasing lustre of his eyes Outshines the wonders of the skies.” They need no light of the sun and moon wher? Jesus is. How- ever well the sun and moon may tell of God, we shall not want them from day to day to send forth their line throughout all the earth, and their word unto the end of the world, for the glory of Christ will teach us all we wish to learn; and beholding the unveiled glory of God will be better far than prying into the works of nature, even though we had an angel’s power of discov- ery. We shall know more of Christ in five minutes, I ween, when we get to heaven, than we shall know in all our years on earth. Dr. Owen was a master of theology; but the smallest child who goes to heaven from a Sunday-school knows more of Christ after being in heaven five minutes, than Dr. Owen did. John Calvin searched very deep, and Augustine seemed to come to the very door of the great secret; but Augustine and Calvin would be but children on the first form there —I mean if they knew no more than on earth. h! what manifestations of God there will be! Dark dealings of providence, which you never understood before, will then be seen without the light of a candle or of the sun. Many doctrines puzzled you, and you could not find the clue to the labyrinth of mystery ; but there all will be simple and plain, so that the wayfaring man may run and understand it. You have had many experiences and toss- ings to and fro, and you have felt your ignorance, your corrup- tion and weakness; but there you shall see to the very bottom of human nature : you shail understand the virulence of man’s depravity, and the heights of God’s sovereignty, the marvels of a electing love, and the magnificence of his divine power, by ‘vaich he has made us to be partakers of the divine nature. ““ There you shall see and hear and know All you desired or wished below, And every power find sweet employ In that eternal world of joy.” ind this knowledge, I say, shall not come from any inferiorTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 291 agent, but from the Lord God, who shall be your glory, and from Jesus Christ himself, who shall teach you all truth. I must not dwell long on this point, except to say this one thing, —that hght also means manifestation. Every one that doeth evil hateth the light, neither cometh to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved. But he that doeth truth cometh to the light, that his deeds may be made manifest, that they are wrought in God.” Light manifests. In this world it doth not yet appear how great we must be made. God’s people are a hidden people —their life is hid with Christ in God. They possess God’s secret, and that secret other men cannot discover. hrist in heaven is the great revealer of God’s mind; and when he gets his people there, he will touch them with the wand of his own love, and change them into the image of his manifested glory. They were poor and wretched — but, what a transforma- tion! ‘Their rags drop off, and they are acknowledged as princes. They were stained with sin and infirmity — but one touch of his finger, and they are bright as the sun and clear as crystal; trans- formed even as he was upon Mount Tabor ; whiter than any fuller can make them. They were ignorant and weak on earth, but when He shall teach them they shall know even as they are known. They were buried in dishonor, but they are raised ir glory; they were sown in the grave in weakness, but they are raised in power; they were carried away by the hands of re- morseless death, but they arise to immortality and life. Oh! what a manifestation! Light is sown for the righteous, and Christ is the sacred rain that brings the harvest above ground. The righteous are always pearls ; but they are hidden, as it were, in the oyster now, and Christ brings them forth. They were always diamonds ; they were far away in the Golconda of sin; but Christ hath fetched them up from the deep mines. They were alway stars, but they were hidden behind the clouds. Christ, like a swift wind, hath blown the clouds away, and now they shine like stars in the firmament for ever and ever. In this sensé Christ is the light of heaven, because it is through him that the true and real character of all the saints has been manifested.292 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. Come, my soul, take wing a moment —it is not far for thee to fly. Mount thee, and walk the golden streets, and as thou valkest thou shalt see nothing but Jesus glorified. Come up to the throne, and thou shalt see Christ on it. Sit down and listen to the song, Christ is the theme ; go to the banquet, Christ is the meat; mingle with the dancers, Christ is their joy ; make thou one in their great assemblies, and Christ is the God they wor- ship :— ““< Worthy the Lamb that died,’ they cry, ‘To be exalted thus: ’ ‘Worthy the Lamb,’ our lips reply, ‘For he was slain for us.’ ” IU. Let us turn to our last thought; and here I hope we can speak experimentally, whereas on the other two points we could only speak by faith in the promise of God. Tue HEAVENLY MAN’S STATE MAY BE SET FORTH IN THESE WORDS. First, then, even on earth the heavenly man’s joy does not de- pend upon the creature. Brethren, ina certain sense we can say to-day that “the city hath no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it.” We love and prize the happy brightness which the sun scatters upot us. As for the moon, who does not admire the fair moonlight when the waves are silvered, and. silent nature wears the plumage of the dove. But we do not need the sun or the moon; we can do without them; for the Sun of Righteousness has risen with healing beneath his wings. ‘There are brothers and sisters here this morning who are very happy, and yet it is long since they saw the sun. Shut up in perpetual night, through blindness, they need not the light of the sun, nor of the moon, for the Lord God is their glory — Christ is their light. If our eyes should be put out, we could say, “ Farewell, sweet light; farewell, bright sun and moon; we prize ye well, but we can do without ye, — Christ Jesus is to us as the light of seven days.” 5 As we can do without these two most eminent creatures, so we can be happy without other earthly blessings. Our dear friends are very precious to us— we love our wife and children, ourTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 293 parents and our friends, but we do not need them. May God spare them to us! But if they were taken, if does not come to a matter of absolute need, for you know, beloved, there is many a Christian who has been bereft of all ; and he thought, as the props were taken away one after another, that he should die of veiy grief. But he did not die; his faith surmounted every wave, and he still rejoices in his God. I know that at the thought of those dear ones who are taken from you the sluices of your grief are drawn up; but still I hope you will not be so false to Christ as to deny what I now say, — that his presence can make amends for all losses; that the smilings of his face will make a paradise so sweet that no sorrow or sighing shall be heard in it. ** Thee at all times will I bless; Having thee, I all possess; How can I bereaved be, Since I cannot part with thee?” It is a very happy thing to be placed in circumstances where one knows no lack of bread, —to have a house, a comfortable home, and sufficiency for our family is very pleasant. But O, dear friends, if it comes to actual need, the Christian does not want this ; he needs no sun nor moon even here. Look at the chosen sons of poverty — they toil from morning to night, and never get a single inch beyond; just living from hand to mouth; but they are happy; ah! some of them infinitely happier than the rich man with all his sumptuous faring, and the fine linen with which he wraps himself. Why, there have been men, reduced all but to beggary, who have rejoiced far more in their poverty than others in their wealth. We have seen some of God’s saints in the work- house, or lingering in a dark, ill-furnished almsroom, and we have heard them speak as joyously about God and their state as if they were dwelling in mansions or palaces. Yes, many a paor child of God has learned to sing — ‘‘T would not change my blessed estate For all the world calls good or great; And while my faith can keep her hold, I envy not the sinner’s gold.”’ 20*294 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. For “this city hath no need of the sun, nor of the moon, to shine in it, for the glory of God doth lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.” Health, too, — who can prize it enough ? When stretched upon the bed of sickness, then we begin to know how priceless a boon was a sound body ; but ah ! the Christian, though he loves health, can do without it. I have heard of Christians who have been blind, and who have been bed-ridden and have not stirred from their bed for many years, who could scarcely lift their hands through paralysis, and who never had stood upon their feet for years through some stroke of God’s hand, yet have they delighted themselves in the Lord. They have laid there ill-nursed, ill-cared for, — simply living to illustrate to what de- gree a mortal man may become a mass of suffering and a prodigy of grief; and yet, as I have sometimes stood by such bedsides, I have heard more rapturous ‘expressions concerning present joy and future prospects than from God’s strongest saints in their healthiest hours. The dying girl, when consumption has paled her cheek and taken the flesh from off her poor aching bones, has nevertheless appeared in a sacred majesty of might, which showed me that she needed no moon nor sun fo lighten her, no health nor strength to give her spirits, for the presence of Christ made her conqueror in the extremity of weakness, and victorious in the grim presence of Death itself. The Christian then, dear friends, leans upon the arm of God; he has pressed through the crowd of creatures; he has bidden them all retire that he might live nearer to his all-sufficient Lord; and if, when he has reached his Lord, the creatures turn their backs and go away, he saith, “There, ye may all go; I have him now; I embrace him now ; he hath kissed me with the kisses of his lips; ye may spit on me, and ye will; now te has spoken softly to me, ye may curse me if ye please ; now that he has told me I am his and he is mine, even my father and mother may forsake me, for the Lord hath taken me up.” Yes, the heavenly man, even before he gets to heaven, hath no need of the sun nor of the moon, for the glory of God doth lighten him. We finish by observing, that such a man, however, has greatTHE LAMB: THE LIGHT. 295 need of Christ —he cannot get on without Christ. O beloved! if the sun were struck from the spheres, what a poor, dark, dreary world this would be! We should go groping about it, longing for the grave; but that would be nothing compared with our misery if Christ were taken away. O Christian man! what would you do without a Saviour? We should be of all men the most miserable—we who have once known him. Ah! you who do not know Christ, you can get on pretty well without him ; like a poor slave who has never known liberty, and rests content in bondage. ‘The bird in its cage, which never did fly over the fields, which has been born in the cage, can be pretty easy ; but atter we have once stretched our wings, and once know what liberty means, we cannot be shut out from our Lord. As the dove mourns itself to death when its mate is taken away, so should we if Christ were gone. We can do without light, with- out friendship, without life; but we cannot live without our Sa- viour. Oh! to be without Christ! My soul, what wouldst thou do in the world without him, in the midst of its temptations and its cares? What wouldst thou do in the morning without him, when thou wakest up and lookest forward to the day’s battle? What wouldst thou do if he did not put his hand upon thee, and say, “ Fear not, I am with thee”? And what wouldst thou do at night, when thou comest home jaded and weary, if there were no prayer, no door of access between thee and Christ? What should we do without Christ in our trials, our sicknesses ? What should we do when we come to die, with no one to make our dying- bed feel soft as downy pillows are? Oh! if the infidel’s laugh has truth in it, it may well ring bitterly in our ears, for it were a bitter truth to us. No Christ! Then to die indeed is dread- ful. To have such high hopes, and to have them all blasted; such high, loud boastings, and to have our mouths stopped for- ever! But, beloved, we need not suppose such a thing; tor we know that our Redeemer liveth, and we know that he never for- sakes the work of his own hand. Married as he is to our souls, he will never sue out a divorce against any one of his dear people ; but he will hold, and keep, and bless us till we die; and we on296 THE LAMB: THE LIGHT. our part will confess of our spiritual life that the Lamb is the light thereof. Of every day and every night, of every joy and every sorrow, the Lamb has been until now our light, and shall be till we die. If this be so, how dark is the case of those who do not know the Lamb! In what misery and ignorance do you grope who do not know the Saviour! Would you know Christ, would you have the happiness of resting upon his bosom? Trust him, then; for whosoever trusteth him is saved. To trust Christ is that saving faith which brings the soul out of condemnation. “ He that believeth on him is not condemned.” ‘Trust thou, guilty as thou art, trust thou to his atonement, and it shall wash thee; trust to his power, it shall prevail for thee ; trust to his wisdom, it shall protect thee; trust to his heart, it shall love thee, world without end. Amen.SERMON XVI. GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. “« FOR YE SEE YOUR CALLING, BRETHREN, HOW THAT NOT MANY WISE MEN AFTER THE FLESH, NOT MANY MIGHTY, NOT MANY NOBLE, ARE CALLED; BUT GOD HATH CHOSEN THE FOOLISH THINGS OF THE WORLD TO CONFOUND THE WISE; AND GOD HATH CHOSEN THE WEAK THINGS OF THE WORLD TO CONFOUND THE THINGS WHICH ARE MIGHTY; AND BASE THINGS OF THE WORLD, AND THINGS WHICH ARE DESPISED, HATH GOD CHOSEN, YEA, AND THINGS WHICH ARE NOT, TO BRING TO NOUGHT THINGS THAT ARDEP: THAT NO FLESH SHOULD GLORY IN HIS PRES- ENCE.”’ — 1 Corinthians i. 26-29. Tuer Apostle Paul had been led to make the confession that Christ Jesus was despised both by Jew and Gentile. He con- fessed that this was no cause of stumbling to him; for what others counted foolishness he believed to be wisdom, and re- joiced that the foolishness of God was wiser than men, and the weakness of God stronger than men. Lest, however, any of the Corinthian Church should be stumbled by the fact that Christ was despised, the apostle goes on to show that it was the general way of God’s proceeding, to select means which men despised, in order that by accomplishing his purpose through them, he might have all the glory: and he refers them for proof of this to the one instance of their own election and call- ing: “ Ye see your calling, brethren,” saith he, “not many wise men after the flesh, not many mighty, not many noble, are ealled;” but you, the poor, illiterate, the despised — you have been called — still for the same reason — that God may be all in all, and that no flesh may glory in his presence. It is clear to every-- one who will observe either Scripture or fact, that God pever298 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. did intend to make his gospel fashionable; that the very last thing that was ever in his thoughts was to select the élite of man- kind, and gather dignity for his truth from the gaudy trappings of rank and station. On the contrary, God has thrown down the gauntlet against all the pride of manhood; he hath dashed mire into the face of all human excellency ; and with the battle- axe of his strength he has dashed the escutcheon of man’s glory in twain. “Overturn! overturn! overturn!” seems to be the very motto of the Lord of Hosts, and shall be so “until He shall come whose right it is to reign, and he will give it him,” for his is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever and ever. ‘There is no doctrine more truly humbling than the doc- trine of election ; and it was for this reason that the Apostle Paul refers to it, — that the disciples at Corinth might be quite. con- tent to follow the humble and despised cross-bearing Saviour, because the election of grace consists of the humble and despised, who therefore cannot be ashamed to follow One who, like them- selves, was despised and rejected of men. Coming, then, at once to our text, we observe in it very clearly, first, the Elector ; secondly, a strange election ; then, the elected ; and when we have considered all these a little, we shall pause over the reasons which God has given for his election, — that “ no flesh should glory in his presence.” I. First, then, let us this morning soar aloft upon the wings xf thought to consider for awhile the Erector. Some men are saved, and some are not saved; it remains as a fact never to be questioned, that some enter into eternal life, and some pursue the evil way and perish. How is this difference caused ? Howis it that some mount to heaven? The reason why any sink to hell is their sin, and only their sin; they will not repent, they will not believe in Christ, they will not turn to God, and therefore they perish wilfully by their own act and deed. But how is it that others are saved? Whose will is it that hath made them to differ? The text three times most peremptorily an- swers the question. It saith not “man hath chosen,” but it saithGOD'S STRANGE CHOICE. 999 three times, “God hath chosen, God hath chosen, God hath cho- sen.” ‘The grace which is found in any man, and the glory and eternal life to which any attain, are all the gitts of God’s elec tion, and are not bestowed according to the will of man. This will be clear to any thoughtful person, if we first of all turn to facts. Wherever we find a case of election in the Old Testament, it is manifestly God who makes it. Go back, if you will, to the very earliest time. Angels fell: a multitude of bright spirits, who surrounded the throne of God and sang his praises, were deceived by Satan, and fell into sin. The great serpent drew with him the third part of the stars of heaven: they fell from their obedience ; they were condemned to chains forever, and to eternal fire. Man sinned also. Adam and Eve broke the covenant with God, and ate of the forbidden fruit — were they condemned to eternal fire? Nay, but God, in the plenitude of his grace, whispered this promise in the woman’s ear: “The seed of the woman shall bruise the serpent’s head.” Some men are saved, but no devils are saved. Why? Did man make the difference? Silence, thou vain boaster, who dreamest of such a thing! It is God himself who testifies: “I will have mercy on whom I wil have mercy, and I will have compassion on whom I will have compassion.” It was from such sovereignty as this that the Lord virtually declared, “I purpose and decree, that of the race of man I will save a multitude that no man can number, who shall be the vessels of my mercy ; while yonder angels, once my servants, but now traitors to their liege lord, shall, without hope forever, vindicate the terror of my righteousness, the majesty of my justice.” Here no one ever caises a question. I have never heard the most ultra-Pelagian enter a plea for the devil. I have heard of Origen, who did seem to plead that Satan should be included in the general law of mercy ; but very few persons now-a-days talk so. Here is an instance of election, — some of the human race saved, and the angelic race left forever to perish. Who could have made this distinction but Jehovali himself? And we must say there of our favored race, “ God hath chosen.” We are not ata loss to see the3800 GOD’S STRANGE CHUICE. same discriminating sovereignty at work among the individuals of our own race. All men were in the patriarchal age sunken in heathenism, with but a few exceptions; there were a few pa- triarchs who still, chosen of God, held fast to the pure worship of the Most High. The Lord determined to adopt a special people, who should read the oracles of God, preserve and main- tain the truth. He selected Abram as the progenitor of the cho- sen race. Did Abram choose God, or did God eall and choose Abram? Was there anything naturally in Abram to entitle him to be the servant of the Most High? We have very plain proof in Scripture that there was not. He was, on the contrary, described as a Syrian ready to perish, and his race was, like the rest, tainted, to say the least, with idolatry ; nevertheless he was called out of the east, and made the father of the faithful by God’s own special will. What was there, let me ask you, in the Jews, why they should be blessed with prophets, and the sacrifices, and the rites and ordinances of true worship, while all the nations were left to bow down before gods of wood and stone? We can only say, God hath done it ; his will lights upon the race of Israel, and leaves the rest in sin. Take any particular case of divine grace mentioned in the Old Testament, as, for instance, that of David. Do we find that David chose the throne, that David selected and set himself apart to be the chosen messenger of God to Israel? Was there some manifest fitness in the young- est son of Jesse? Nay, on the contrary, men had chosen his brethren; even Samuel said, “ Surely the Lord’s anointed is be- fore me,” as he saw Abinadab go forth. But God seeth not as man seeth, and he had chosen the ruddy David that he might be king in Jeshurun. So might we multiply cases ; but your own thoughts will spare my words. All the facts of the Old Testa- ment go to show that God doeth as he wills in the armies of heaven and among the inhabitants of this lower world. He pulleth down and he raiseth up; he lifteth the beggar from the dung- hill that he may set him among the princes of his people. God hath chosen, God hath chosen, and not man. “It is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy.”GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 301 Let us look at the matter in another light. Clearly the Lord’s will must determine the matter, if we consider his office and po- sition towards men. God’s office. God is a king. Shall not the king have his own will? Men may set up a constitutional monarchy, and they are right in so doing; but if you could find a being who was perfection itself, an absolute form of government would be undeniably the best. At any rate, God’s government is absolute, and though he never violates righteousness, — for he is holiness and truth itself, — yet he regards this jewel of his crown as being the dearest that he has. “Iam, and there is none be- side me.” He giveth no account of his matters. Unto all ques- tions he gives this answer: “ Nay but, O man, who art thou that repliest against God? Shall the thing formed say to him that formed it, Why hast thou made me thus? Hath not the potter power over the clay, of the same lump to make one vessel unto honor, and another unto dishonor?” The absolute position of God as king demands that, especially in the work of salvation, his will should be the great determining force. Let us state the case, and you will see this. A number of criminals are shut up in prison, all deserving to die. Their guilt is the same. If they are all taken out to execution to-morrow morning, no one can say a word against justice. Now, if some of these persons be spared, to whose discretion should the sparing be left? To their own? ‘True, it will be most gracious to send a messenger, and bid them all come forth and receive sparing mercy, if they will come. But suppose they all, with one consent, refuse to be saved 5 suppose that, having been invited to be saved, every one of them refuses to accept pardon. If, in such a case, superior mercy de- termines to override their wicked wills, and sets itself to secure that some of them shall effectually be saved, with whom shall the choice be left? If it were left with them, they would all of them still choose death rather than life ; therefore it were useless to leave it with them. Besides, to leave the attribute of mercy +n the hand-of the criminal would be an exceedingly strange mode of procedure. Nay, let it be the king —let it be the king who shall say who it is that shall be spared in mercy, and who 26302 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. shall die according to the rule of justice. The position of God as king, and the position of men as criminals, demands that sal. vation shall depend upon the will of God; and truly we may better leave it with his will than with our own, for he is kinder to us than we are to ourselves; he is more full of love to man than man is of love to himself. He is justice, he is love; jus- tice in full-orbed splendor, love in unbounded might. Mercy and truth have met together in him, and kissed each other; and it is well, it is well, 1t is best of all, that the rule and management of salvation should be left with him. We will now introduce to you a few figures made use of in Scripture in connection with the work of salvation, and I think you will then see that the will must be left with God. Salva- tion consists, in part, of an adoption. God adopts sinners, who were heirs of wrath, even as others, into his family. Who is to have authority in the matter of gracious adoption? The chil- dren of wrath? Surely not; and yet all men are such. No; it stands to nature, to reason, to common sense, that none but the parent can have the discretion to adopt. As a father, I have a right, if any desire to enter my family, to adopt or to refuse to adopt the persons in question ; certainly no person can have a right to force himself upon me, and say that I shall be considered as his reputed parent. The right must, I say, according to reason and common sense, lie with the parent; and in adoption it must pe God who chooses his own children. The church, again, is called a buclding. With whom does the architecture of the building rest? With the building? With the stones? Do the stones select themselves? Did that stone just yonder in the corner choose its place? or that which is buried there in the foundation, did it select its proper position ? No; the architect alone disposes of his chosen materials accord- ing to his own will; and thus, in building the church, which is the great house of God, the great Master-Builder reserves to himself the choice of the stones, and the places which they shall occupy. Take a yet more apparent case. The church is called Christ's bride. Would any man here agree to have any person forcedGOD’S STRANGE CHOICFK. 303 upon him as his bride? There is not aman among us who would for a single moment so demean himself as to give up his right to choose his own spouse. And shall Christ leave to hap-hazard and to human will who his bride shall be? Nay; but my Lord Jesus, the Husband of the church, exercises the sovereignty which his position permits him, and selecteth his own bride. Again: we are said to be members of Christ’s body. We are told by David that in God’s book “all our members were writ- ten, which in continuance were fashioned, when as yet there was none of them.” Thus every man’s body had its members written in God’s book. Is Christ’s body to be an exception to this rule? Is that great body of divine manhood, Christ Jesus, the mystical Saviour —is that to be fashioned according to the whims and wishes of free-will, while other bodies, vastly inferior, have their members written in the book of God? Let us not dream thus ; it were to talk idly, and not to know the meaning of the meta- phors of Seripture. It seems clear to me, according to the figures and illustrations of Scripture, that the final choice of the men to be saved must be left with God. Is not this, dear friends, most agreeable to your own experience? I am sure it is to mine.. There may. be some who hate this doctrine, —there are many; there may be some whose very mouths foam while they hear us talk of the sovereignty of God; but I confess it touches a secret spring in my nature, which can compel me to weep when nothing else can. There is a something in my consciousness which seems to say, “ Fle must have chosen me, for I never could have chosen him.” Determined to live in sin was I; prone to wander ; fond of in- iquity, drinking down evil as the ox drinketh his fill of water ; and now, saved by grace, dare I for a moment impute that salva- tion to my own choice ? I do choose God most freely, most fully ; but it must be because of some previous work upon my heart changing that heart, for my unrenewed heart never could have chosen him. Beloved, do you not feel at this very time that the natural bent of your thoughts is away from God? If the grace of God were taken off from you, what would you be? Are yor304 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. not just like the bow which is bent when the string keeps it so; but cut that string, and it flies back to its old place? Would it not be so with you? Would you not at once return tc your former ways if the mighty grace of God were withdrawn from you? Well, then, you clearly see that if even now that you are regenerate your corrupt nature does not choose God, much less could it have chosen him when there was no new nature to keep it in check and to control it. My Master looks into your faces, O ye his people, and he says: “ Ye have not chosen me, but I have chosen you ;” and we each feel that he wakes the echo of our hearts, for we reply : “ Ay, Lord, we have not chosen thee in our natural estate, but thou hast chosen us, and unto thy free and sovereign choice be honor for ever and ever.” If. May we feel the present influences of the Holy Spirit while we dwell upon the ELECTION ITSELF. The Lord is about to choose a people who shall give honor to the cross of Christ. They are to be redeemed by precious blood, and they are to be in some sense a worthy reward for the great sufferings of Jesus. Now, observe how strange is the choice he makes. I read with astonishment, “He hath not chosen many wise men after the flesh, not many mighty, not many noble.” If man had received the power of choosing, these are just the per- sons who would have been selected: “ But God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound the wise, and God hath chosen the weak things of the world to confound the things which are mighty ; and base things of the world, and things which are despised.” If man had governed the selection, these are the very persons who would have been left out. The choice is very strange — very strange; I believe even in heaven it will be the subject of eternal wonder, and, except for the reasons given in our text, we should have been at a loss to know why it was that with scorn divine he passed by the palaces of haughty kings, and looked after the base-born and the lowly to make them the sub- jects of his choice. Observe, that while it is strange, it has this peculiarity about it,GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 305 — it is directly contrary to human choice. Man chooses those who would be most helpful to him : God chooses those to whom he can be the most helpful. We select those who may give us the best return ; God frequently selects those who most need his aid. If I choose a friend, the tendency is to him because of a certain ser- viceableness that there may be in him to myself: this is the self- ishness of man ; but God chooses his friend according to the ser- viceableness which he himself may render to the chosen one. It is the very opposite way of choosing. We select those who are best because they are most deserving; he selects those who are worst because they are least deserving, that so his choice may be more clearly seen to be an act of grace and not of merit. I say it is clearly contrary to man’s way of choosing. Man select- eth the most beautiful, the most lovely ; God, on the contrary, seeing the blackness and filthiness of everything which is called lovely, will not select that which is called so, but takes that which even men discover to be unlovely, — makes it comely with the comeliness which he putteth upon it. Strange choice! Is this the manner of men, O Lord ? You will observe that the choice is very gracious ; oh, how gracious in your case and in mine! It is gracious even in its exclusion. It does not say, “Not any wise men,” it only says “ Not many ;” so that the great ones are not altogether shut out. Grace is proclaimed to the prince, and in heaven there are those who on earth wore coronets and prayed. How blessed is the condescending grace of the choice! it takes the weak things, the foolish things. One would have thought that when God said “ Nay ” to the prince, he must have said it in order that he might be excused from giving mercy to anybody ; for we are in the habit of saying, “ Well, we have refused Mr. So-and-so, and he is a much more important person than you are; therefore I can- not give the favor to you. Why! the king asked me such a fa- vor, and I would not do it for him; do you think I would do it for you?” But God reasons another way: he passes by the king on purpose that he may meet with the beggar ; he leaves the noble that he may lay hold upon the base, and passes over 26*306 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. the philosopher that he may receive the fool. Oh, this is strange, it is passing strange, it is marvellous 3 let us praise him for this wondrous grace. Oh, how encouraging is this for us this morning! Some of us cannot boast of any pedigree ; we have no great learning; we have no wealth; our names are all unknown to fame; but, oh! what a mercy! He has been pleased to choose just such foolish things as we are, such despised creatures as ourselves, such things that are not to bring to naught the things that are. Not to spend all the time this morning in simply pointing at this strange choice and wondering at it, let it suffice us to observe that every Christian who finds himself chosen will think his own election to be the strangest choice that could have been made. “ What was there in you that could merit esteem, Or give the Creator delight? ’T was ‘ Even so, Father! ’ you ever must sing, * Because it seemed good in thy sight.’ ”” III. We will now turn to ruz eLectep. The chosen ones are described negatively and positively. They are described negatively. “Not many wise men after the flesh.” Observe, it does not say, “ Not many wise men ” merely, but “not many wise men after the Jiesh ;” because God has chosen truly wise men, since all his people are made truly wise, but it is the “ wise after the Jlesh” that God has not chosen. The “sophoi,” as the Greek calls them, the philosophers, the men who pretend to wisdom or to love wisdom, the cunning, the metaphysical, the great students, the keen observers, the rabbis, the doctors, the infallibles, the men who look down with pro- found scorn upon the illiterate and call them idiots, treat them as if they were the dust beneath their feet, — these are not chosen in any great number. Strange, is it not? And yet a good reason is given. If they were chosen, why, then they would say : “ Ah! how much the gospel owes to us! How our wisdom helps it ! ” If the first twelve apostles had all been twelve doctors or sages, everybody would have said: “ Why, of course the gospel wasGOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 307 mighty; there were the twelve picked wise men of Judea, or of Greece, to support it.” But, instead of that, God looks round the creeks and bays after twelve poor fishermen, who are as ignorant as any he can find; he takes them, and they become the apostles ; they spread the gospel, «::d the gospel has the glory, and not the apostles. The wise are passed by in the wisdom of God. Observe next, he says, “ Not many mighty.” The wise might have forced their way to heaven by their wit, one would think ; but there they are with their blind learning, fumbling for the latch of heaven’s door, while the illiterate and simple-minded have already entered it. Blind wisdom gropes in the dark, and, like the wise men, it goes to Jerusalem in vain, while poor, hum- ble shepherds go to Bethlehem and find Christ at once. Here comes another order of great men. The mighty men, the valiant champions, the princes, his Imperial Highness, the conquerors, the Alexanders, the Napoleons, — are not these chosen? Surely when the king becomes a Christian, he can with his sword compel others to receive Christ: why not choose him? “No,” says the text, “not many mighty.” And you see why; because, if the mighty had been chosen, we should all say, “ Oh, yes, we see why Christianity spreads so: it is the good temper of its sword-blade, and the strength of the arm that wields it.” We can all understand the progress of Mahometanism during its first three centuries. Men like Ali and Khaled were ready to smite whole nations; they leaped upon their steeds, waved their scymetars over their’ heads, and dashed against hundreds, fearless of the fight. And it was only when they met such men as our Richard Cceur de Lion that Mahomtanism was put back for awhile ; when the sword met sword, then they that took it per- ished with it. Christ chose no warriors: one of his disciples used a sword, but it was to very poor effect, for he only cut off a man’s ear; and Christ touched that and healed it, and there was an end of poor Peter’s fighting. So that the glory of the Lord’s conquests does not depend upon the mighty ; God has not chosen them. Then he says, “Not many noble,” by which he means those308 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. with a long pedigree, descended, through a line of princes, from the loins of kings, with blue blood in their veins. “ Not many noble,” for nobility might have been thought to stamp the gospel with its prestige. “Oh, yes! there is no wonder that the gospel spreads when my lord this, and the duke of that bends to it.” Ay, but you see there were few such in the early church. The saints in the catacombs were poor, humble men and women ; and it is a very memorable fact that out of all the inscriptions in the catacombs of Rome, written by the early Christians, there is scarcely one which is properly spelt; but nearly all of them are as bad in grammar as they are in spelling, —a clear proof that they were scratched there by poor, illiterate, ignorant men, who were then the defenders of the faith, and the true conservators of the grace of God. We have thus the negative side —= not the wise, not the mighty, not the noble. But now the positive side, — and I want your care- ful attention to the expression used by the apostle. “ God hath chosen the foolish men?” —no, it does not say so — “ the foolish things ;” as if the Lord’s chosen were not by nature good enough to be called men, but were only “ things; ” as if the world looked down on them with such scorn that they did not say, “ Who are these men ?” but “ Who are these things?” Once or twice in Luke you will observe Christ called a “fellow ;” but the word “fellow ” is put in italics, not being in the original; for the Greek runs, “ As for this , we know not whence he is.” They did not say what he was, did not even call him a “fellow,” though the translation is very good, as giving a correct idea to the ordi- nary reader. ‘They seem to say of Christ, “‘ As for this — well, and so Paul not simply foolish men 39 call him a beast if you like, a thing if you like ; has put it here, “the foolish things ;” whom the world should consider to be unlearned, ignorant, stu- pid dolts, led by the nose and easily deceived into beliving this or that, but “foolish things,” which are nothing but stupidity, hath God chosen. Next, God hath chosen “the weak things.” Do observe the word “things ” with care; they were not merely weak men, butGOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 309 the world thought them-weak things. “ Ah!” said Cesar in the hall, if he said anything at all about it, “who is King Jesus? a poor wretch who was hanged upon a tree! Who are these men that are setting him up? twelve poor fishermen who could hardly muster one single talent of gold between them! Who is this Paul who raves so lustily about Christ? a tentmaker! Who are his followers ? a few despised women who meet him at the water-side! Is Paul a philosopher? no, he was publicly laughed at upon Mars’ Hill ; they counted what he said to be mere babbling.” No doubt Cesar thought they were altogether too inconsiderable to be worthy of his notice ; but the “ weak things ” God hath chosen. Observe the next description: “ The base things.’ there signifies things without pedigree, things without a father, things which cannot trace their descent; no Sir Harry, no Right Honorable is akin to them; their father was a nobody, and their mother was a nothing. Such were the apostles of old; they were the base things of this world, and yet God chose them. As if this were not enough, it is written: “Things that are despised,” — sneered at, persecuted, hunted about, or treated with what is worse, with the indifference which is worse than scorn. “ They are not worth notice, —inconsiderable fools, pass them by and let them alone,” —and yet these had God chosen. Once more, as if to outdo all, and sum it up in one word, “things that are not” hath God chosen. Nothings, nonentities. “Oh!” says the man of the world, “yes, I did just hear that there were a parcel of fanatics of that kind” “ Oh!” says another, “I never even heard of them. I never mix myself up in any way with such a low-bred, vulgar set. Did they ever have a bishop among them? a Right Rev. Father in God?” No, nothing of the kind, sir ; they are foolish, base, mean, de- spised ; the world, therefore, rejects them. “ Yet,” saith God, “J choose them.” ‘They are the very people that he chooses. Now, observe that what was true in Paul’s day is true now, for the Bible does not change as years revolve; and in one thousand eight hundred and sixty-four God chooses the things which are > The word310 ; GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. despised just as much as in the year sixty-four; and he will yet let the world know that those who are ridiculed, styled fanatics, thought to be mad and wicked, are yet, after all, his chosen ones destined for God and for his truth to rally the sacramental host of the elect, and win for God the battle of the last day. In this we are not ashamed to glory, that God chooseth the things which are despised; and we can take our place with the despised people of God, hopeful to partake in the election of his sov- ereign grace. IV. To conclude: you have THE REASONS WHY GOD HAs CHOSEN THESE PEOPLE. ‘There are two reasons given: the first is the immediate reason, the second is the ultimate reason. The first, or ¢mmediate reason, is contained in these words: “God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound the wise ; and God hath chosen the weak things of the world to confound the things which are mighty ; and base things of the world, and things which are despised, hath God chosen, yea, and things which are not, to bring to nought things that are.” Observe, then, the ¢mmediate reason is, first to confound the wise. For one wise man to confound another wise man is re- markable ; for a wise man to confound a foolish man is very easy ; but for a foolish man to confound a wise man, ah! this is the finger of God. You know how it was with the first apostles. A philosopher listened to Paul, and when he had heard it he said: “ There is nothing in it! perfect foolishness ! pack of stuff from beginning to end! No need for us to take the trouble to answer it.” Years rolled on, and when the philosopher was getting very gray, that pestilent heresy of Christianity was spreading every- where; his own daughter was converted; even his wife used to steal out of a night to the secret assembly. The philosopher could not make it out. “There,” he said, “I proved to a dem- onstration that it was all stupidity, and yet these people stick to it, J answered all their arguments, did I not? I not only an- swered and confuted, but I clinched my arguments in such a way that I thought I had put an end to the folly altogether. Here JGOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 311 see it in my own household.” Sometimes the philosopher had to stand, with tears in his eyes, and say: “I feel it in my own heart it has beaten me, it has confounded me; I could syllogize and rationalize, and beat poor Paul, but Paul has beaten me. What I thought was folly has confounded my wisdom.” Within a few centuries after the death of Christ, the Christian religion had spread over the civilized world, while Paganism, which had all the philosophy of the east and of the west to back it up, had fallen into disrepute and was laughed to scorn. Again, God has chosen the weak things to confound the mighty. “Oh!” said Caesar, “we will soon root up this Christianity ; — off with their heads!” The different governors hastened one after another of the disciples to death, but the more they persecuted them the more they multiplied. The pro-consuls had orders to destroy Christians ; the more they hunted them the more Chris- tians there were, until at last men pressed to the judgment-seat and asked to be permitted to die for Christ. They invented tor- ments ; they dragged the saints at the heels of wild horses ; they laid them upon red-hot gridirons; thy pulled off*the skin from their flesh piece by piece; they were sawn asunder; they were wrapped up in skins and daubed with pitch, and set in Nero’s gardens at night to burn ; they were left to rot in dungeons ; they were made a spectacle to all men in the amphitheatre ; the bears hugged them to death, the lions tore them to pieces, the wild bulls tossed them upon their horns — and yet Christianity spread. All the swords of the legionaries which had put to rout the armies of all nations, and had overcome the invincible Gaul and the savage Briton, could not withstand the feebleness of Christianity ; for the weakness of God is mightier than men. If God had chosen the mighty men, they would have turned round and said, “ God is beholden to us ;” if he had chosen the wise, they would have said, ‘Our wisdom has done it ;” but when he chooses the foolish and weak, where art thou now, philosopher? Hath not God laughed thee to scorn? Where are ye now, O sword and spear? O mighty man who wieldeth them, where art thou? God’s weakness hath routed thee. @312 GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. It is said that he chose the things that are not to bring to naught the things that are. This is even more than confounding them, to bring them to naught. “The things that are”’ What were they in the apostle’s days? Jupiter, seated upon his lofty throne, holds the thunderbolt in his hand; Saturn reclined as the father of gods; Venus delighted her votaries with her lustful pleasures; the chaste Diana sounded her horn. Here comes Paul with “There is no God but God, and Jesus Christ whom he hath sent; ” he represents “ the things that are not.” So con- temptible is the heresy of Christianity, that, if a list were made out of the religions of different countries, Christianity would have been left out of the catalocue. But see the result! Where is Jupiter now? where Saturn ? where Venus and Diana? Except as classic names in the dictionaries of the learned, where are they? Who bows before the shrine of Ceres in the day of har- vest, or who lifts up his prayers to Neptune in the hour of storm? Ah! they have gone; the things that are have been brought to naught by the things that are not. Let us refleet that what is true in Paul’s day is true to-day. One thousand eight hundred and sixty-four shall see repeated the miracles of the olden times ; the things that are shall be brought to naught by the things that are not. See in Wiclif’s time: the things that are were the holy roods in every church; St. Wini- fred, St. Thomas of Canterbury are worshipped by all the mul- titudes of Englishmen. There comes my lord Archbishop through the street; yonder is the Pope worshipped by thousands, and there is the Virgin adored of all. What doI see? A solitary monk at Lutterworth begins to preach against the begging friars ; and in preaching against them he finds out the truth, and begins to preach that Christ is the only ground of salvation, and that they who trust in him are saved. Well, it was such a contemp- tible thing, that at first they did not care to persecute him. It is true, at last he was brought up before his grace at St. Paul’s; but there was a strong man, one John o’ Gaunt, who came up with him, and said a word or two in his rough way, and Wic- lif was allowed to sit down; and though condemned, he returns> GOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. 313 to his parish of Lutterworth. “The thing that was not!” it was not worthy to be put down by blood; it would die out of itself. Did it die out? Where are your holy roods to-day? Where is St. Thomas of Canterbury ? Where are St. Agnes and St. Winifred? Ask our Puseyite friends, for they alone can tell you. ‘True consorts of the moles and of the bats, they know where the idols have been east: they seek to restore the super- stitions of the past, but by God’s grace their task shall be no easy one. The present system of English superstition, with its water re- generation, its baptismal grace, its confirmations, and its giving of grace through bread and wine, though it be attacked by those who are things that are not, shall yet cease to be; and the truth as it is in Jesus, and the pure simple faith that no man is a priest distinctively above his fellows, but that every Christian is a priest unto God ; and the pure truth that no water can necessarily bring the Spirit of God with it, and that no outward forms and rites have any virtue in them apart from the faith of those who do receive them ; these yet, backed by the Spirit of God, shall bring to naught the things that are. Herein we fall back upon the strength of God. I would not have God’s champions stronger. Brethren, were they stronger they would take glory to them- selves. Let them be weak, and let them be few, and let them be despised ; their fewness, their poverty, their weakness, shall make the shout of praise unto the eternal Conqueror yet more loud, and the music shall be, undivided ; there shall only be this refrain, “Not unto us, not unto us, but unto thy name give glory for thy truth’s sake.” This, then, is God’s immediate object in choosing foolish things, weak things, things that are not, to confound the mighty. But his ultimate reason is, “ that no flesh may glory in his pres- ence.” I want you to notice that last sentence, and I have done. 39 He does not say “that no man;” no, the text is in no humor to please anybody ; it says, “ that no flesh.’ What a word ! what a word, I say! Here are Solon and Socrates, the wise men. God points at them with his finger, and calls them “ flesh.” It 27 PEER EST PEGS S|314. GOD'S STRANGE CHOICE. » A QD is sold in the shambles, is it not? Dogs tear it, worms eat it, — nothing but flesh. There is Cesar, with his imperial purple cast about him; and as he stands. erect, the mighty Imperator, how the Praetorian guards unsheath their swords and shout, “ Great is the Emperor! long may he live!” “ Flesh,” saith God’s Word — “flesh.” Here they come tramping on, hundreds in a line, the strong legionaries of Rome, — who can stand against the besses of their bucklers? “ Flesh,” saith the word — “flesh.” Here are men whose sires were of royal lineage and grandsires of imperial rank, and they can trace back the long line of honor. ‘ Flesh,” ” dogs’ meat, worms’ meat, says God, “ flesh — nothing but flesh ; when God wills it. “That no flesh may glory in his presence.” Do you see, then, God puts this stamp upon us all that we are nothing but flesh ; and he chooses the poorest flesh, and the most foolish flesh, and the weakest flesh, that all the other flesh that is only flesh and only grass may see that God pours contempt on it, and will have no flesh glory im his presence. Now, what is your spirit this morning towards this subject? Do you kick at it? Do you say you cannot bear it? I am afraid you want to glory in God’s presence. Your views of things and God’s views of things differ, and therefore you need to have a new heart and a right spirit. But, on the contrary, do you say this morning, “ I have nothing to boast of ; I would not glory in thy presence, but I would lie in the very dust and say, ‘Do with me as thou wilt” Sinner, do you feel that you are nothing but flesh, and sinful flesh? Are ye so broken before God that you feel, let him do as he will with you, he will be just, and you ‘can only appeal to his sovereign merey ? Then God and you are one; you are reconciled. I can see that you are reconciled. When God and you are agreed that God should reign, then God is agreed that you should live. Sinner, touch the sceptre of his grace. Jesus crucified stands before you now, and bids you look to him and live. That you are bidden to look is an instance of mighty grace, and that you are enabled to look this morning will be a wonder of divine loveGOD’S STRANGE CHOICE. Slo for which you will have to bless him in time and eternity. And now, may that God whose name we have sought to honor this morning, bless these stammering words of ours for Jesus’ sake. Amen.SERMON XVII. WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. “ GoD, THAT CANNOT LIE.” — Titus i. 2. TRUTH once reigned supreme upon our globe, and then earth was Paradise. Man knew no sorrow while he was ignorant of falsehood. The Father of Lies invaded the garden of bliss, and with one foul lie he blighted Eden into a wilderness, and made man a traitor to his God. Cunningly he handled the glittering falsehood, and made it dazzle in the woman’s eyes — “ God doth know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil.” Proud ambition rode upon that lie as a conqueror in his chariot, and the city of Mansoul opened its gates to welcome the fascinating enemy. As it was a lie which first subjugated the world to Satan’s influ- ences, so it is by lies that he secures his throne. Among the heathen his kingdom is quiet and secure, because the minds of the people are deluded with a false mythology. The domains of Mahomet and the Pope are equally the kingdom of Satan, and his reign is undisturbed ; for human merit, priestly efficacy, and a thousand other deceptions buttress his throne. ‘The darkness of ignorance, the dungeons of falsehood, and the chains of supersti- tion, are the main reliance of that monster who oppresses all the nations with his infernal tyranny. Since by the lie Satan now holds the world and maintains his power, he everywhere encourages lies, and aida their propaga- tion. Look about you, and see what a prolific family falsehood has! The children of the untrue are as many as the frogs ofWHAT GOD CANNOT DO. B17 Egypt, and, like those plagues, they intrude into every chamber. The slime of falsehood may be seen upon most things, both in secular and religious life. You have lying news and garbled re- ports in print; and as for the flying gossip of the tongue, if it touches the characters of good men, beware of believing a word it utters. If you would not have complicity with those who make the lie, be not hasty to entertain it. From the high places of the earth falsehood is not excluded. The untruth glides right royally from the kingly tongue, but is as much a lie as if the ragged mendicant had blurted it forth with low-lived oaths and curses. What is diplomacy, for the most part? Is it not “‘the art of lying?” - Was not he thought to be the best politician who used language to conceal his thoughts? In how many a confer- ence have the plenipotentiaries labored which could overreach, dissimulate, and intrigue to the greatest degree? In the com- merce of courts, who knows not that flatteries and lies are the most abundant commodities? The art of king-craft, as practised by the most high and mighty Prince James, whose name dis- honors our English Bible, was only and simply the science of lying in the neatest possible manner. In these modern times, the difference between the promises at the hustings and the per- formances in the House of Commons, proves that the lie is still commonly patronized. Falsehood is everywhere. It is enter- tained both by the lowest and the highest; it permeates all soci- ety ; it has ruined the whole of our race, and so defiled the entire world, that upright men exclaim, “ Woe is me, that I so- journ in Mesech, that I dwell in the tents of Kedar!” In the so-called religious world, which should be as the holy of holies, here, too, the lie has insinuated itself. Of old there were proph- ets who prophesied lies, and dreamers of false dreams; and there were others who spoke the word of God with such bated breath, and after such a fashion, that it was no longer the truth as it came from God, but truth alloyed with human falsehood. It is so to-day. There are those wearing the vestments of God’s priests who do not hesitate to profess what they do not believe. Such men are the priests of hell. To wear a bishop’s mitre, and 27*318 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. teach infidelity — how shall I stigmatize it? —it is nothing lesa than detestable hypocrisy and robbery. And what shall I say of men of all creeds, all subscribing to the same articles and catechism, when all the world knows they cannot all honestly believe the same thing, and yet differ as much from one another as light from darkness? What shall I say but that shame covers my face that there should be so many ministers of God who are untrue to their convictions, and continue to do and say what they feel to be unscriptural? In other quarters, philosophy is believed and Christianity professed; the traditions of men are put in the place of God’s truth. The prophets prophesy lies, and the peo- ple love to have it so. Brethren, we have everywhere to battle with falsehood ; and if we are to bless the world, we must confront it with sturdy face and zealous spirit. God’s purpose is to drive the lie out of the world, and be this your purpose and mine. His Holy Spirit has undertaken to drive falsehood out of our hearts; be this our determination, in his strength, that it shall be cut up root and branch, and utterly consumed. Then let us walk in the truth; “buy the truth, and sell it not;” hold fast the truth, speak the truth in love, and act the truth in all our deeds ; for so shall we be known to be the children of that God of whom our text asserts that he is “ God, that cannot lie.” After wan- dering over the sandy desert of deceit, how pleasant is it to reach our text, and feel that one spot at least is verdant with eternal truth! Blessed be thou, O God, for thou canst not lie. We will use our text in the following manner this morning : First, while we do not attempt to prove it, we will remind you of a few things which may confirm your confidence that God can- not lie, so that our opening remarks shall be upon the truth of the text ; then, secondly, we will speak upon the breadth of the éext, endeavoring to show that we must give no narrow interpre- tation to the words before us, but must receive them with an extent of meaning not usual to the expression ; and then, thirdly, we will try to use the text for our own improvement, arguing from it that if God cannot lie he ought to receive our loving confidence.WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 319 I. First, then, let us commune together awhile concerning THE TRUTH OF THE TEXT, —not, as we have said, to prove it, because we all believe it, but to confirm our confidence thereon. Methinks we shall feel assured that God cannot lie when we remember that he is not subject to those infirmities which lead us onto falsehood. Lord Bacon has said: “'There are three parts in truth: first, the inquiry, which is the wooing of it ; secondly, the knowledge of it, which is the presence of it; and, thirdly, the belief, which is the enjoyment of it.” In each of these three points, by reason of infirmity, men fail to be perfectly true. In the search after truth, our moral eye is not altogether clear, and therefore we fail to see what we love not; we do not follow truth in a straight line, but are very liable to turn aside to the right hand or to the left, either to obey our prejudices or advance our profit. “Truth lies in a well,” said the old philosopher. Many go down into that well to find truth, but, looking into the water, they see their own faces, and become so desperately enamored of their own beauty that they forget poor truth, or dream that she is the counterpart of themselves. Now, the great God can- not be liable to this error, because there is no discovery of truth with him. He needeth not to search anything out, for “all things are naked and opened unto the eyes of him with whom we have to do.” When, in Scripture, that term is sometimes used, — “ Shall not God search this out?” when we hear him spoken of as “searching the heart and trying the reins of the children of men,”— it is not because he is not perfectly acquainted with all things, but only to set forth the certainty and accuracy of divine knowledge. God having no need to search, or, if he had, having nothing in him which should lead him to make a dishonest search, therefore he doth not lie. When we have searched out the truth, there is the knowing of it; and here the falsehood gets a footing in the form of a sin of omission, for we often refuse to know all that we might know. It would be inconvenient, per- haps, for us to be too well acquainted with certain arguments, for then our prejudices must be given up, and therefore we close our eyes to them for fear of knowing the truth. Do not many320 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. men leave passages of Scripture altogether unread because they have no wish to receive the doctrines which are taught therein ? Every time you refuse to give a hearing to God’s truth, you do in effect lie; because you prefer not to know the truth, which is really to prefer to hold error. Now, nothing of this kind can ever happen with our only wise God. He knows all truth, seeing it all at a glance, and retaining it ever in his mind. In nothing is he ignorant, either wilfully or otherwise. He receives truth as his own beloved, and when the world casts her out, she finds a happy shelter beneath his shield. We are quite clear that we fre- quently fall into the lie through a defect ¢n our believing, for we sometimes know more than we care to believe. Truth is grasped by the understanding, but thrust out by the affections. We know her as Peter knew his Lord, and yet deny it after the same fash- ion as that disciple did his Master. Moreover, through weak- ness, we are led to doubt what we know to be God’s truth, and even to speak unadvisedly with our lips. Now, this can never occur with God, since God is one, and is not to be divided into parts and passions, and his tongue can never be diverse from his heart. God’s tongue is his heart, and God’s heart is his hand. God is one. You and I are such that we can know in the heart, and yet with the tongue deny ; but God is one and indivisible ; God is light, and in him is no darkness at all; with him is no variableness, neither shadow of turning. Then, again, the scriptural idea of God forbids that he should he. Just review your thoughts about God, if you can. What idea have you formed of him? If you have read Holy Scrip- ture, and have gotten the slightest shadow of an idea of God, I think you will see that it is utterly inconsistent with the thrice Holy One, whose kingdom is over all, that he should lie. Admit the very possibility of his speaking an untruth, and to the Chris- tian there would be no God at all. The depraved mind of the heathen, may imagine a monster to be a god who can live in adultery, and in-theft, and in lying, — for such the gods of the Hindoos are described as being, — but the enlightened mind of the Christian can conceive no such thing. The very wordWHAT GOD CANNOT DO. ool “God” comprehendeth everything which is good and great. Admit the lie, and to us at once there would be nothing but the black darkness of Atheism forever. I could neither love, wor- ship, nor obey a lying God. Again: we all know that God is too wise to lic. Falsehood is the expedient of a fool. It is only a short-sighted man who lies. For some present advantage, the poor creature, who cannot see the end as well as the beginning, states that which is not; but no wise man who can look far into the future ever thinks a lie to be profitable : he knows that truth may suffer loss at first, but that in the long run she is always successful. He endorses that worldly-wise proverb, that “Honesty is the best policy ” after all; and the man, I say, who has anything like foresight, or judg- ment, or wisdom, prefers always the straight line to the curve, and goes directly to the mark, believing that this is in the end the best. Do you suppose that God, who must know this with an intensity of knowledge infinitely greater than ours, will choose the policy of the witless knave? Shall God, only wise, who seeth the end from the beginning, act as only brainless fools will choose to behave themselves? Oh! it cannot be, my brethren. God, the all-wise, must also be all-true. And the lie, again, 7s the method of the little and the mean. You know that a great man does not lie; a good man can never be false. Put goodness and greatness together, and a lie is al- together incongruous to the character. Now, God is too great to need the lie, and too good to wish to do such a thing ; both his greatness and his goodness repel the thought. My dear friends, what motive could God have for lying ? When a man lies, it is that he may gain something ; but “the cattle on a thousand hills” are God’s, and all the beasts of the forest, and all the flocks of the meadows. He says, “If I were hungry I would not tell thee.” Mines of inexhaustible riches are his, and treasures of infinite power and wisdom. He cannot gain aught by untruth, for “the earth is the Lord’s, and the fulness thereof;” wherefore, then, should he lie? Men are false ofttimes to win applause. See how the sycophant cringes eee822 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. to the tyrant’s foot, and spawns his villanies! But God needs no honor and no fame, especially from the wicked. To him it were the greatest disgust of his righteous soul to be loved by unholy creatures. His glory is great enough, even if there were no creatures ; his own self-contained glory is such that if there were no eye to see it, and no ear to hear it, he would be infinitely glorious. He asketh nothing —no respect and no honor of man, and therefore hath he no need to stoop to the lie to gain it. And of whom,-again, could he be afraid? Men will sometimes, under the impulse of fear, keep back or even contradict the truth, but can fear ever enter into the heart of the eternal God? He looketh down upon all nations who are in rebellion against him, and he doth not even care to rise to put them down. “He that sztteth in the heavens shall laugh : the Lord shall have them in derision!” Are not the chariots of the Lord twenty thou- sand, even thousands of angels? Even these are but as a drop of a bucket, when compared with the deep and infinite sea of his own power. Who, then, shall think that Jehovah needs to be afraid? “ Fear” and “Jehovah” are two words which can- not meet together. ‘Therefore, since there can be no motive whatever which should possibly lead God to lie, we feel well assured that the declaration of Paul is-most certainly true — “ God, that cannot lie.” Moreover, dear friends, we may add to all this the experience of men with regard to God. It has been evident enough in all ages that God cannot lie. He did not lie when Adam fell. It seemed a strange thing that, after all the skill and labor which had been spent in making such a world as this, so fair and beau- tiful, God should resign it to the dominion of Satan, and drive the man whom he had made in his own image out of his home, his Eden, to labor in sweat and toil and suffering, until he came to his grave. But God did it, and the fiery sword at the gate of Eden was proof that God could not and would not lie. He might come to Adam, and bemoan himself, erying, “ Adam, where art thou?” as if he pitied him, and would, if it had been possible, have spared the stroke ; but still it must be done, and Eden isWHAT. GOD CANNOT DO. $23 blasted, and Adam becomes a wanderer upon the fruitless earth. Then, afterwards, —to quote anotable instance of God’s faithful- ness, — when the flood swept away the race of men, and Noah came forth the heritor of a new covenant, we have clear proof that God cannot lie. No flood has ever destroyed the earth since then. Partial floods there have been, and parts of prov- inces have been inundated ; but no flood has ever come upon the earth of such a character as that which Noah saw: hence the rainbow, every time it is painted upon the cloud, is an assurance tous that God cannot lie. Then he made an oath with Abra- ham that he should have a son, and that his seed should become possessors of all the land in which the patriarch had sojourned. Did not that come true? They waited in Egypt two hundred years; they smarted under the tyrant’s lash ; they lay among the pots; and ya, after all, with a high hand and with an out- stretched arm he brought forth his people, led them through the wilderness, and divided Canaan by lot to them, having driven out the inhabitants of the land before them. Since that time he made his covenant with David; and how fast has that stood! All the threatenings which he has uttered against the enemies of Israel, how surely have they been fulfilled! Last of all, and best of all, when the fulness of time was come, did not God send forth his own Son, born of a woman, made under the law? Did he not, according to his ancient promise, lay upon him the iniquity of us all? Were not the incarnation and death of our Lord Jesus the grandest proof of the truthfulness of God which could be afforded? His own Son must leave heaven emptied of its glory, must be given up to be despised and rejected of men, must be nailed to the accursed wood, and be forsaken in the hour of his bitterest grief: herein is trath indeed. I say, if this must be according to the promise, and if this was accorcing to the fact, then we have the clearest and the surest evidence that God cannot by any possibility be false to his own word. Rightly hath he earned the title which his nature claims, “ God, that cannot lie.” May I not add, as another argument, that you have found him true? You have been to him, dear friends, in manyWAAT GOD CANNOT DO. times of trial; you have taken his promise and laid it before his mercy-seat: what say you, has he ever broken his promise ? You have been through the floods —did he leave you? You have passed through the fires — were you burned? You have cried to him in trouble — did he fail to deliver you? O ye poor and needy ones, ye have been brought very low, but has he not been your helper? ‘You have passed hard by the gates of the grave, and hell has opened its horrid jaws to swallow you up, but are you not to-day the living monuments of the fidelity of God to his promise, and the veracity of every word of the Most High God? Let these things, then, refresh your memories, that you may the more confidently know that he is “ God, that cannot lie.” Tf. Let us pass on to look at THE BREADTH OF MEANING IN THE TEXT. When we are told in Scripture that God cannot lie, there is usually associated with the idea the thought of cmmutadility. As, for instance: “ He is not a man that he should lie, nor the son of man that he should repent.” The word “lie” here in- cludes, beyond its ordinary meaning, the thought of change; so that when we read that God cannot lie, we understand by it, not only that he cannot say what is untrue, but that, having said something which is true, he never changes from it, and does not by any possibility alter his purpose or retract his word. This is very consolatory to the Christian, that whatever God has said in the divine purpose is never changed. The decrees of God were not written upon sand, but upon the eternal brass of his unchangeable nature. We may truly say of the sealed book of the decrees, “ Hath he said, and shall he not do it ? hath he pur- posed, and shall it not come to pass?” We read in Scripture of several instances where God apparently changed; but I think the observation of the old Puritan explains all these. He says, “God may will a change, but he cannot change his will.” Those changes of operation which we sometimes read of in Scripture did not involve any change in the divine purpose. God, forWHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 325 instance, sent to warn Hezekiah that according to the common course of nature he must die, and yet afterwards fifteen years were added to his life, God’s purpose having been all along that Hezekiah should live till the end of the fifteen years; but still his purpose equally included that he should be brought so near to the gates of death, that in the ordinary course of nature he must die; and then that the miracle should come in as still in part of the purpose, that Hezekiah might be cured in a super- iatural manner, and be made to live nearer to his God in conse- quence. God wills a change, but he never changes his will; and when the last great day shall come, you and I shall see how everything happened according to that hidden roll wherein God had written with his own wise finger every thought which man should think, every word which he should utter, and every deed which he should do. Just as it was in the book of decree, so shall it transpire in the roll of human history. ' God never changes, then, as to his purpose ; and here is our comfort. If he has determined to save us, — and we know he has, for all who believe in himare his elect, — then we shall be saved. Heaven shall never by any possibility be defeated by hell. Hell and earth may combine together to destroy a soul which rests upon Christ, but while God’s decree standeth fast and firm, that chosen soul is safe; and since that decree never can be removed, let us take confidence and rejoice. No promise has ever been altered, and no threatening either. Still is his promise sure. “J have not said unto the seed of Jacob, seek ye my face in vain” No new decrees have been passed, repealing the past. We can never say of God’s Book, as we can of old law-books, that such and such an act is obsolete. There is no obsolete statute in God’s Book. There stand promises, as fresh, as new, as vigor- ous, and as forceful to-day, as when they first dropped from the mouth of God. The words, then, “ God, that cannot lie,” include the very gracious and precious doctrine that he cannot by any possibility change. But we must not, while talking in this manner, forget the primary meaning, that he cannot be false in his thoughts, words, 28 PREEE STEED526 WHAT GOD CANNOT Do. a or actions. There is no shadow of a lie upon anything which God thinks, or speaks, or does. He cannot lie in his prophecies. How solemnly true have they been! Ask the wastes of Nin- eveh; turn to the mounds of Babylon; let the traveller speak concerning Idumea and Petra; turn even to the rock of Sidon, and to thy land, O Immanuel. We may boldly ask the traveller, “ Hath he said, and hath he not done it? Have his words fallen to the ground? Has God’s curse been an idle word?” WN 0, not in one single case. All the words of the Lord are sure. The prophecies will be as true as they have been, and the Book of Revelation, though we may not comprehend it to-day, will doubt- less be fulfilled in every stroke and in every line, and we shall marvel how it was that we did not know its meaning ; but at present it is enough for us to know its truth — its meaning shall only be learned as the events explain the prophecy. As God is true in his prophecies, so is he faithful to his prom- ‘ses. Have you and I, dear friends, a confidence in these ? lite so, let us try them this morning. Sinner, weeping and bemoan- ing thyself, God will forgive thee thy sin if thou believest in Jesus. If thou wilt confess that he is faithful and Just to forgive then, he hath promised so to do, and he cannot lie. Christian, if you have a promise to-day laid upon your heart, if you have been pleading it, perhaps for months, and it has not been fulfilled, I pray you gather fresh courage this morning, and again renew thy wrestling. Go and say, “ Lord, I know thou canst not lie, therefore fulfil thy word unto thy servant.” If the promises of God were not kept, God would lie ; they must therefore be ful- filled: and let us believe that they will be, and go to God, not with a wavering spirit, which half hopes that the word may be true, but with the full assurance that they cannot fail. As cer- tainly as we know that day and night shall not cease, and that summer will not fail, so surely let us be convinced that every word of the Lord shall stand. His threatenings are true also. Ah, sinner! thou mayst go on in thy ways for many a day, but thy sin shall find thee cut at the last. Seventy years God’s long-suffering may wait over Shee,WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 827 but when thou shalt come into another world thou shalt find every terrible word of Scripture fulfilled ; thou shalt then know that there is a place “ where their worm dieth not, and the fire is not quenched; ” thou shalt then experience the “ wailing and gnashing of teeth,” except thou repentest. If thou wilt believe in Jesus, thou shalt find the promise true ; but if thou wilt not, equally sure shall be the threatening. This is a dreadful part of the subject to those who are out of Christ — who have never been partakers of the Holy Ghost. Tt will be in vain for you to ery to him then, and ask him then to.change his mind. No; though you should weep oceans of tears, hell’s flames cannot be quenched, nor can your soul escape from the place to which it is finally doomed. To-day, while mercy is preached to you, lay hold upon it ; but remember, if not, as God cannot lie, he cannot suffer you to escape, but you must eel the weight and terror of his arm. We might thus go through everything which concerns God, from prophecy to promises and threatenings, and onwards, and multiply observations ; but we choose to close this point by observ- ing that every word of instruction from God is most certainly true. It is astounding how much sensation is caused in the Christian Church by the outbreak, every now and then, of fresh phases of I do not think that these alarms are at all warranted. nd of this dispensation. infidelity. It is what we must expect to the very e If all carnal minds believed the Bible, I think the spiritual might almost begin to doubt it; but as there are always some who will attack it, I shall feel none the less confidence in it. Really, the Book of God has stood so many attacks from such different quarters, that to be at all alarmed about it shows a very childish fear. When a rock has been standing all our lifetime, and has and firmly throughout all the ages of history, been known to st k that the next wave will swee none but foolish people will thin it away. Within our own short life — say some five-and-twenty years’ recollection — have we not remembered, I was about to five-and-twenty shapes of infidelity ? say, almost as many as twenty years at least, for You know it must change about every FI been328 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. no system of infidelity can live longer than that. There was the Witty system of objection which Voltaire introduced; and how short-lived was that! Then came the bullying, low-lived, black- guard system of Tom Paine; and how short-lived was its race ! Then, in more modern times, unbelief took the shape of Secu- larism: what particular shapes it takes now we scarcely know — perhaps Colensoism is the most fashionable ; but that is dying out, and something else will follow it. These creations of an hour just live their little day, and they are gone. But look at belief in Scripture, and at Seripture itself. The Bible is better understood, more prized, and I believe, on the whole, more prac- tised, than ever it was since the day when its Author sent it abroad into the world. Its course is still onward; and after all which has been done against it, no visible effect has been pro- duced upon the granite-wall of scriptural truth by all the pick- axes and boring-rods which have been broken upon it. Walking through our museums now-a-days, we smile at those who think that Scripture is not true. Every block of stone from Nineveh, every relic which has been brought from the Holy Land, speaks with a tongue which must be heard even by the deaf adder of Secularism, and which says, “Yes, the Bible is true, and the Word of God is no fiction.” Beloved, we may rest assured that we have not a word in the Book of God which is untrue. ‘There may be an interpolation or two of man’s which ought to be revised and taken away; but the Book as it comes from God is truth, and nothing but truth; not only containing God’s Word, but being God’s Word ; being not like a lump of gold inside a mass of quartz, but all gold, and nothing but gold ; and being inspired to the highest degree, I will not say verbally inspired, but more than that, having a fulness more than that which the letter can convey ; having in it a profundity of meaning such as words never had when used by any other being, — God having the power to speak a multitude of truths at once. And when he means to teach us one thing according to our capability of receiving it, he often teaches us twenty other things, which for the time we do not comprehend, but which by-and-by, as our senses are exer-WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 329 tised, reveal themselves by the Holy Spirit. very time I open my Bible I will read it as the Word of “ God, that cannot lie; ” and when | get a promise or a threatening, I will either rejoice or tremble, because I know that these stand fast. Dear friends, this leads us, in closing this point, to say that when we read that passage — “ God, that cannot lie” — we un- derstand that his very nature cannot le, for he hates lies ; wherever there is a lie God is its enemy. It was to overcome the lie of sin that God sent his Son to bleed, and every day the thoughts of God are centred upon the extermination of evil and the extension of his own truth. Nothing can set forth in words to us the hatred and detestation which God has in his heart of anything which is untrue. Oh that we knew and felt this, and would glow with the same anger, seeking to exterminate the false, slaying it in our own hearts, and giving it nothing to feed upon in our temper, our conversation, or our deeds! III. But I shall now come to make a practical use of the text, in the third place, by observing HOW WE OUGHT TO ACT TOWARDS GOD IF IT BE TRUE THAT HE Is A “ GOD THAT CAN- NOT LIE.” Brethren, if it be so that God cannot lie, then 7¢ must be the natural duty of all his creatures to believe him. I cannot resist that conclusion. It seems to me to be as clear as noonday, that it is every man’s duty to believe truth, and that if God must speak and act truth, and truth only, it is the duty of all intelli- gent creatures to believe him. Here is “ duty- aith,” again, which some are railing at ; but how they can get away from it, and yet believe that God cannot lie, I cannot understand. If it be not my duty to believe in God, then it is no sin for me to call God a liar. Will any one subscribe to that — that God is a liar? I think not; and if to think God to be a lar would be a most atrocious piece of blasphemy, then it can only be so on the ground that it is the natural and incumbent duty of every creature under- standing the truthfulness of God to believe in God. If God has set forth the Lord Jesus Christ as the propitiation for sin, and 28*330 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. has told me to trust Christ, it is my duty to trust Christ, because God cannot lie; and though my sinful heart will never believe in Christ as a matter of duty, but only through the work of the Holy Spirit, yet faith does not cease to be a duty; and whenever I am unbelieving, and have doubts concerning God, however moral my outward life may be, I am living in daily sin; I am perpetrating a sin against the first principles of morality. If I doubt God, as far as I am able I rob him of his honor, and stab him in the vital point of his glory; I am, in fact, living an open traitor and a sworn rebel against God, upon whom I heap the daily insult of daring to doubt him. O my hearers! there are some of you who do not believe in Christ; I wish you would ook at your character and position in this light. You are not trust- ing in Christ for your salvation. Remember, “ He that believeth not God hath made him a liar.” Those are John’s own inspired words, and you are, every day that you are not a believer in Christ, virtually writing upon your door-post, and saying with your mouth, “ God is a liar; Christ is not able to save me ; I will not trust him ; I do not believe God’s promise ; I do not think he is sincere in his invitation to me to come to Christ; I do not be- lieve what God says.” Remember that you are living in such a state as this; and may God the Holy Ghost impress you with a sense of the sin of that state ; and, feeling this your sin and mis- ery, I pray God to lead you to cry, “ Lord, I believe ; help thou my unbelief’ This, then, is our first practical conclusion from the fact. that God cannot lie. Other thoughts suggest themselves. Lf we were absolutely sure that there lived on earth a person who could not lie, how would you treat him? You know there cannot be such a man. There may be a man who will not lie, but ther of whom it may be said that he cannot lie ; for, alas! we have all the power of evil in us, and we can lie, and to a certain de- gree it is quite true that “all men are liars.” e cannot be a man But if you could be certain that there was a man out of whose heart the black drop had been wrung, and that he could not lie, how would you acttowardshim? Well, I think you would culty ate his acquaint-WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 331 ance. If you be true yourselves, you would desire his friend- ship. You would say, “ He is the friend for me; I have trusted in such and such a man, and he has played the Judas ; I asked counsel of another, and he was en Ahithophel ; but if this man cannot lie, he shall be my bose: companion, if he will accept me; and he shall be my counsellor, if he will but have the good- ness to directme.” I should expect to see a lévee of all the good in the world waiting at the man’s door. You know how the world, with all its sinfulness, does reverence the man who is true. We had an instance in our streets the other day, of the good man and the true, who received homage of all, and yet that man could lie; but inasmuch as we never have seen that he did, but his life has been straightforward, therefore we have paid him honor, and deservedly so. Well, now, if such be the case, should not all Christians seek more and more the friendship of God? “ O Lord, be thou my familiar friend, my counsellor, my guide ; if thou canst not lie I will lay bare my heart to thee; I will tell thee all my secrets; I will trust thee with all the desires of my heart: I know thou canst never betray me, or be unfaith- ful; let there be a union established betwixt my soul and thine, and let it be broken never.” Let communion with God be the desires of your hearts on the ground that he cannot lie. If we knew a man who could not lie, we should believe him, methinks, without an oath. I cannot suppose that when he came into the court of justice they would pass him the Bible ; no, his word would be better than the oath of ordinary men, if he could not. lie. You would not want any sign or evidence to prove what he said; you would take his word at once. So should it be with God. Ah, dear freinds! God has given us more than his word ; he has given us his oath; and yet, strange is it that we, who profess to be his children, are vile enough to distrust our own Father ; and sometimes, if he does not give us signs and evl- dences, we begin to distrust him ; so that, after all, I am afraid we rather trust the signs than trust God, and put more confidence in frames and evidences than we do in the naked promise ; which is an atrocious sin indeed. Many believers cannot be comfortable LEEERTEBOEE ES832 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. without signs and evidences. When they feel in a good frame of mind — ah! then God’s promise is true. When they can pray heartily, when they can feel the love of God shed abroad in their hearts, then they say, “ How God has kept his promise!” Ah! but, my brother, that is a seeing-faith: “ Blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed.” Faith is to believe in God when my heart is as hard as the nether millstone, when my frames are bad, when I cannot pray, when I cannot sing, when I can do nothing good. To say, ‘“ He has promised and will perform; he has said that whosoever believeth in Christ is not condemned; I do believe in Christ, and therefore I am not condemned,” — this is genuine faith. Again: if we knew a man who could not lie, we should believe him in the teeth of fifty witnesses the other way. Why, we should say, “They may say what they will, but they can lie.” You might have good evidence that they were honest men usu- ally, but you would say, “They can lie; they have the power of lying; but here is a man who stands alone, and cannot lie; then his word must be true.” This shows us, beloved, that we ought to believe God in the teeth of every contradiction. Even if outward providence should come to you, and say that God has forsaken you, that is only one; and even if another, and another, and another should come, and fifty trials should all say that God has forsaken you, yet, as God says, “I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee,” which will you take the one promise of God who cannot lie, or the fifty outward providences which you can- not interpret? I know what the devil has been whispering in your ear: “The Lord hath forsaken thee quite, Thy God will be gracious no more.”’ But then, recollect who hath said, “ Fear thou not; for I am with thee: be not dismayed ; for I am thy God.” Which will you believe — the devil’s insinuation, or God’s own testimony? My dear sister, you have been praying for a certain thing for years ; you pray, you"pray, and you pray again, and now discouragement arises ; unbelief says, “ God will not hear that prayer ; that prayerWHAT GOD CANNOT DO. 333 of yours does not come up before the throne of God, and there will be no answer.” But the Lord has said, “ Ask, and it shall be given you ; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you.” Which will you believe — your unbelief, the long months of weariness, and the anxieties which prompted you to discouragement, or will you believe in the naked promise? Why, if God cannot lie, let us give him what we would give to a man if he were of the same character — our full confidence, even in the teeth of contradiction; for he is “ God, that can- not lie.” If a man were introduced to us, and we were certain that he could not lie, we should believe everything he said, however 1n- credible it might appear to us at first sight to be. I shall have an appeal to every soul here present. It does seem very incred- ible at first sight that God should take a sinner, full of sin, and forgive all his iniquities in one moment, simply and only upon the ground of the sinner believing in Christ. I recollect the time when it seemed to me utterly impossible that I could ever have my sins forgiven. I had a clear sense of the value of par- don, and this thought would be always ringing in my ears: “ It is too good to be true that you should be pardoned ; that you, an enemy, should be made into a child; that you, who have gone on sinning against light and against knowledge, should yet re- joice in union to Christ; the thing is too good to be true.” But, beloved friends, supposing it should seem too good to be true, yet, since you have it upon the testimony of one who “ cannot lie,” I pray you believe it. “ But, sir, —” No, none of your “buts ;” he cannot lie. “Ah / but, —” Away with your “ahs” or your “ buts,” for Jehovah cannot lie. He has said if) $2 6 that believeth and is baptized shall be saved.” To believe is to trust Christ. If, therefore, you are trusting Christ, you must be saved; and whatever you may be, or whatever you may have done, if you wiil now trust Jesus Christ, you have God's Word for it — and he cannot lhe — that you shall be saved. Come, now, will you kick against the promise because of its greatness ? Do not so, but let your doubts and fears be hushed to sleep ; and334 WHAT GOD CANNOT DO. now, with the promise of God as your pillow, and God’s faith fulness as your support, lie down in peace, and behold in faith’s open vision the ladder, the top whereof leads to heaven. Trust the promise of God in Christ, and depend upon it that he will be as good to you, even to you, as his own Word, and in heaven you shall have to sing of the “ God that cannot lie.” I would that these weak words of mine —for I am very con- scious of their feebleness this morning — may nevertheless have comfort in them for any who have been doubting and fearing, that they may trust my Lord; and sure I am that if they begin a life of faith, they will begin a life of happiness and of security. “The just shall live by faith,” and well may they do so when they have to trust in a “ God that cannot lie.”SERMON XVIII. LABOR IN VAIN. & JONAH SAID UNTO THEM, TAKE ME UP, AND CAST ME FORTH INTO THE SEA; 80 SHALL THE SEA BE CALM UNTO YOU: FOR I KNOW THAT FOR MY SAKE THIS GREAT TEMPEST IS UPON YOU. NEVERTHELESS THE MEN ROWED HARD TO BRING IT TO THE LAND; BUT THEY COULD NOT, FOR THE SEA WROUGHT, AND WAS TEMPESTUOUS AGAINST THEM.” — Jonah i. 12, 18. Turse mariners manifested most commendable humanity. They were not willing, even though it were to preserve their own lives, to cast overboard an innocent man; therefore they first used their best endeavors; and when these failed, they made a solemn appeal to God, entreating him not to lay upon them innocent blood: and then, since necessity hath no law, Jonah, as a last resource, was given up to the boisterous element, but not till every effort had been made to save him. We should be very careful of human life, doing nothing which even indirectly may destroy or injure it. And if we should be jealous over life, how much more anxious should we be concerning men’s souls ! and how watchful lest we should do anything by which the least of the human family may have his eternal interests endangered by our example or teaching! God give us, like these mariners, to row hard, that if possible we may bring the ship to land; la- boring that none around us may be left to perish. I shall not, however, dwell upon that aspect of the text. Our Saviour selected Jonah as one of his peculiar types: “There shall no sign be given,” said he, “ to the men of this generation but the sign of the prophet Jonas.” We believe, therefore, that we areoe : Sarak 336 LABOR IN VAIN. not erring if we translate the details of the history of Jonas into spiritual illustrations of man’s experience and action with regard to Christ and his gospel. We have before us a picture of what most men do before they will resort to God’s remedy ; that remedy is here most fairly im- aged in the deliverance of the whole ship’s company by the sacrifice of one on their behalf. I. Our first observation is, that SINNERS, WHEN THEY ARE TOSSED UPON THE SEA OF CONVICTION, MAKE DESPERATE EF- FORTS TO SAVE THEMSELVES. The men rowed hard to bring the ship to land. The Hebrew is they “ digged” hard, sending the oars deep into the water with much exertion and small success. The tempest so tossed the sea about that they could not row in good and orderly manner ; but they desperately tugged at the oars, which the towering waves rendered useless by too deep a digging. Straining every sinew, they labored by violence to get the ship in safety to the haven. Brethren, no word in any language can express the violence of earnest action with which awakened sinners strive and struggle to obtain eternal life. Truly, if the kingdom of God were in the power of him that willeth and him that runneth, they would possess it at once. Since they struggle, however, in an unlawful manner, the crown of victory will never be awarded them ; they may kindle the fire, and rejoice in the sparks thereof, but thus saith the Lord, “This shall ye have of mine hand ; ye shall ie down in sorrow.” Let us notice some forms of the fleshy energy of men strain- ing after self-salvation. The most usual is, moral reformation. We have seen the drunkard, when conscience has been awakened, renounce his cups altogether ; he has gone further than temper- ance, and has espoused total abstinence ; and proceeding further still, it often happens that, in the excess of zeal, he vomits forth furious words against all who go not the same length of absti- nence as himself. Yonder man was given up to blasphemy, but now an ill word never comes from his tongue; and he is there-LABOR IN VAIN. 337 fore content with himself because he no longer curses God. Another has followed an ill trade, or has been in the habit of neglecting the Sabbath-day ; conscience has mercifully led him to give up his ill connections and attend a place of worship. Is vot this well? It is indeed well; but it is not enough. It is marvellous how far men will push their reforms, and yet how little solid peace such purgings can secure. For what is the sinner after his reformation but the blackamoor washed clean, a blackamoor still? J would have the Ethiopian clean, by all man- ner of means; but I would not let him fancy that the soap and the nitre will make him white. I would have the leopard tamed and caged, but this will not remove his spots. Moral reforms are excellent in themselves, but they are dangerous if we rest in them. Let even a corpse be washed, but let no man dream that the most careful washing will restore it to life. % Ye must be born again,” rings out the death-knell of all salvation by human effort. Unless reforms are founded in regeneration, they are baseless things, which fail in the end for want of foundation ; they are deceptive things, affording a transient hope, which soon, alas! must melt away. Ah, my hearer! thou mayst go on im- proving and reforming, but all thy present and future amend- ments can never wipe out the old score of sin. There stands the black catalogue of thy sins, engraved as in eternal brass ; the gloomy record remains unaltered and unalterable by any deeds of thine. Something more potent than thy tears and change of life must take away the sins of thy departed years. Beware, then, of thinking that you are getting the ship to land, row as hard as you may with these oars of human resolution. Others add to their reformation 4 superstitious regard to the outward form of religion. According to the sect with which they unite, they become excessively religious. ‘They reverence every nail of the church door, and every panel of the pulpit ; there is hich is not sacred to them, nor even a y “ Amen,” every vest- ld of sanctity about it. +s of worship, but the not a brick in the aisle w pantile on the roof. Every rubric, ever ment and candlestick, has to them a wor They are not content with the ordinary da} 29838 LABOR IN VAIN. : ° S e is (pre ° : church bell rings every morning 5 and well it may, for if men are to earn salvation in God’s house, ee had need be there all day and all ni ight too. Even ina Protestant Church, men row very hard with multitudinous sttciwaneee 4 superstitious per- formances; but when you get into the Romish Church, the labor in vain comes to a climax. What with vows of poverty, celibacy, silence, passive obedience, and a thousand other tortures, if the Moloch whom they worship be not satisfied, he ought to be. We c= } A heard but the other 6 of a gentleman giving up all his goodly heritage, selling his broad acres, and pouring all ‘the purchase- money into the coffers of the monks and priests, in order that at last, by rowing hard in this way, he night get the ship to land. It is remarked of the Hindoos, that they give vastly more to their idols than we bestow upon the cause of God, and I suppose it is true: but then they also are rowing hard to get the ship to land. All they do is for themselves. Self is always a mighty power in the world. Do but teach men that they can ga uin their own salvation by their own doings and mortifications had offer- ings, and I yous expect to see the treasury filled; I would ex- pect to hear the whip constantly going upon the shoulders; but 1 I should despair of seeing anything like holiness surviving in the Sis land. Superstition is hard rowing; the ship will not come to the is land thereby. Men invent ceremony after ceremony ; there is this pomp and that show, this gaudy ornament and that proces- sion; but the whole matter ends in outward display: no secret 1 soul-blessing results flow therefrom. Priests and their votaries may go on piling up human inventions ad infinitum, but they will forever fail to ease the conscience, or give rest to a disturbed soul. Man’s awful necessities crave something more than the husks of superstition. You will find another form of the same thing among ourselves. Many persons row hard to get the ship to land by a notional be- lef in orthodox doctrine. This superstition is harder to deal with, but quite as dangerous as the belief in good works. It is quite as legal an idea for me to think to be Acepind by be- lieving good doctrine, as to expect to be pardoned for doing goodLABOR IN VAIN. 339 works. Yet we have scores of people who, if they can get hold of the Calvinistic creed at the right end; if they become masters of it, and know how to argue against Arminianism ; if they be- come not only sound Calvinists, but a little sounder still, having not only the sixteen ounces to the pound, but two or three ounces over and above, so as to make them ultra-Calvinistic, — why then they fancy that all must be well. “ T never can hear a preacher,” this man will say, “ who is not sound. I can tell at once when there is a grain of free will in the sermon.” This is all very well; but he who boasts thus may be no better than the devil: nay, he may not be so good ; for the devil believes and trembles, but these men believe and are too much hardened in their own conceit to think of trembling. Away with the idea that believ- ing sound doctrine and chaining ourselves to a cast-iron creed is vital godliness and eternal life! Orthodox sinners will find that hell is hot, and that their knowledge of predestination will not yield a cooling drop to their parched tongues. Condemning other people, cutting off the saints of God right and left, is but poor virtue, and to have these blessed doctrines in the head while neglecting them in the heart is anything but a gracious sign. If ye can “a hair divide betwixt the west and north-west side,” do not therefore fancy that your fine gifts and profound orthodoxy will ensure you an entrance into the kingdom of heaven. Ah! you may row with those oars, but you will not get the ship to land; ye must be saved by sovereign grace, through the operation of the Holy Spirit upon the heart, or you will not be saved at all. As it is not by domg that we are saved, neither is it by subscribing creeds; there is something more than this needed ere the ship reach the port. Perhaps, in this congregation, we have other subtle methods of endeavoring to do the same thing, The pastor has noticed that many are resting upon their own tncessant prayers. Ah, my poor hearer ! thou knowest thy need of something, thou canst hardly tell what; thou hast heard the subject of salvation ex- plained to thee a hundred times, and now, when it comes to the pinch, thou dost not understand it after all. I thank God that3840 LABOR IN VAIN. thou hast learned how to pray ; that thy sighs and cries and groans come up before him; but I sorrow because thou trustest in thy prayers, and resteth in them. Remember that thou wilt no more be saved for the sake of thy prayers than for the sake of thy good works. If thy knees become hard as the knees of St. James are said to have been, — hard, like the camel’s, through long kneeling, — and if, with the Psalmist, thou couldst say, “ My throat is dried, mine eyes fail,” — yet all this, if thou lookest to it, and dost not look to Christ, will never avail thee. I knew what it was for months to ery out to God, and to find the heavens above me as brass, because I had not understood clearly the soul- quickening words, ‘‘ Believe and live ;” but dreamed that by praying I could-get myself into a suitable state to receive mercy, oer perhaps move the heart of God towards me; whereas that heart needed no moving towards me: it was full of love from be- fore the foundation of the world. Pray, my dear brethren; let me never discourage you in that. But do let me beg you not to sit still, or recline upon your prayers ; for if you get no further than your prayers, you will never get to heaven. ‘There is more wanted than crying to God; more wanted than earnest desires, however passionately they may be breathed. There must be faith in Jesus, or else you will row hard with your prayers, and you will never bring the ship to land. Then there are others who are toiling by —I scarcely know how to describe it—a sort of mental torture. Oh! the many who say, “If I could feel as I ought to feel! O, sir, my heart is as hard as a nether millstone ; and yet I do not feel that it is hard —Jwish I did. I would give my eyes if I could repent. I would give my right arm if I could but weep for sin. I would be satisfied to be a beggar, or to lie rotting in a dungeon, if I could but feel that I was fit to come to the Saviour; but, alas! I feel nothing. If I did but feel my unfitness, — did but know my own undesert, —I should have hope; but I am made of such hell- hardened steel that neither terrors or mercies can move me. Oh, that I could repent! Oh, that this rock could give forth streams like that rock which Moses smote in the wilderness of old! Oh, Pr ErLABOR IN VAIN. 341 that I could but bring my heart to melt into something like desires after God and Christ! Oh, I am everything but what I should be!” Now, my dear hearer, you will row very hard in this way before you will ever come to land; for self-righteousness lies at the bottom of all this. You want to save your heart from hard- ness, and then come to Jesus 5 which is as much as to say you wish to save yourself, and then come to him to put the finishing- stroke upon you. You have a secret attachment. to your own goodness, or you would not be so eager to compass a fitness ; other- wise you would at once do as you are bidden and rest alone on Jesus. Your business is not with self, but with Jesus ; with Jesus, just as you are. However hard your heart may be, — however destitute of feeling you may have become, — this, though it should be subject for lamentation, should never keep you from resting in him who is able to save to the uttermost them that come unto God by him. I tell you, your trying to get your heart into a right state, your trying to repent, your trying to be humble, is all labor in vain. It is all going the wrong way to work. Your business is with Christ; he can soften, cleanse, and sanctify ; but you can do none of these, try as you will. Come as ye are to my Lord Jesus, hard heart and all, and the sea shall soon be calm to you; but while you row with your own oars, the sea will only work and be the more tempestuous. Various are the shapes which this carnal energy assumes. I have met with many who are in this kind of case. They are constantly starting objections to their own salvation, and trying to answer them. They have comfort for a moment, and they say, “ Yes, this is very sweet, but —;” and then they will spend a week or two in trying to split up that but. When they are rid of this but, a mercy will come to them from another quarter, and they are sure to meet it with, “ Ah! blessed be God for that, but —” They are always pulling away at eeping up to the side of these buts; these big waves come Sw oars into them. Friend, their vessel, and they try to dig their ed until you, an unpardoned sinner, have if you are never sav ved ; because there answered all objections, you will never be sa aoe TETELETTENTERRELEREL EEE PEFEELPEELETEEEREEEL ED EE] | PEeel342 LABOR IN VAIN. are a thousand objections to the salvation of any man, which can only be met by one argument, and that is the blood of Jesus. If thou wilt go here and there seeking answers to the devil’s suggestions of unbelief, thou mayst travel the whole round, and end thy fruitless task in despair. But if thou wilt come to Jesus, — if thou wilt see him like another Jonah thrown out of the ship for thy sake, — if thou wilt but see him lost that thou mayst be saved, — then a peace which passeth all understanding shall keep thy heart and mind by Christ Jesus. IT. We will now take the second point. Like these mariners, THE FLESHY EFFORTS OF AWAKENED SINNERS MUST INEVI- TABLY FAIL. The text says, “The men rowed hard to bring it to the land, but they could not.” With all man’s rowing after mercy and salvation, he can never find it by his own efforts. For this good reason, first of all, that ¢t 7s contrary to God’s law for a sinner to get comfort by anything he can do for and by himself. Were is the law: “ By the works of the law there shall no flesh living be justified.” That rule, then, fixed and fast as the laws of nature, shuts out forever all hope of the attain- ment of joy and peace by anything that we can do, or be, or feel ; for all these the law already claims of us. How mad, then, will it be on our part if we run counter to a divine law! Success is impossible in so perverse a course. I do well, therefore, if I discourage all the efforts of awakened consciences to find peace anywhere except in the work of Christ. Let a man labor never so earnestly, yet if he goes against the laws of nature, you know his labor is lost. Here is an oven to be warmed, for hungry persons need bread. See the workers, yonder, how they toil, bringing snow with all their might to heat the oven. “ Well,” you say, “do not discourage them; do not discourage their ear- nest activity! It is a pity, when you see people really determined to do anything, to discourage their efforts!” Ah! it isa pity indeed, except when these efforts are foolish. If I see them bringing snow to heat an oven, I know they will never do it, work as hard as they may; and when sinners bring their ownLABOR IN VAIN. 343 works to yield them spiritual comfort, I know that they are spending their labor for that which profiteth not, and I must and will discourage them. Some years ago certain persons engaged in a speculation to sink a coal-mine in a part of England where coal was never found. Prospectuses were issued, directors obtained, and share- holders duped, and the workmen began to sink their shaft. Now, it was absolutely certain — any geologist could have told them so —that they would not find coal, let them dig to doomsday. Suppose you and I had gone there and seen them digging, and had laughed at them, or told them it was all of no avail, wiseacres might have replied, “ You ought not to discourage coal-mining ; you ought not to discourage men who are working so very hard.” J would say, “I would not discourage coal-mining in any place where there is coal to be had; but for these poor souls to throw away their sweat and their money for that which is not coal, I will discourage them in that insane enterprise, and think I do them good service.” When we see men struggling aiter eternal a life through their own efforts, we know eternal life is not to be had there. We are glad that they are awakened to anything like effort, for anything is better than spiritual sloth: but we are grieved to see them laboring in the very fire, toiling where suc- cess can never crown their endeavors. There is no salvation by the works of the law; why, then, look for it? Hf you dash your head against the law of nature, the law of nature will not change for you; and if you labor in opposition to the irreversible law of God, you will pay the penalty of it in your utter ailure. ‘The ancients fabled that it was one of the tortures of hell to which the daughters of Danaus were ondemned, that they should fill a tub without a bottom with buckets full of holes. Behold the picture of the self-righteous man’s undertaking. He may labor, he may toil; but he is filling a bottomless tub with leaky buckets ; and work as he may, though he drop down dead in the attempt, success is impossible. Ob that he knew it to Te so, and would trust in the Lord Jesus ! : es ree Besides this, the man cannot succeed in obtaining salvation by T1ttht344 LABOR IN VAIN. his own efforts, because tn what he ¢s doing he ts insulting God 3 he is casting dirt in the face of Christ; he is denying the whole testimony of the Holy Ghost. Ah, my hearer! if thou couldst save thyself, why was it necessary that Christ should die for thee? If thy prayers could avail, why did he sweat great drops of blood? Why, man, if there were any merit in thy mortifica- tion, or thy reformation, what need that the Prince of life and glory should veil himself in ignominy and suffer a death of shame? Lhou dost in fact say, by thy fleshly attempts, I want no Saviour ; I can save myself. ‘Thou dost in fact scoff at the great atone- ment which God has made in the person of Christ. This insult wilt ruin thy soul, except thou turn from it. Repent of it, I pray thee ; humble thyself, and receive Jesus’ finished work. If, scorning the Jordan, Naaman had gone to Abana and Pharpar, he might have washed not only seven times, but seventy times seven; he might have earnestly persevered in the constant im- mersion, but he must have remained a leper to his dying day. If you scorn the atonement, and neglect God’s great command to be- lieve and live, — if you go about to try, and feel, or be, or do, — you will use these Abanas and Pharpars to your own damnation, but to your own salvation never. I pray you, do not insult God by looking for balm in Gilead, or for a physician there; for there is no balm in Gilead; there never was any: there is no physician there, or else the daughter of my people would long ago have been healed; men would long ago have saved themselves. You must look higher than the Gilead of human energy ; you must look higher than earth’s physicians ; you must look to the hills whence cometh our help, the great mountains of a Saviour’s work and merit. There are many other reasons why it is impossible that a man can ever get comfort in the way of works and feelings. The principal I will mention is, because that ¢s the way of the curse. He who is under the law is under the curse. So long as I stick to the law, do what I may, I am under the curse of the law, and consequently under the curse ; and how can I expect in the way of the curse to find the eternal blessing? Oh, folly ! to chooseLABOR IN VAIN. 845 the way of the curse as the way of blessing. But the best proof of it allis experience. Ask either saint or sinner, and you shall find that peace was never obtained in the way of the flesh. Turn to the Christian, and he’will tell you, “ Therefore being justified By FAITH, we have peace with God.” He will tell you that when he turns away from faith, and looks to himself, at once his darkness begins. He will assure you that he never walks in perfect light and true comfort except when he keeps his eye fast fixed upon the great sacrifice of Calvary. I know, brethren, whenever I am dull and drooping as to my eternal interests, it is always because I have thought more of my graces than of Christ’s grace, or more of the Spirit's work in me than of the finished work of Christ on my behalf. There is no living happily, but by depending wholly upon Christ. A sinner, resting upon his Saviour as his only hope, is blest. Now, if this be the experi- ence of all saints, and if no sinner living will dare to tell you that he can get his conscience quiet by his own works, why do any of you try it? Heaven bears witness that salvation by faith ‘5 certain: hell bears witness that works do but ruin us. Oh ! hear the double testimony, and lay hold upon eternal life through the person of Christ Jesus. O my dear friend, if you are really panting for salvation, go not round and round these dreary per- formances of your own doings; it must all end in misery, disap- pointment, and despair. “They rowed hard to bring it to land, but they could not.” All human work which does not begin and end in the Lord Jesus must be a non-success. All your working has been a non-success with you up to the present, and so it will be to the end of the chapter. Give it up, and God help you to try his method, for it is sure and efficacious. Ill. Now, with very great brevity, I will bring you to the third point of the sermon, which is, that’ THE SOUL’S SORROW WILL CONTINUE TO INCREASE SO LONG AS IT RELIES UPON ITS OWN EFFORTS. What is the effect of all that the creature doth before it he- lieves in Christ? It may be overruled for good, but much of ‘EEEELE] ]LABOR IN VAIN. its effect is mischievous. The good effect which flows from it lies in this: the more a man strives to save himself, the more * convinced will he become of his own invpotence and powerless- ness. I thought that I could turn to God whenever I pleased till I tried to turn to him; I thought repentance a very easy thing till I began to repent; I dreamed that faith in Christ must be a mere child’s play till I had to groan, “ Lord, help my un- belief!” As for the law, when we attempt to keep it, we groan under a heavy burden, which we have no strength to bear. “How long beneath the law I lay In bondage and distress! I toiled the precept to obey, But toiled without success.” Oh! it is hard serving the law. He is a cruel taskmaster ; the whip is always going, and the flesh is always bleeding. It is hard service. Weary and faint, we fall down under it, and feel it to be a load intolerable to be borne. Well is Haggi cho- sen as the type of the law, for indeed it gendereth unto bondage ; and well was blazing Sinai chosen as its representative, for even Moses said, when standing upon that mountain, “I do exceed- ingly fear and quake.” To be clean divorced from all legal hope is a blessed preparation for gospel marriage with Christ. It was well that rowing hard made the mariners feel their inability to cope with the tempest ; and it is best of all when creature efforts produce a clear discovery of creature weakness. Another good result will sometimes follow. The man passion- ately striving to save himself by keeping the law, finds out the spirituality of that law, a spirituality which he never saw before. He has given up outward acts of sin, but on a sudden he is startled to find that though he has given them all up in open fact, yet that he is condemned for allowing the thought of them in his heart. Even a look may be fornication, though no act of sin shall follow it. He remembers that even the wish of his heart may be theft; and that covetousness is not only straining after another man’s goods, but envying him the enjoyment of .LABOR IN VAIN. 347 them. Now, he finds the work is impossible indeed ; for he might sooner hold the winds in his fist than control his paccteue or with his breath blow the sea into a calm, sooner than he could restrain the impetuous propensities of his nature. , brethren, it is a good thing when we find that the commandment of God is exceeding broad, — when we see the sharpness of this great axe of the law, and how it cuts at the very root of the tree, and leaves us no green thing standing wherein we can boast our- selves. So far so good; fleshly effort, overruled by divine grace, has helped us to the discovery of ‘the grandeur and dig- nity of the divine law. But Lam afraid that much of this toil and labor is very mis- chievous, because ¢¢ makes unbelief take a jirmer grip. It is easier to comfort a soul who has been a short time in darkness, than it is to comfort one who has given way a long time to an unbelieving state of heart. I remember one, — I believe she is in darkness now, and if I remember right, it is ten years ago since first she fell into these doubts and fears, — and IT am sometimes afraid she will never see the light, because it has become chronic with her. Giant Despair’s prisoners do not all escape ; he has a yard full of bones; these are the relics of willing prisoners who would not be comforted, and put out their own eyes toa roid the light. I believe that some sinners make excuses for themselves out of their despair, and that they let their doubts and fears grow till they cast a thick shadow, like Jonah’s gourd, and then they sit down with a miserable sort of comfort beneath the leaves. “There is no hope, therefore will I go on in my sins; there is no hope for me, therefore let the worst come to me; I can but be damned ; I will fold my arms, and sit still.” Oh, it is a dam- nable temptation this ; itis one which ruins multitudes, Iam sure. This is the devil’s This is Satan’s man-trap: beware of it. stocks in the inner prison: he is to be pitied who is laid by the heels in them.- While you are rowing hard to get your vessel to land, and standing out against the gracious plan which God has ordained, you are letting the nightmare of unbelief grow ‘nto a dread reality; you are letting this deadly incubus rest EERERTELERELULLL LE EPEEERRELI348 LABOR IN VAIN. more terribly upon your hearts. , sinner, I pray God deliver yon from this work-mongering, this horrible trying to save your- self by something home-grown home-spun. If we could cut off the head of your self-righteousness, we would have hope of you. If you would give ane all attempts to deliver yourselves, and eave the case in Christ’s hands, the thing would be done. But vhile you are thus doubting and fearing, you are sinking deeper in the mire ;\and it is harder to get you out now than ever it was. Remember this one thing, — that while the sinner is thus straining himself to get to heaven by his own righteousness, his day of wrath ts getting nearer. Ie is adding sin to sin; he is accumulating the fuel for his own burning, — filling the sea of wrath in which he must be drowned forever. What! when I am praying, groaning, and crying to God, and when J am trying to mend my ways and do my best, do you say I am only doing mischief? Ido say it. I say these things are good in them- selves ; but if you are resting in them, you are so flying in the teeth of God’s great gospel, so insulting the dignity of the great Saviour, that you are adding sin to sin; and among the fagots for your burning there shall be none so dry, which shall burn so terribly, as your own good wicked works, your own rebellious virtues, your own proud, detestable righteousness, which you set up in opposition to the merit, blood, and righteousness of God’s appointed Mediator. Gold is good enough; but if you bow down before the golden calf, I will hate the gold because you worship it. Your morality is good enough ; but if you trust to it, I will hate your morality because it is your destruction. Sinner, I pray you remember that your life is being shortened all the while you tarry in the plains of self. Time flies, and you fade like a leaf, while your righteousness, which are but filthy rags, are crying out against you. You are laboring without success ; but more, you are losing time which might have been turned to better purpose. While you are spending your money for that which is not bread, you are getting nearer and nearer to the dread famine when there shall be no bread to buy. While you are trying to get this fool’s oil, with which to keep your lamps Coenen ccsLABOR IN VAIN. 349 burning, the bridegroom is coming and the midnight is hastening, when you shall have to say, “ Give us of your oil, for our lamps are gone out.” There shall be no time then for you to buy ; for the darkness shall have come upon you, and the door shall be shut, and the bridegroom’s supper shall have begun. Oh that 1 could have some power to induce you not to follow any longex these fine ways of yours, these proud, deceptive plans! Oh that you would receive God’s plan of redemption, and enjoy the peace which it brings! IV. We will try to explain God’s plan, and then we have done. That is our fourth point: THAT THE WAY OF SAFETY FOR SINNERS IS TO BE FOUND IN THE SACRIFICE OF ANOTHER ON THEIR BEHALF. Here is Jonah; leave out the fact that he was sinful, and he becomes an eminent type of Christ. “Take me up and cast me into the sea, and the sea shall become calm under me.” Sub- stitution saves the mariners; substitution saves sinners. This is the essential oil of gospel truth. Jesus Christ saith to his peo- ple, “I am cast into the sea; there in that depth I sleep for a while, like Jonah, to rise again on the third day: but my being cast into the sea makes a deep calm to you.” How very sim- ple this process was! ‘They take Jonah, —he himself desires it, he is thrown overboard, and the deeps swallow him up. Ah, poor Jonah! what a fall! what a terrible descent ! what a fright- fal end to his prophetical career! Down he goes. Did not I see huge jaws opening amid the billows? Was he not devoured by some terrible monster ? Poor fellow! he must have our pity. But, how strange it is! Why, the wind has ceased ; it has dropped dead; and the waves seem to be playing now where they were battling fiercely a moment ago! Nay, the sea is glassy 5 we need not the oars any longer; up with the sails; we shall soon be safe in port. An odd thing this, the drowning of one becomes the safety of all. Mariners, let us sacrifice to Jonah’s God. Ah! itisa strange and marvellous thing. It is that which sets angels singing, and makes the redeemed spirits wonder on for- 30350 LABOR IN VAIN. ever, that Jesus came down into this ship of our common human- ity to deliver it from tempest. The vessel had been tossed about on all sides by the waves of divine wrath. Men had been tugging and toiling at the oar; year after year philosopher and teacher had been seeking to establish peace with God; victims had been offered, and rivers of blood had flowed, and even the first-born of man’s body had been offered up: but the deep was still tempestuous. But Jesus came, and they took him and cast him overboard. Out of the city they dragged him. “ Away with him, away with him; it is not fit that he should live.” Out of all comfort they had cast him long ago: now from society they cast him too. From pity they cast him; from all sympathy they cast him; and at last from life itself they hurl him, while God stands there to help them to cast him into a sea of woes. As he, Jesus, dies, there is a calm. Deep was the peace which fell upon the earth that dreadful day ; and joyous is that calm which yet shall come as the result of the casting out of that representa- tive man who suffered the just for the unjust to bring us to God. Brethren, I wish I had meet words with which I could fitly describe the peace which comes to a human heart when we learn to see Jesus cast into the sea of divine wrath on our account. Conscience accuses no longer. Judgment now decides for the sinner instead of against him. Memory can look back upon past sins, with sorrow for the sin it is true, but yet with no dread of any penalty to come. It is a blessed thing for a man to know that he cannot be punished; that heaven and earth may shake, but he cannot be punished for his sin. If God be unjust I may be damned ; but if God be just I never can be. That is how the saved sinner stands. Christ has paid the debt of his people to the last jot and tittle, and received the divine receipt ; and unless God can be so unjust as to demand twice payment for one debt, no soul for whom Jesus died can ever be cast into hell. Now, it seems to be one of the very principles of our nature to believe that God is just. We feel it, and that gives us our ter- ror at first. But is it not marvellous that this very same first principle — the belief that God is just — becomes afterwards theLABOR IN VAIN. 301 pillar of our confidence and peace? If God be just, I, a sinner, alone and without a substitute, must be punished. Christ stands in my stead, and is punished for me; and now, if God be just, I, a sinner, standing in Christ, can never be punished. God must change his nature before one soul for whom Christ was a substi- tute can ever, by any possibility, suffer the lash of the law. I must confess I do not understand the atonement which some preach. An atonement which does not atone, —a redemption which does not redeem, —a redemption which intends to redeem all men of Adam born, and yet leaves the major part in slavery, —an atonement which makes full atonement for all human sin, and leaves men to be condemned afterwards, — I cannot under- stand that. But I do understand a substitution: Christ taking the place of the believer, — Christ suffering the quid pro quo for the believer’s punishment, — Christ rendering an equivalent to divine wrath for all that his people ought to have suffered as the result of sin. I right well and right joyously under- stand that the believer, knowing that Christ suffered in his stead, can shout with glorious triumph, “ Who shall lay any- thing to the charge of God’s elect?” Not God, for he hath justified ; not Christ, for he hath died, “yea, rather, hath risen again.” My hope is not because T am not a sinner, but because Tam a sinner for whom Christ died. My trust is not that Tam holy, but that, being unholy, Christ died for me. My rest is, here, not in what I am or shall be, or feel, or know, but in what Christ ig and must be, —in what Christ did, and is still doing as he stands before yonder throne of glory. O beloved! it is a blessed thing to get right out of self. But many believers seem to have one foot on self and one on Christ. They are like the angel with one foot on the sea and the other on the land ; only, being angels, they cannot stand on such a foot- ing. Put both feet on the rock, beloved; stand altogether on Christ. Arminianism is one foot on Christ and the other foot on self. “Christ has saved me,” says the Arminian ; there is his foot on the land. But he says, “ T must hold on ; it depends upon me whether J persevere *o the end;” there is his foot on theLABOR IN VAIN. sea. If he does not mind, that foot will give way. But how blessed it is when the Christian can say, “I am saved”! There is no 7f, no but about it. There is nothing for me to do to com- plete my salvation. It is all done. There is not one jot or tittle left to complete the covenant of my salvation ; the covenant of effectual grace is all written out in the fair handwriting of my Saviour, with a pen dipped in his own blood, and it guarantees all spiritual blessings to me forever. The edifice has been built, and there is not wanted a beam, or a brick, or even a nail or a tin-tack to complete it; from its foundation to its top-stone it is all of grace, and all perfect. My garment of salvation has been woven from the top throughout; there isnot a rag of thread orstitch of mine wanted to complete it. “It is finished,’ said the Sa- viour, as he dipped it for the last time in the glorions carmine of his own blood, and made a rich royal robe for his people to wear forever. O brethren! if there were one stone to be put to the walls of our salvation, one single trowel-full of mortar to make the stones set firmly, it would be all undone, all in ruin ; but the whole of it has been completed. Stone and mortar, from basement to summit, all has been completed by sovereign grace. And what shall you and I do? Since Jesus has been cast overboard for us, let us now rest in perfect quiet; let us enjoy the peace “ that passeth all understanding, which shall keep our hearts 7 and minds through Christ Jesus.” And then, having been saved in such a way as this, let us now go to our work for God; not to win life, not to win heaven, — life and heaven are ours already, — but, loved by him, let us now love him with a perfect heart. The man who has not attained to rest in Jesus is incapable of virtue. A man who does anything for his own salvation, acts from a selfish motive, does everything for himself, and has no virtue in him ; but the man who is saved, who knows there is nothing for him to do either to put himself into salvation or to keep himself in it, knowing that all is now finished, having no need to do any- | thing for self, — he does everything for God, and is holy in heart and life. Now, he can sing with Toplady :LABOR IN VAIN. “Loved of my God, for him again With love intense I’d burn; Chosen of him ere time began, I’d choose him in return.” Let us show that this is the true root of virtue. Let us teach men who say this doctrine is licentious, that it is the most heavenly soil in which the fruits of the Spirit can grow. Like a genial sunshine is this doctrine to our fruits to ripen them ; like a heavenly shower to bring them forth. God give thee, sinner, to rest 7» my Saviour; God give thee, saint, to live to thy Saviour ; and he shall have the praise in both.cases. Amen. 30*SERMON XIX. GOD IS WITH US. “IF GOD BE FOR U8, WHO CAN BE AGAINST Us? ””— Romans viii. 31. Tue truth here asserted is indisputable. Even heathens have taken this for their motto, and emblazoned it upon their stand- ards of war. “ God is for us!” has been the w warrior as he has dashed to the fight. How was in such association, ar-cry of many a ever out of place it its force was clearly perceived. Our text, however, protects itself from ill-usage, for you observe that the text is guarded with the little word “ if,” as a sentinel. No man, therefore, has any right to the treasures of this text unless he can give the pass-word and answer the question. man who can say that God is on his side; on the contrary, the most of men are fighting against the Lord. By nature we are the friends of sin, and then God is age ainst us; with all the powers of justice he is against us for our destruction, unless we turn and repent. Is God forus? Remember he is so if we hay reconciled to him by the death of his Son ; must be in arms against us, for even our fire. It is only when we behold the Lord Jehovah in the person of Jesus Christ that our hope and joy can begin. When we see Deity incarnate, — when we see his throne to become man death of the “God with us It is not every e been but an absolute God God isa consuming God surrendering the glories of , and then stooping to. the shameful cross, — it is then that we perceive Immanuel, aeand. perceiving him, we feel that he is on our side. Question thyself then, soul, whether thou art in Clirist, He who is not with Christ js not with God. If thou art withoutGOD IS WITH US. $55 Christ, thou art without God, and a stranger from the common- wealth of Israel; but if, through the sprinkled blood, thou canst say that thou art reconciled unto God, then take the full mean- ing of this text, and feast upon 1°, and be thou blessed ; for “ If God be for us, who can be against us?” We shall handle the text thus, — and may the Holy Spirit make it profitable, — How 7s God for us 2 secondly, Who are against us? and, thirdly, Who are not against us ? I. First, How 1s Gop For Us? Augustine, in his notes upon the verses preceding our text, has véry beautifully said that God is for us, according to the preceding words of the chapter, in four senses. Look back a verse or two, and you will find it. He is for us, for he hath pre- destinated us; he is for us, for he hath called us; he is for us, for he hath justified us; he is for us, because he hath virtually glorified us, and will actually do so. ‘To the people of God here are four very prolific subjects of thought. 1. God is for us, because, according to the words of the apostle, he hath predestinated his people to be conformed to the image of his own dear Son. Now, if God hath predestinated us to eternal life, who can be against us ° Must not the predestinating decree of God take effect? If God hath determined it, who shall dis- annul it? If God hath said it shall be, who is he that shall stay his hand, or resist the omnipotent fiat of the Most High? He said, “ Let there be licht, and there was light ;” he bade the world spring out of nothing, and forth it came. All things obey him; heaven adores him, hell trembles at him. No creature can resist him. As the potter moulds the clay according to his ll while it revolves upon the wheel, even so the infinite, according to his good pleasure in ng the inhabitants of this lower e earth, and own Wi the omnipotent Jehovah doeth the armies of heaven and amo “Jt is he that sitteth upon the circle of th world. ” he taketh up the the inhabitants thereof are as grasshoppers 5 who then, out of these little things, isles as a very little thing: See, my brethren, the fcrce of can stand against or resist him?356 GOD IS WITH US. God’s decree of old in the case of Israel. The Lord had prom- ised to Abraham that his seed should inherit the whole land of Canaan, from the river of Egypt unto the great river, the river Euphrates. See, amid the smoke of the brick-kilns, Israel toils in Egypt. How was God’s decree to be fulfilled? When God makes bare his arm, you shall see and wonder. Pharaoh and all his hosts cannot hold those captives whom God determines to set free. There they go, led forth like sheep by the hands of Moses and Aaron. They cross the desert, until they come to the sea, even to the Red Sea. See, the mighty stream rolls be- fore them, and their ferocious enemies are behind; but the Lord hath determined that they shall inherit the land, and therefore neither can the sea refuse to divide, nor can Pharaoh save him- self when he goeth down into the depths thereof. They are in the wilderness: famine shall destroy them. No; the heavens drop with manna. Thirst shall scorch them. No ; the rock follows them with its living stream. The serpents shall surely bite them. Nay, but the brazen serpent is lifted up, and who- soever looketh shall be healed. The Amalekites attack them, but while Moses holds up his hands Joshua puts the foe to the route. They come to the banks of the Jordan: what ailed thee, O Jordan, that thou wast driven back? The priests go through dry-shod, and all the people of God march after them. Then the Canaanites, with their chariots of iron, came against them in battle; the kings of mighty cities anointed the shield, and laid hold on sword and buckler; but which of them prevailed? Did not Jehovah destroy them all? As he had given them Og, king of Bashan, because “ his mercy endured forever,” and Sihon, king of the Amorites, “because his mercy endured forever ; ” so not a man could stand against them until they possessed the land. The right hand of the Lord fulfilled his own decree. His own right hand and his holy arm hath gotten him the victory. As with a rod of iron he dasheth his enemies in pieces like a pot- ter’s vessel. None could withstand the hosts of Israel ; the walled cities were cast down, and the people of God dwelt in the fat of the land. See, beloved, the result of God’s decree. The gongGOD IS WITH US. 307 of Jacob were feeble and weak, but yet the Lord made them strong enough to drive out the Anakim, who were men of gigan- tic stature; for his purpose shall stand; he will do all his pleas- ure. Let us beware of fighting against one who has God in league with him, for it is in vain to fight against God. It was a good remark of the soothsayers to Haman of old; they said, “ If Mordecai be of the seed of the Jews, before whom thou hast be- gun to fall, thou shalt not prevail against him, but shalt surely fall before him;” and so, if any man be of the company of the elect, —if he be one of those whose names are written in the book of life, —his enemies may contend, but they shall never prevail against him. He must stand whom the Lord ordains to hold ; and if God determines his salvation, neither mortal nor infernal power shall prevail to destroy him. On this account we may boldly say, with the apostle, “ If God be for us, who can be against us?” You cannot believe in a disappointed God; you cannot imagine the imperial decree from the throne of heaven treated as waste paper. It would be far from us so to blaspheme God as to think that any power, known or unknown, can ever overcome him. “ Hath he said, and shall he not doit? Hath be commanded, and shall it not come to pass ?” If thy soul be written upon the palms of J esus’ hands, and graven on his heart, no weapon which is formed against thee shall prosper, and every tongue which riseth against thee in judgment thou shalt con- demn. 2. But, in looking back, you observe the second thing: God is on our side, for he has called us. In the Word of God much stress is laid upon calling. When Abraham left the land of his and went forth, not knowing whither he went, he was ugh in the midst of implacable enemies, because God had called him. “ Who raised up the righteous man from the east, called him to his foot, gave the nations before him, and 2” ‘Who but the God that called him ? made him rule over kings: On that memorable occasion, when Abraham returned from the Melchizedek met him. slaughter of the kings, you remember, At that time Abraham was in great peril, for there was every forefathers, quite safe, tho398 GOD IS WITH US. probability that the defeated kings would gather again their troops, would form alliances with other kings, and would cer- tainly come up to cut down so insignificant a person as that wan- dering shepherd, Abraham ; but what does God say to him ? — “ Fear not, Abraham ; I am thy shield, and thine exceeding great reward.” This became his comfort — God had called him. He was a called man; and where God calls, he will not desert his chosen. “The gifts and calling of God are without repentance.” He does not reverse the call which he has given; but, having once called his children, he remaineth faithful to the call he has given. ‘To use the illustration we have had before: when God called his son out of Egypt, when he fetched Israel from the furnace, who could stand against the called Israelites ? Plague after plague ravaged the land. The cattle died ; the crops were blasted; frogs came up into the king’s chamber; lice covered all their borders. At last the first-born of Egypt died, and they besought Israel to go forth; for when God called them out, who could hold them in? When he said to his prisoners, “ Go forth,” what bolts of iron, or what gates of brass could keep them cap- tives? Let the Lord call by the effectual voice — who is he that shall stand against him? Many of us, I trust, have heard the sacred call; we have made our calling and election sure. You snow how you were called from darkness to light, from sin to holiness, from self-righteousness to spiritual faith in Jesus. Now, he who hath called you is faithful, and he will not forsake the work of his own hands. He has not called you in order to put you to shame ; he has not quickened you, and preserved you, and brought you thus far to deliver you over to the hands of your enemies. “ Be of good courage, and he shall strengthen thine heart ;” wait upon the Lord still, for his call will give thee comfort. “If God be for us, who can be against us?” 3. But, again: God proves that he is for'us by having justified us. All the people of God are wrapped about with the right- eousness of Christ, and, wearing that glorious robe, the Exe CL God sees no fault in them ; Jehovah sees no sin in Jaco ; neither iniquity in Israel. Christ is seen, and not the sinner;GOD IS WITH US. Christ being, therefore, perfection’s own sel, the believer is seen as perfect in him. God regards his people with the same affec- tion as that wherewith he loves his only-begotten Son. He hath pronounced them clean, and clean they are ; he hath proclaimed them just, covered with the righteousness of Christ, and just they are. Come on thou accusing devil; come on ye who lay a thousand things to our charge: but if our Jesus pronounces our acquittal, who is he that condemneth? If he mounts the chariot of salvation, who is he that can be against us? Is it not a mys- teriously blessed thing to wear upon one’s soul the mark of com- plete justification? The heathen have a custom of marking themselves upon the forehead with the seal of their god; but, oh! what aseal is this to wear! — what a mark of the Lord Jesus, to go about this world a perfectly justified man ! God looketh upon common men with anger, — they are not reconciled unto him,—but towards his people he looketh always with eyes of love. No anger is in his heart to them ; not a jot of wrath: af this has been put away through the great sacrifice. Towards them his whole heart goeth out: “The eyes of the Lord are upon the righteous, and his ears are open to their cry.” Being justified, they have peace with God, through Jesus Christ their Lord. O, dear friends! if God be at peace with you, it matters not who is at war with you ; if your Master acquits, it little matters who con- demns ; if Jehovah absolves, your name may be cast out as evil, — you may be ranked among the vilest of the vile, — your name may be a by-word and a proverb, only fit to be wrought up into the drunkard’s song, — but who is he that can be against you? What are all these things, if put into the balance, but lighter than vanity, if Jehovah himself hath justified you ? 4, And yet, again, another sweet reflection comes here, — he hath also glorified us. Remember the four golden links of the chain, — “ Whom he did predestinate, them he also called ; and whom he called, them he also justified ; and whom he justified, them he also glorified.” Now, in one sense, God’s people are glorified even now; for he “hath raised us up together, and made us sit together in heavenly places in Christ Jesus.” Mark, it does not TEETEL | \GOD IS WITH US. say, “ He hath promised that we shall sit there,” but he “ hath ” made us sit there. We do sit there at this hour, for Christ is the representative of every soul for whom he shed his blood ; and when Christ took his seat in heaven, every elect soul took his seat in heaven representatively. Remember, beloved, that the glorification of God’s people is a certain fact ; it is nota thing which may be, but it is a thing which must be. What does Jesus Christ say to his people when he gathers them at the right hand ? “ Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world.” Do observe that. Do you think God has prepared a kingdom, and that he will not bring his people there? Moreover, it is said, “ prepared for you,” — for you, the chosen people of God; and do you imagine that the covenant wisdom of God would prepare a kingdom for men who would not ultimately get there ? Would he plan and arrange how to make them eternally blessed, and yet suffer them to per- ish by the way? “Prepared yor you,” remember, “from the foundation of the world.” There is a crown in heaven which no head can fit but mine; there is a harp there which no fingers must ever touch but mine. Child of God! there is a mansion in heaven which will never be rightly tenanted if you do not get there ; and there is a place at God’s right hand which must be empty: it will be said, “ David’s seat was empty,” unless you shall arrive there. Will it be so? Will there be empty man- sions in heaven? Will there be crowns without heads to wear them? Will there be harps without hands to strike them? No 3 the muster-roll of the redeemed shall be read, and not one shall be found absent: as many as were written upon the breast-plate of the great High Priest shall be securely found there. * Not death nor hell shall e’er divide His chosen from his breast; In the dear bosom of his love They must forever rest.” This gives a fourth reason why God is for us, But, O my brethren! though this brings in the context, I cannot — it isGOD IS WITH US. 361 impossible for any human speech to bring out the depth of the meaning of how God is for us. He was for us before the worlds were made; he was for us, or else he never would have given his Son; he was for us even when he smote the only-begotten, and laid the full weight of his wrath upon him, — he was for us, though he was against Aim ; he was for us when we were ruined in the fall,— he loved us notwithstanding all; he was for us when we were against him, and with a high hand were bidding him defiance ; he was for us, or else he never would have brought us humbly to seek his face. He has been for us in many strug- gles. We have had to fight through multitudes of difficulties; we have had temptations from without and within: how could we have held on until now if he had not been with us? He is for us, let me say, with all the infinity of his heart, with all the om- nipotence of his love, —for us with all his boundless wisdom ; arrayed in all the attributes which make him God, he is for us — eternally and immutably for us ; for us when yon blue skies shall be rolled up like a worn-out vesture ; for us throughout eternity. Here, child of God, is matter enough for thought, even though thou hadst ages to meditate upon it: God is for thee; and if God be for thee, who can be against thee ? TI. In the second place, WHO ARE AGAINST Us? The apostle never meant to say that Christians have no ene- mies, for he knew a great deal better. An old Latin writer observes upon this text, that the succeeding context will show us the enemies we have who are against us. Very briefly let us notice that there are four main enemies who conspire against the life of the children of God; there are man, the world, the flesh, and the devil. These always will be against us, but who are they ? 1. First, there is man. How man has struggled against man ! Man is the wolf of mankind. Not the elements in all their fury, nor the wild beasts of prey in all their cruelty, have ever been such terrible enemies to man as Man has been to his own fellow. When you read the story of the Marian persecution in England, ol362 GOD IS WITH US you are astounded that ever creatures wearing a human form could be so bloodthirsty. Call these Catholes who thus perse- cuted the Protestants? Call them Catholics? Much better call them cannibals, for they behaved more i ke savages than Chris- tians in their bloody martyrdoms and murders of the saints of God. We do not in this age feel the cx ney of man to that extent, but this is only because the custom of the land will not allow-it ; a there are many who dare not smite with the hand, who are very busy in laying on their tongue, and this not by ex- oO ° ee our errors, which they have a perfect right to do, but in ny cases the children of God are misrepresented, slandered, ie persecuted, ridiculed for truth’s sake; and we know many instances where other means are resorted to, — anything to drive the servants of God away from their enteen ey) and from their simple following of their Master. Well did the Lord Jesus Sus say, “ Beware of men.” “ Behold I send you forth as sheep in the midst of wolves; be ye wise as serpents and harmless as doves.” Do not expect men to be the friends of your piety ; or, if they are, suspect the reality of that piety of which ungodly man is a friend. Thou must expect to be sometimes bullied and sometimes coerced, to be sometimes flattered, and, anon, threat- ened; thou must expect at one time to meet with the oily tongue which hath under it the drawn sword, and at another time with the drawn sword itself. Look out, and expect that men will be against you. But what are they al 11; ? Suppose every living man in the world were against you, and that you had to stand in sol- t itude like Athanasius, you might say, as A Sie didse ek, Athanasius, against the whole world; i know I have truth on my side, a anil therefor against the world I st an Of what use was the malice of men against Martin Luther They thought to burn him, but he died in he bed despite them all. They thought to put an end to him, but his little trac cts went everywhere, and the words of Luther ae to be carried on the wings of angels, until in the most distant places the! dae found an enemy sud- denly springing up, where he oe the good seed had all been destroyed. I donot know that it is of a1 y very great service to havGOD IS WITH US. 363 numbers with you. I question whether truth has not generally to be with the minorl sé and whether it is not quite as honorable to serve God with two or three as it would be vith two or three millions ; for if ee ould make a thing right, idolatry ought to be the right religion; and if in countries across the sea numbers made the thing right, why, those who fear the Lord would be few indeed, and idolatry and Romanism would be the right thing. Never judge accordi ing to numbers; say they are nothing but men after all. If they be good men, fight on their side; but if they and the truth fall out, fall out with them. Be a friend to the tru ith ; make one appeal to the law, and to the tes- timony, and if they spea ak not according to this word it is because there is no light in them ; an nd § if there be no light in them, do not t ae your soul with them eto if the blind lead the blind, they sall both fall into the ditch. Who then, what then, are men ‘ Giiinas puppets moved by God’ hand. He has the spring to pull Pi them all ae way he wills, and if they will not serve him he can soon let them quietly into the grave. Therefore be not afraid of the son of man, who is but a worm, a little heap of dust ; be not thou dismayed at him; and i f he put on a black and ter- bim in the face with thme own truthfulness, and ‘hat was grand of Latimer, when he III. He had greatly displeased his ess ot a sermon preached before the king, rific face, look put him to the blush Ar preached before Her TN majesty by his boldn: ] red to preach again on the e following Sabbath, and and was ordere to make an apology for the offence he had given. After read- ing his text, the bishop thus began his sermon : “« Hugh Lati- mer, dost thou know before whom thou art this day to speak? most excellent ma- ioh and mighty mona reh, the ki ing’s ndest ; therefore, an take away thy life if thou ot fie akest not a word that may displease. But then consider well, Hugh, dost thou not know from whence thou comest — upon whose message thou art sent? Even by the grea and mighty God, who is all-present, and who beholdeth all thy ways, and w ho is able to cast thy soul into hell! Therefore, take care that thou deliverest thy message faithfully.” He then ph 1es sty, W h take heed that thou spea364 GOD IS WITH US. proceeded with the same sermon he had preached the preceding Sabbath, but with considerably more energy. Such courage should all God’s children show when they have to do with man. Thou art thyself nothing but a worm ; but if God puts his truth into thee, do not play the coward, or stammer out his message, but stand up manfully for God and for his truth. Some people are forever crying up what they call a becoming modesty. Modesty is very becoming ; but an ambassador of God must recollect there are other virtues besides modesty. If Her Majesty sent an am- bassador to a country with whom we were at war, and the little man should step into the conference, and say, “I humbly hope you will excuse my being here; I wish to be in all things com- placent to your honors and lordships the plenipotentiaries sl feel I am a young man, and you are much older than I am, and therefore I cheerfully submit my judgment to your superior wisdom and experience,’ and so on, — why, I am sure Her Ma- jesty would command him back again, and then command him into a long retirement. What business has he to humble himself, when he is an ambassador for the queen? He must remember he is clothed with the dignity of the power which sent him. And even so is God’s minister, and he counts it foul shame to stoop to any man; he takes for his motto, Cedo nulli, “I yield to none ;” and, preaching God’s truth in love and honesty, he hopes to be able to render a fair account to his Master at last, for unto his Master only doth he stand or fall. 2. The second adversary is the world. This world is like a great field covered with brambles and thorns and thistles, and as the Christian goes through it he is continually in danger of rending his garments or cutting his feet. Yet — “The dear path to thine abode, Lies through this barren land.” Every citizen of heaven must be taught with thorns and briers, as were the men of Succoth. Every child of God must march through the enemies’ land ; for Christ says, “I pray not that thou shouldst take them out of the world, but that thou shouldst keepGOD 18 WITH US. 365 them from the evil.” When is a Christian out of danger ? Never. If he be prosperous, then he is apt to grow purse-proud or carnally secure ; if adversities press upon him, then he is apt to murmur and to grow unbelieving. ‘There are temptations in the high places of the earth, and the valleys are not without them. When the Christian is in honor he is in great peril. Ah! how many have found the high places to be slippery ones ! When the believer is in shame and disrepute, he is in danger too, for many professors have found this cross too heavy for their shoulders. A believer ought to walk hrough this world expect- ing to meet with an enemy behind every hedge, reckoning it a wonder if he shall escape for a single day without a bullet from You are in an enemy’s country, and this enemy is on the foe. the alert continually. You may sleep, but the world never sleeps 5 J its customs are always seeking to bind you with their chains ; its spirit is creeping over you while you are on the exchange, or n the family: you will find the very at- make you sleep as do others. n this state of tempta- in the market, or even 1 mosphere of this world tends to You will have much ado while you are 1 tion to stand your ground, and unless you watch and pray, the world will be too much for you. O, brethren! I would that we knew the world to be more our enemy than we do, for many walk as if they were friends with this world. But such is not the Christian’s position; he can say, “The world is crucified nto the world.” Luther used to say there was unto me, and I unt no love lost between him and the world ; for the world hated him, ‘able story told of a and he hated it no less. There is a memor when some young minister went weeping to “ Ah,” said he, “ that is a cter the first good old minister, him because he had been slandered. have again, for I lost my chara slander itself can say no more than she pect to lose their characters — to trouble I shall never year of my ministry, and > God’s servants must ex and every vice imputed to them ; say to it, “ Thou has said.’ have every virtue denied them, but under all this they can face the world, and " shinkest badly of me, dost thou? not so badly as I think of thee. Thou throwest this and that in my teeth; I throw worse things 01% 51566 GOD IS WITH US. in thine ; and whereas thou sayest I ama noisy busy-body and a meddler, I will tell thee I purpose to be viler still, and to be noisier still against thee, and to meddle yet more with thy vani- ties which ruin the souls of men.” The world is a terrible as- sailant if we are left alone in the conflict ; but what is the world, after all, if God be for us? As for this present age, where will it be in forty years? I see a long line of turf mounds, and many a “ Here he lies,” and this generation is all gone: it passeth away in the fashion thereof ; it is like a candle-snuff, and he that cares for it is like a man worshipping a dying taper. Care little for this world, but think much of the world to come. This poor quicksand — get off of it, lest it swallow thee up; but yonder rock of ages — build thou on it, and thou shalt never suffer loss. 3. I think we said there is a third enemy, and that is the flesh. It is the worst of the three. We should never need to fear man nor the world if we had not this wicked flesh to carry about with us. Inbred corruption is the worst of corruption. “ Lord,” said Augustine, “deliver me from my worst enemy, that wicked man myself.” If a Christian could lay himself down, and run away from himself, and never see himself again, he would be delighted beyond measure; for “truly in me, that is in my flesh, dwelleth no good thing,” is the experience not of the apostle only, but of every child of God. When you would do good, evil is present with you; you want to fly, but, like the hawk which hath a chain to her leg, you can but stretch your wings and flutter, for you cannot mount aloft. You long to feel your heart as hot as an oven, but there is a mountain of ice within you which chills your flaming desires. To will is present with you —oh! if you could be what you would be ! — but how to perform that which is good you find not, by reason of the infirmity and weakness of your nature, and the depravity you have inherited from your parents, Some of you have an irritable temper ; it will be your plague until you die. Others find that though you desire to be liberal to the cause of God, yet a covetous disposition has to be struggled with. Some have to fight against levity, others against U pride; and, on the other hand, there are some ef us whose dailyGOD IS WITH US. 367 burden is to fight against despondency and lowness of spirits ; so that we have all some besetting sin; but if God be for us, what matters the flesh? Ah, poor flesh! thou mayst kick and strug- gle as thou wilt, but when God holds his silver sceptre over thee, thou shalt surely yield. When Jehovah decrees that a man shall be sanctified, that man’s flesh may cry and groan, but the furnace shall refine him; the Holy Spirit shall purify him, and experience shall teach him, and the blood of Christ shall perfect him. Despite that wicked heart of ours, we shall on eagles’ wings ascend, and be found without fault before the throne of God. 4. The last enemy is the devil. Ido not know whether he is worse than the flesh or not, but I think I may put him down as being about on a par with it ; for when the devil meets our flesh, the two shake hands, and say, “ How dost thou do, brother?” Truly the two are brethren — for our flesh was originally in the family of wrath. Ah! that arch-traitor Satan! little do we know what temptations he is plotting and planning for us even now. He is so crafty, that he understands human nature better than human nature understands itself. He has been playing the trade of a tempter for six thousand years, — he ought to be a thorough master of the business; and certainly he is. He who made us knows more of us than Satan does ; but, next to God, Satan is the best student of humanity. He knows our weak points, too; he understands where to touch us, so as to touch our bone and our flesh; he knows how to cover up the hook with the bait ; for every soul he has his lure, and for every sinner he has his trap. He knoweth how to take one this way, and the other the opposite, — some by straining after pretended spirituality, and others by descending into the grossest sensuality. Depend on it, ny brother, thou mayst think thyself to be safe against Satan, but there is a joint in thy harness, and he will find it out; and remember, as one leak may sink a ship, so one weak point may be, and would be, thy ruin, if God did not prevent it. But what matters the devil when we have this text: “If God be for us, who can be against us?” The devil is mighty, but God is YGOD IS WITH US. Imighty ; Satan is strong, but all strength belongeth unto God. hat is Satan, after all, but an enemy who has had his head broken? He is a broken-headed dragon. The Lord has a hook in his nose, and a bridle in his jaws, and he knows how to pull 2 WI him back. Sometimes I wish he would take him up a link or two, that he might not be so busy amongst some of our churches ; but he is a chained enemy: the Lord lets him go just so far, but never any further. Oh! if the fiend could get just a little further, what havoc he would work! You know how it was with Job: Satan dared not touch his flesh at first — he could only touch his children and cattle; he had to get permission to touch his flesh, and even then he dared not touch his life. He went as far as his tether, and vexed poor Job with sore blains; he could not go any further, for God restrained him. Rejoice, hristian, whether it be man, or the whole world, or thy flesh, or Satan, if God hath predestinated thee, called thee omagatiea thee, and in the person of Jesus Christ glorified thee, ite u mayst put the whole together, dna { then say, “ Who can be against us?” “ As chaff is driven away, so, O Lord, thou. hast driven them away.” Itt. We shall close our meditation this morning — God make it profitable to his own people! — by observing WHO ARE THOSE WHO ARE NOT AGAINST US; for there are some who cannot be our enemies. Here is a very eke part of the subject. God the Father cannot be against us. He is our Father; he cannot - against his own childre en. He hath chosen us; he will not cast us away. He hath adopted us into his family ; he will ever discard us. He hath been pleased to ordain us unto eternal He. 1¢ will never reverse the decree. He was for us in the covenant of grace, when he planned the way to save rebellious man. He hath been for us in the great ordering of providence ; all things have worked together for good for us until now. We wonder how we have arrived where we now are: but surely providence, under God, has wrought wondrously on our behalf. He is for us in all the decrees which are yet to be fulfilled.SOD IS WITH US. 369 There is not a single line in the great Book which is against the Christian. You may rest assured that whether earth shall rock and reel, or the moon be black as sackcloth of hair, or the earth be licked up with tongues of fire, still Jehovah has not a single thought, nor wish, nor word, nor look, against any one of the blood-bought ones; they are all safe in him. God the Father cannot be against us. hen God the Son is not against us. O, beloved ! how sweetly he has been for us! Methinks I see him now, lifting up that face all covered with bloody sweat, and saying to every believer, “J am for thee; these gouts of gore fall to the dust for you; I sweat great drops of blood that I might redeem you.” He stands before Pilate; and when he is brought forth with the “ Hece homo,’ I think I hear him say, “ Poor sinner, IT am for you.” I see him carrying the cross upon his bleeding shoulders, and every step he takes is to this tune, “I am for you.” I behold him bleeding upon the tree, with outstretched hands, and all his wounds, and all the drops of blood which flow from his side, all say, “ Christ is for you.” To-day, as he pleads before the eternal throne, this is the tenor of his plea, “I am for you.” When he shall come a second time, without a sin-offering, unto salvation, the sound of the mighty trumpet which shall herald his advent will ring out, “ Christ is for you, O ye blood-bought saints.” When he shall sit upon the throne of his Father, and his king- dom shall come, whereof there shall be no end, this shall be the tenor of that kingdom, “I am for my people ; I will rule my people righteously, and bless the nations upon earth.” Christ cannot be against you. You cannot look into that dear face of his and think that he will ever leave you. Your husband is married to you, and he has proved his love by such indisputable tokens, that you must not — oh! you cannot doubt it. Child of God, I almost defy you to doubt the love of your Lord Jesus Christ. Dlow can he put you away? Could he have bought you at such a price — eould he have suffered so much for you, and yet leave you, throw you away upon the dunghill? Impos- sible! impossible! Those wounds forever seal your everlasting security.GOD IS WITH US. Then the Ho a Spirit cannot be against us. He must always, as the comforter, comfort his own people; as the Tee he aa) i 9 must lead us into the truth; as the great giver of life, he must en us from our death of sin. Whatever power th 69 ja ar a 4 aay 9% cf a mM & rook = Ete © lead Y @ Holy Spirit has, it is all engaged for us, “Lo! I am with you alway, ever: unto the end of the w ae on a oh ¢hac ma Then the holy angels —these cannot be against us. When J Elisha opened his servant’s eyes, the servant had crie ad efore, | ay 1 ere ae Boeck U8 a. Sor “ Alas! master, what shall we do?” when he saw the Syrians rarceaa of Gr 5 £ 10rses of fire and chants ot Ahan ; ati eer BU Be and their chariots ; but now I Seo pound about Mis aes ey es my aan fire round about Elisha. It is so with you. The nas are : mini ring spirits x} minister ac , ministering spirits, who minister unto the heirs of salvation ; they haar Tray tall in their h } ds lest T Tact TOW; a ot aAos in at Deai you up Inf their nandas, 1€st you aasn your OO asc wt a Sto} Millions af aeniritn: . rote this ‘ 7] stone. Millions of spiritual creatures walk this earth, both wl WV wala and whe n we ala PD e nd xT} yeAY the Hlaalc ia Oo V WaAKU Ali’ € VN also eC} 9 al When the PlacKk alsvut s come pale ae 1 evatati to attack us, the go ee cee Re a aS. aay Re epee we : heavenly ae is tougnt where none but spirit eyes can see; MATAR CON lee lt OR meas OA tee AIS ae ae et ase Gee - many a sacred fight goes on for the defence of the saints, even See Cee es ay Terrase at ~ at ME as Michael fought with the dragon for the body of Moses. The oO + ana »] gra all a Wad and. | ApA wa n rp ees S00G angeis are ail ror US, ana nere we may rejoice. Than wa knaw #/ ray (A rcv ays O47 Then we know the law of God cannot be against us. It was ane ee Tee re at ee rn sti ee a ee . our enemy once througn our sins, but it is now satisfied. Christ I Y m0 ( acy | ° 7 a + OTA F Aa RENTING + has made it honorable ; it has not a word to say against any soul Z has not a word to say against the Chris- tian; on the contrary, justice is well content to confirm the aving aA OAT Cyyee iccher a roi 6 Thy ane : saving decree; for, says Justice, “ That sinner owes me nothing MWe aatatuineraalicahanrm@oc Ja ~ . = : e= Christ has dischareed his debts: I will n ut that sinner in prison —I have no right to do so, for ee was imprisoned instead of him ; I will not Jay my whip upon his shoulders, for mes st suffered, with his much-ploughed shoulders, in the a of that poor oe ing soul.” So, ae an, Whoever may be siosid at you, here is a cation God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost, never can be a you: the angels of heaven, the law and justice Af God, must always be for yous and if it be so, who can be against you?GOD IS WITH US. 71 r ° ¢ Two remarks, and then I have done. One is, there is an pee 7 re a opposite to all this, and it belongs to some who are present here [os eee a this morning. If God be against 5 you, who can be for a Bae you are an enemy to God this morning, your very blessings are curses to you; your pleasures are oe the prelude to your pains. Remember, sinney, that whether you have adversity or prosper- ity, so long as God is against you, you can never truly prosper If you spreac a: like a green bay tree, it is only that you nay be ready for the axe; you may be fattened with wealth, but you are only prepared as the bullock for the slaughter. Take these words home, I pray yor let m ring > AK 5 ak Bee By, Uy and u hem rin 4s in your ears: “Jf God be naeiiaet me,” — just that supposition — a sup- position which is fact, because you have not believed in Christ, you have: not given your heart to God. “If God be against me ly Vill you Just think Hs over on your road home; take half an hour this afternoon to think it over. “Jf God be against me, phi then ? — what-will become of me in time and eternity ? If God be against me, how shall I die — how shall I rise again ? How shall I face him in the day of judgment, if God be against me?” to a certainty, I fear, in the case of many who are sitting in le It is not an impossible “if,” but an “if” which amounts this house to-day. Then, Christian, here is another thought, and I have done. If God be for you, do you not see how you ought to be for God? If God has espoused your cause, ought you not to espouse fis? I pleaded with you last Sabbath-day, since ae hath pleaded the causes of your soul, to plead the cause of Christ. There is a great battle which has only just begun. Ais trumpet which mus- ters the warriors soundeth loud and long, and the fight w rill be stern and desperate between Christ’s pure trut th and the cere- monials of the world’s church ; and ye must take your post, every one of you, on one side or the other. “ If the Lord be God, follow him; but if Baal, then follow him.’ One side or the other ye must be on; and I ask you, if God has been for you and defended you, stand up for him. Never bate a-jot of Christ’s es +t truth. Not a hair of the head. of Christ’s truth must ever be372 GOD IS WITH US. suffered to be touched with the smell of the fire of compromise. Be not as the harlots were who stood before Solomon. You remember one was quite content to have half the living child ; but be your motto, “All or none: I will never take a particle of error. Death to it all!” No amalgamation, no compromise, no peace with error. The men of this generation cry to me, and say, “Is there peace?” and my answer is, “ What peace can there be so long as the sins of Jezebel are so many?” Then they revile me, and say, “ Art thou he that troubleth Israel?” “ T have not troubled Israel; but thou, and thy father’s house, in that ye have forsaken the commandments of the Lord, and thou hast followed Baalim.” Stand up and bear witness against re- generation by baptism, and against those who use popish words, and would have us believe that it is right to attach another sense to them. Take your part with Christ and his despised people, and when the day comes when he shall distribute his rewards, happy shall that man be who never flinched; and blessed shall he be, and shall she be, who stood fast in the evil day, and stood still in the integrity of the Lord, and in the firmness of his truth, firm even to the end. The Lord bless you in this thing for Christ’s sake. Amen. THE END..eee ee {Se a jMX OOO 4498 400